eS Nil gene aw cas cee aa o I Sane os a d oh oF “aac Pikes “pp kes ASE Pirie tape capac eRe oS Sia ats WOE oi the Chenlagicg, & Nj, lp. Gf, ao “aan > PRINCETON, N. J. rr) ware. Lie 5" 5 te Digitized by the Internet Archive in 2009 https://archive.org/details/indexcanonumgreeOOfult ioe vada) a) ; rc 1 eens ch ~ A “ox 5 * ‘ Sy Mi ieee a ny” doors ae : Si a hey a : } th ~ i y SN 6 No [Eee « F fay IN SVS ; ? WAY \ Ltlénor Clergy N \ NY \ S A \) S 7 7 RAN \ f \\ RN \ AN a) . RN NY N The Fazthful \\ NN N AY yy RN ancl \y S\N Co- Standers. NV \\ My O oO \ \ \ \ Ambo: XS | \\ NNN = Oo \i \ + Prostralors. 7 \\ N\A N YI \ \ \\ VN \\ , RNY \\ \\ A\ \\ \\ Hearers \\ \ \\ are \\ \\ NY \\ Cetechumens. N \ \ AY IN W\\ \AG \ 9 N ASMEEY «ogy «360 (UMASS hf Th Xek et: ny \\ TD ia) ERIS yo NN PLAN or aw ANCIENT CHURCH. nt FO DOT ar wa sonenegee A eT OT re A , “LOSIOAL sth bs INDEX CANONUM, Bs uth tex ine ks bow ol. BOX E. AN ENGLISH TRANSLATION, AND Ae 2@-O) Vise ieee Woe GBS OF THE ENTIRE CODE OF Gra N-@EN) ee Ae’ OF THE UNDIVIDED, PRIMITIVE CHURCH, Seconp Epition, REVISED AND ENLARGED ; WITH A DISSERTATION ON THE SEVENTH CANON OF EPHESUS AND THE CHALCEDONIAN DECREE OF DOCTRINAL LIBERTY. BY JOHN FULTON’ DD. D., RECTOR OF ST. GEORGE’S CHURCH, ST. LOUIS, MO. AND A PREFATORY NOTICE BY Poailir’ SHARE, D:D.; LED. / LONDON: WELLS GARDNER, DARTON & CO, 2 PATERNOSTER BUILDINGS. -” £ : +. > , ar é 5 ‘ bd 4 ‘ P ‘ t r be > - ‘ is - ‘ » ‘ ary . 4 a ‘ t : i a eee ' re Ae .* ’ P . . fs =. ae 3 ¥ ue Cre ca isi Syigtae bs Gan “A . Page 5 eae oh S “ = ae roe f 1 er r = gi oS 1 hice . be ae TO THE REVEREND FATHER IN GOD, CHARLES FRANKLIN ROBERTSON, 8.T. D., Biles Oe Crb Sivelks s ORR, DHS. MANUAL Ob: CATHOLIC, LAV IS NOW, BY PERMISSION, Reverentip Inscribed; IN TOKEN OF DUTIFUL REVERENCE . FOR -HiS’ OFFICE AND SINCERE AFFECTION FOR HIS PERSON, My HIS LOVING. ER ESB Yon BR JOHN FULTON. CGN kN TS: FRONTISPIECE :— PLAN OF AN ANCIENT CHURCH........ are PR Opposite Title. PREFACE TO SECOND EDITION, ContTaInInNG A DISSERTATION ON THE SEVENTH CANON OF EPH- ESUS, AND THE CHALCEDONIAN Law OF DocTRINAL PAGE PSUR HRY ee0), cure elle Sa ae ae WERE Geter (su wears ae PREFACE TO THE FIRST EDITION. nes : Pee ieat INTRODUCTION. CHAPTER I.—THE PROVINCIAL SYSTEM OF THE ROMAN BNO REE estrone ced sce ereta ah tones ane. f= eat Tate es es heeds chalets 13 CHAPTER II.—THE CLERGY, OFFICERS, AND RELIGIOUS ORDERALING THE CHURCH. wsiom tacks « crkervci cmos o. ile CHAPTER IIJ.—ANCIENT CHURCHES, AND THE APPOINTED STATIONS OF THE VARIOUS CLASSES OF THE LAITY.... 35 CHAPTER IV.—PARISHES, PROVINCES, AND DIOCESES OF V5.0 Vill CaS AON KOs CAE Nr Gin Ren Cy OC GRR at? 5 Mae Rie cee 42 CHAPTER V.—HISTORY OF THE COUNCILS OF THE CHURCH PIS PA arse sa rat tt N Re mena he keh Mn AS Gd ac mae 51 CHAPTER VI.—HIsTORY OF THE COUNCILS, CONTINUED TO BSA Deed Se Ge NN A RRO NSS 2s Soe ene ae 69 PH A POS LOTMOMEACANONDscscee tec cael: con ecee' sc 5 81 GENERAL COUNCILS INTO —=“SyNODICAIE LWINER aa acrat are atesreere coos banine-s 113 PTT ORES corel suai tl ceseioe cosas vier eleva elt tier bieite 119 OIE SoIN se Mato gab bot tmiAdiae CADE nt eet Carer 121 CONSTANTINOPLE Bie— THE CREED) cic cc's cae sreee ete cl cele s « ¢ 137 LETTER TO THE EMPEROR............ 13 WAN ON Sugoi tecrrer sae care areuiais os. ts 141 EPHESUS: —ENCYCLICAL LETTER. 0.6000 ..00 0) occas ec eenees 151 CANONS..... GOS Oe CUI Bt Da Dee eave tae & 1538 EPISTLE RESPECTING EUSTATHIUS............. 161 CHALCEDON :—DEFINITION OF FAITH......-........-.000 167 WAN ON Serene Site as ei cie teste aters on eee auld a 175 vill CONTENTS. PROVINCIAL COUNCILS. ; anes (AN CYRRAS== CANONS aia eicpte ta tees cpsiel wiaerste s¥ete aolelsee te aleto nares tara 199 Nino: GaigARWA += CANON Ge caisitaictitecceas tne cineks ener eee 213 GANGRA.:—SYNODIGAT JUBPTPTER: 42.02 ss os seine io a emecten ee 219 GANONG oro s Sinton acre einccte ras. 8 nis tenella Opa ne eres 223 POSTS GR TBM accccayewie ate wils is jsushaieact et eansa weaves oer 229 ANTIOCH += SVNODIGADIE GHUDEIR: ..)ays stacks elalalelaieenictel ekel ete eres 2381 (GAINIOINS era ioresmacne ive ictal s eletehcloumuuece ota gasereeneeees 233 LAODICEA :—CANONS. .... 0. sceceeccecccenes pitti te eee 251 DIGEST: OR TB cht ANON 6 oS eek cece ately Bis INDEX 400 70 EE “ENT RODUC BION tote ote tes ce. te 889 PREP arORryo NOTICE: HE ancient Councils were convened for the double pur- pose of deciding doctrinal controversies, and passing disciplinary canons, on the basis of the Holy Scriptures and the traditional faith and practice of the church. The dog- matic decisions are laid down chiefly in the Nicene and Constantinopolitan Creed (A. D. 325 and 381), and the Christological formulas of Ephesus (431) and Chalcedon (451). They are still held by all orthodox churches, Greek, Latin, and EHyvyangelical, and form the most important heritage of the ancient undivided church. The first collection of ecclesiastical Canons goes under the name of “ Apostolical Canons.” They are appended to the eighth book of the “ Apostolical Constitutions,” and exist in Greek, Syriac, Ethiopic, and Arabic versions. In some manuscripts they number 85, in others 50. The Greek church, at the Trullan Council in 692, adopted the whole collection of 85 as authentic and binding; the Latin church retained 50, which Dionysius Exiguus about A. D. 500 translated from a Greek Manuscript. They consist of brief rules borrowed from the Pastoral Epistles, from early tradi- tion, and the Councils of the first centuries. Among the Canons of Councils the first place is due to those of the first four cecumenical Councils; and the second to those of several provincial Councils, which were held soon after the Diocletian persecution, namely the Councils of Elvira in Spain (306), Ancyra in Galatia (313), Arles in France (814), Neo Cexsarea in Cappadocia (between 314 x PREFATORY NOTICE. and 325). The latter dealt chiefly with questions arising out of the persecutions of the church by heathen Rome, and gave directions for dealing with those who had denied the Lord in the hour of danger and had afterwards repented. The Councils of Laodicea and Gangra, although only provincial, likewise passed important Canons; but while the Canons of Ancyra, Neo-Cesarea, Gangra, Laodicea, and also of Antioch were approved by the Council of Chalcedon, and thus gained currency in the West as well asin the Hast, the Canons of Elvira and of Arles were never received as of authority beyond the provinces for the government of which they were adopted. These ancient canons give us a tolerably complete idea of the practical life, the clerical duties and morals, the state of discipline, and worship of the church during the first five centuries. They form the basis of the canon law, which grew during the middle ages to as large dimensions as the Roman civil law. A careful collection of these early canons in the original (ireek, with a faithful English Version, historical introduc- tions, critical notes and a digest, must be of very great use to every student of ecclesiastical history. Such a collection is furnished by a competent and con- scientious scholar in the present work, based upon the great Synodicon of Bishop Beveridge. It is the only book of the kind issued in America, and I know no better one of the same size. It needs no further introduction. It will best recommend itself by practical use. PHILIP SCHAFF. New York, June, 1883. PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION. CONTAINING A DISSERTATION ON THE SEVENTH CANON OF EPHESUS AND THE CHALCEDONIAN DECREE OF DOCTRINAL LIBERTY.* S an introduction to this Second Kdition I might be content to say that the corrections of the First Edition which have been found to be necessary after ten years of continuous use amount to no more than the change of a dozen words, and the alteration of a few lines in a single paragraph. Such a statement would be strictly true, but it would be very far from telling the whole truth ; for, though the number of necessary corrections has proved to be much less than could have been expected in the First Edition of such a work, their importance is exceedingly great. Most of them occur in the transiation of the Seventh Canon of Ephesus and the Definition of Chalcedon, and are directly connected with no less important a subject than the extent and limita- tions of authoritative doctrinal teaching in the Church of Christ. The pretentions of Rome on the one hand, and the investigations of science and of criticism on the other, are compelling men to inquire with eager earnestness whether the Catholic Church itself has never set a limit to its own right of definition, and whether Christianity has ever made itself responsible for the philosophical theories with which scientific discovery and critical research are in open conflict. Now the truth is that the limitations of authoritative doctrinal teach- ing in the Church of Christ were long ago determined in the * The substance of this essay was printed, though not published, in June, 1882. At that time Canon Bright’s ‘‘ Notes on the Canons of the first Four General Councils,” and the third volume of Bishop Hefele’s ‘ History of the Councils of the Church from the original Documents,” had not appeared. TI trust it is not inconsistent with becoming modesty to say that, after a careful examination of these two learned works, I have found no sufficient reason to change eyen the details of the argument herein presented, xi PREFACE. TO" THE most emphatic and unequivocal way; and it is a fact which mere inspection will verify, that, with the Catholic Faith, as it was then authoritatively defined by the Catholic Church, not one fact which science or criticism has yet proved, or ever will prove, can by any possibility conflict. I shall be pardoned, I trust, for saying that the succession of causes and events which led to that important act has not hereto- fore been presented with the exactness which its far-reaching significance demands. Indeed, the connection of these suc- cessive incidents with the cardinal fact on which the whole question of the scope and limitations of authorized Catholic doctrine hinges, seems to me to have been strangely ovei- looked. I therefore avail myself of the opportunity afforded by the present occasion to narrate the interesting series of incidents which I have been compelled to consider while engaged in a critical review of the language and history of the two important documents to which I have referred. I. When our Lord Jesus Christ declared that the gates of hell should not prevail against His Church, that promise can- not be understood to mean less than this, that however indi- vidual men or particular Churches might err, the whole Catholic Body should not err in any matter of faith. Hence we must conclude that Definitions of Faith carefully elabo- rated by Councils and afterwards approved by the consent of the whole Catholic Commonwealth are infallibly true. If they were not true, the gates of hell must have prevailed against the Church of Christ, contrary to His promise. Again, when our Lord promised that the Holy Ghost whom He was to send from the Father should guide His Church into all truth, it is very clear that He did not mean all sorts of truth; such, for example, as scientific truth or historical truth. Neither did He mean every sort of truth connected with religion, as, for example, the exact date and the author- ship of every book of the Holy Scriptures. Nor did He mean every sort of truth concerning God, as, for example, how God creates. And most assuredly He did not mean all sorts of truth concerning the operations of divine grace through the workings of the Holy Ghost; for these things the Lord Him- self declared to be like the wind blowing whither it will— recognizable, but not definable. What our Lord meant could, in reason, have been simply this: that the Holy Ghost should SECOND EDITION. xiii guide the Church into all necessary and essential truth; and manifestly the very highest function of the Church as a teach- ing body, guided by her Divine Inspirer, would be to declare what is the necessary and essential truth of Christ, as dis- tinguished from all other truth, whether scientific, historical, critical, philosophical, or even theological. Now if it were a fact that the Catholic Church of Christ had not only declared what the essential verities of the faith are, but had positively forbidden any minister of any rank to set forth anything different as true, or anything else as necessary and essential ; if it were, furthermore, a fact that, for her own protection, the Catholic Church had been compelled to set forth the ipsissima verba in which alone the essentials of the faith might be authoritatively expressed ; and if it were a fact that, from the time when this was done and its value tested, God’s wise providence made it impossible that one single additional defi- nition of faith should ever be made by the united voice of the Catholic Church, it seems to me that, unless Christ’s promise has failed, and unless the gates of hell have prevailed against His Church, we need be at little pains to ascertain what are the essential verities of the Catholic Faith. And these three things are true, as I proceed to show. II. (1). Nothing could be more strikingly in contrast with the dogmatical recklessness of assertion exhibited by Churches and by individuals in later centuries than the cautious reluc- tant with which the primitive Church suffered itself to be compelled to express the verities of the Faith in scientific terms of theological definition. No definition of any article was ever volunteered in advance of some imperious necessity. At first the formula of Holy Baptism was the only Formula of Faith, and its meaning was set forth, not in terms of scien- tific theology, but in the looser terms of popular teaching. As there seems to be little doubt that the briefest possible abstract of the story of the gospel was reduced to writing at a very early day, and was afterwards the basis of the three larger Synoptical Gospels, so there is little doubt that the formula of Baptism was gradually expanded for catechetical purposes into short Creeds, of which the form known as the Apostle’s Creed is probably the best and fullest specimen now extant. It is important, however, to observe that these Bap- tismal Creeds were set forth as freely in particular Churches X1V PREFACE TO THE as catechisms of one sort or another are set forth now. They had this in common, that they all set forth the elementary facts of the Faith, in the simplest language, and without theory or comment. In other respects they differed in differ- ent Churches. (2). it isa very common error, but still an error, to suppose that the First General Council of Nicea set forth a Creed, if by the word Creed we mean an exact form of words which was prescribed or recommended as a substitute for the cate-. chetical or Baptismal Creeds which had been previously used in particular Churches. Even if it were true, it would mark the significant fact that it was not until the year 325 that tlie Catholic Church ever attempted to set forth an exact and authoritative Formula of Faith. But the truth is that the Council of Nica did no such thing. The heresy of Arius had denied the eternity, and therefore the essential deity, of the Only-Begotten of the Father, and to correct this heresy the Council of Nicca set forth the testimony of all the Churches of Christ concerning the true doctrine of the Son of God. {ft did nothing more than that. The Nicene definition was indeed made in exact and scientifie terms, which were meant to be a bulwark of the Faith against the heresy of Arius; and it was the first definition ever made by the consentient voice of the Catholic Church, teaching in the name and by the authority of Christ. But it was not, nor was it meant to be, a perfect or sufficient statement of the Christian Faith. It determined one central truth, and that undoubtedly the greatest and most vital; but it did no more. The reluctance of the Church to make exact definitions of doctrine is strik- ingly exhibited in the fact that this holy, great and venerable Synod would not, and did not, utter one word bevond what it was required to utter by the manifest necessities of the Chureh, and by the manifest providence of God. And this, too, is remarkable, that it did not, even then, impose its own form of words upon the Churches. The facts it Lad declared were eternally true ; and whoever should deny them must be cast out of the Catholic Church as one who had denied the Faith of Christ; but there was no intimation whatsoever that the same eternal truths might not, in the future as in the past, be freely, if only faithfully, set forth on any occasion in different language. SECOND EDITION. XV (3). More than half a century passed away before the Catholic Church in the first Council of Constantinople was com- pelled by absolute necessity to add what was lacking to the definition of Nicwa. The Semi-Arians and Pneumatomachi had depraved the doctrine of the Holy Spirit, and the Council of Constantinople added a few brief and pregnant statements to correct the errors of these and other heretics. But still, though the Fathers of that Council spoke in no stammering or hesitating words, they imitated the fathers of Nicaea in this, that they did not forbid the use of any other true words in the exposition of the same truths. This Council, eminent for wisdom and sanctity, was not in form an Gicumeniecal or General Council of the whole Church, since it was composed exclusively of Oriental bishops; and its definitions had not the stamp of authority which belonged to those of Nicwa until they had been sanctioned, as they were immediately afterwards, by their universal reception and approval through- out the whole Catholic Church. The fact that they had been so sanctioned was emphatically ascertained at the Council of Chalcedon. (4). Fifty years more passed away before the Catholic Church was called again to declare a matter of doctrine at the Council of Ephesus, but on this occasion the Council merely tested the heresy of Nestorius by the clear signification of the pre- vious definition of Nicwa. The ecthesis, 1. e., the statement or exposition of Niceea, was read, and after it the syméolon, or formula in which Theodore of Mopsuestia had covered up the essential heresy of Nestorius in terms of pretended orthodoxy. 'The inconsistency of the new heresy with the old truth was at once apparent; and then the Fathers adopted that famous Seventh Canon* which has been so widely mis- interpreted. It is very commonly believed that the Seventh Canon of Ephesus sets forth the Nicene definition as a final Creed, to the neglect of the Constantinopolitan definitions, so that the subsequent decree of the Council of Chalcedon * It has been objected that the Seventh Canon of Ephesus was not, properly speaking, a canon, but a opos, or determination of the particular matter to which it referred. The objection, however, is of little real force ; since the Council, instead of limiting its determination to the particular errors contained in the formula of Theodore, and instead of pronouncing sentence upon the particular persons who maintained those errors, chose rather to render judgment in the form of a general rule, that is to say a Canon. which would apply to all persons who should set forth a doctrine different from the Nicene. XVI PREFACE TO THE seems to be, in effect, an overruling of the previous action of the Council of Ephesus. I confess that the translation given in the first edition of this work entirely fails to bring out the very important truth of the matter, a failure which it has in common with all other translations I have examined. The truth is this, and a glance at the original Greek will verify the assertion: That the Seventh Canon of Ephesus simply reaffirmed the Nicene definition; not even then did it pre- scribe the Nicene form of words to be used on all occasions ; but it declared in effect that any and every form of words which might be used must be consistent with the Nicene defi- nition; and it decreed that if any clergyman should dare to set forth heteran pistin, that is to say, a different faith from that of the Nicene fathers, he should be summarily cut off.* * Canon Bright’s discussion of the Seventh Canon of Ephesus is very unsatis- factory. He affirms that to explain érépay rior ‘as a belief contrary to the Nicene, or a creed expressing doctrive inconsistent with the Nicene” “is to explain it away ;”” an assertion which simply begs the question. He declares that ‘‘zo71s means a formulary of doctrine which can be ‘written’ and ‘ presented,’—in short, a creed ;” a declaration which begs the question in another form of words. He says that ‘‘ érépa applied to a creed” (i.e. to iats) “must bear the sense of verbal difference, not of doctrinal opposition ;”? a necessity which is not shown, so that the statement is merely a third begging of the question. The learned Canon maintains that the decree of Ephesus “excludes the Apostles’ Creed as a baptismal symbol ;”’ a notion which, if it were true, would condemn the baptisms of the Western Church from the Council o* Ephesus until now. In order to establish his thesis it would be necessary for the learned professor to show, by at least one undoubted instance, that at the time of the Council of Ephesus zioms had acquired the new meaning of a verbal formulary in acidition to its old and usual signification of a faith, doctrine, belief. No such uidoubted instance, I believe, can be produced. If it could, the learned professor must next show that the Council, in laying down a rule for the government of the Cittholic Church, deliberately used a common word in a new and unusual sense, which is altogether improbable unless there were no other word in the Greek language to e:cpress their meaning. So far from that, however, the word cvpBodov lay ready for- that very use ; and the fact that they did not use it is sufficient evidence that they did not mean it. It would strengthen Canon Bright’s opinion, of course, if he could show that any person ever understood the Council to have used the word wioms in the new sense of a verbal formulary ; but the evidence is altogether to the contrary, If mors alone had been understood in that sense, the Fathers of Chaleedon would have found it enough to include the definitions of Constantinople in their confirmation of the decree of Ephesus ; but instead of that they first forbade all that had been forbidden by the Council of Ephesus, and then they added a new prohibition by extending the decree which already protected the doctrine of the Church to the verbal formula in which it might be offered. If the two decrees are put side by side, it seems to me that the inference is inevitable ; and the fact that the Fathers of Chalcedon adopted the very words of the Fathers of Ephesus plainly shows that the additional words were inserted deliberately and on account of some indispensable necessity. EPHESUS. CHALCEDON. “The holy Synod decrees that it is “The holy and ccumenical Synod unlawful for any man to propose, or com- | decrees that it is unlawful for any man pile, or compose any érépay miotw than|to propose, or compile, or compose, SECOND EDITION. xvii (5). Twenty years later the greatest of all the Councils, numbering six hundred and thirty bishops, assembled at Chalcedon for the correction of recently invented forms of heresy; and as the Council of Ephesus had found that the definition of Nicwa, fairly and grammatically construed in its obvious sense, was a sufficient protection against Nestorianism, so the Fathers of Chalcedon found that in the definitions of Nicza and Constantinople united, the Church had a sufficient protection against all heresies whatsoever. It was now a hundred and twenty-six years since the Council of Nicwa had assembled, and nearly four hundred and twenty years since the Apostles had received their commission to go and teach all nations. In all that time the Catholic Church had never but twice, and then with great reluctance, exercised her supreme function of exact doctrinal definition. Heretics, on the contrary, had been ever ready with irreverent self-conceit to affirm or deny, as the whim took them; and the absence of a fixed formula or symbol of faith had been severely felt. For want of it, faithful members of the Church had been liable to be led away by heretics who professed the greatest devotion to orthodoxy and the utmost reverence for the that established by the holy and blessed | or hold, or teach to others any érépay faihers assembled with the Holy Ghost at | wiotw. - Nica. But those who shall dare to compose, But those who shall dare EITHER to or to publish, or offer érépay riot compose érepay morw, OR to publish, or teach, or deliver érepov ciuBodAov to persons desiring to turn to the acknowledgment of the truth, whether from heathenism, or from judaism, or from any heresy whatsoever, shall be deposed, if they be Bishops or Clergymen; Bishops from the Episcopate, and Clergymen from the Clergy ; and, if they be monks or laymen, they shall be anathematized.” The truth is that the language of the General Councils is not loose and incon- sistent, but, on the contrary, it is, as might be expected, exceedingly precise and exact, in every utterance which concerns the Faith. It will be found, I think, that in the first four General Councils S.dacxaAca signifies doctrine in general; éx6ecrs, a state- ment of doctrine; édyara, opinions set forth as doctrines of faith; zio7s, faith irrespective of form; ovp~Bodov, an exact verbal formula of faith, or, in the strictest sense of the word, a Creed. The mere fact that the word ovuBodov began to be used at the Council of Chalcedon alone suffices to prove that the idea which it expresses was then first recognized. Though I haye thought it necessary to give my reasons for differing from the learned Professor, I may nevertheless remark that the main argument of the text would be in no way weakened if it could be shown that miozs in the Seventh Canon of Ephesus was intended to mean an exact verbal formulary of faith. It would then simply follow that the Council of Chalcedon accepted and completed the earlier work of Ephesus ; for, whatever might be the force of rio7s alone, it is impossible to deny or doubt that miozs, clinched by ovpfodov, can mean nothing less than a Creed in the ‘strictest sense of an exact verbal formula of faith, xylil PREFACE TO THE Councils of the Church, but who availed themselves of the unrestrained liberty of exposition to set forth heretical for- mulas, which were, in fact, heterai pisteis, utterly inconsistent with the faith of the Catholic Church. In like manner heathen persons embracing Christianity, and heretics or schis- matics desiring to return into the one fold, were liable to be required by pretentious priests to subscribe to formulas which were not only unauthorized, but which were expressly designed to teach heresy in the Church itself. The necessity of having not only sound and sufficient definitions of the Faith, but also a fixed and unalterable form of words in which to express it, had at length become manifest. The definitions of Nicea, supplemented by the additional definitions of Constantinople, were beyond all question theologically exact in their terms, and they were found to be amply sufficient in their scope to express the Catholic Faith. Therefore the Fathers of Chal- cedon, in dealing with the new heresies of their day, imitated the example of the Fathers of Ephesus. They distinctly refused to adopt or to impose new definitions. They tested existing heresies by simply comparing them with the defini- tions of Nica and Constantinople. For the protection of the Church in the future they renewed the prohibition of Ephesus, which forbade the setting forth of any heteran pis- tin; that is to say, any faith which should be inconsistent with the definitions of Nicxea ; they extended that prohibition to the definitions of Constantinople ; and lastly, they declared that not only the doctrines expressed in those definitions, but the very ipsissima verba, the identical words in which they were defined, should be and remain unalterable. The distinc- tion is very clearly brought out in the two words pistis and symbolon ; pistis referring to the doctrine and symbolon to the formula of the Creed. Repeating the prohibition of Ephesus, the Fathers of Chalcedon declared “ that it is not lawful for any man to propose, or compile, or compose, or hold, or teach to others any different faith (heteran pistin) ;” a prohibition which manifestly applied to the substance of the Faith and to all modes of teaching ; and then they proceeded furthermore to enact that “those who dare EITHER to compose a different faith (pistin), OR to publish or teach, or deliver a different formula (symbolon), to persons desirous of turning to the truth from heathenism, or Judaism, or any heresy SECOND EDITION. Xix whatsoever, shall be deposed, if they be bishops or clergy- men—bishops from the Episcopate and clergymen from the Clergy; and, if they be monks or laymen they shall be ana- thematized.” (6). In no more striking, positive, or emphatic way would it have been possible for the six hundred and thirty bishops who represented the Catholic Church at Chalcedon to have declared that the whole Catholic Faith is summarily and sufficiently expressed in the words of the Nicceno-Constanti- nopolitan symbol ; that to tamper with the least jot of its form is to tamper with heresy ; and that to add to its definitions, making the acceptance of such additions a condition of com- munition, ts to act without Catholic authority, and to incur the condemnation of the Catholic Church. And be it well observed that this grand decree of the greatest of all Cicumenical Councils was none other than a law of Christian liberty. It did not require that the baptismal Creeds which had grown venerable by long ages of continuous use in different Churches should be displaced by the exact technical formulas of Nicea and Chalcedon; it was neither to be expected nor to be desired that children and peasants, that is to say, a large majority of mankind, should be vexed with the subtleties of theological distinctions; it was wholly unnecessary that they should be taught the difference between homo-ousios and homoi-ousios ; therefore the old provincial formulas continued, at least in the Western Church, to be freely used as they had been before; and, in popular use, the Apostles’ Creed has never in the West been displaced by the fuller formula. Neither were provincial Churches prohibited from uttering their voices on new questions of doctrine that might come up from time to time. When the Western Churches were con- strained by royal meddling and imperial dictation to declare that the Holy Ghost proceedeth from the Father and the Son, it was an unfortunate thing to do, and it was done in precisely the most unfortunate way that the spirit of mischief could have devised ; but it was not an act of heresy, for the statement was not inconsistent with the Catholic Symbols it was not at first an act of schism, because the Western Churches did not at first make the reception of the added words a condition of com- munion ; and it was not, nor did it become, an offense against the decree of Chalcedon until it was made a condition of XX PREFACH TO THE communion, and so an occasion of schism ; for the scope and purport of the Chalcedonian decree was this: that no Church, however great or venerable, and no prelate, however eminent in authority, should impose one syllable of doctrine, however true, as a condition of communion, beyond the ipsissima verba of the Niceno-Constantinopolitan Symbol. Thus the Chalcedonian Decree was emphatically a law of liberty for the whole Christian Commonwealth, and if that law had been obeyed,: innumerable scandalous divisions and other evils would have been spared to the Body of Christ. (7). In the next two General Councils, which completed the number of those that can be called ‘‘ undisputed” and there- fore truly Gicumenical, the sufficiency of the Chalcedonian Decree was effectively tested. New heresies of the subtlest sort, and couched in the subtlest phrases of the subtlest and most flexible of languages, had rapidly appeared in great number; but the second and third Councils of Constantinople found no difficulty in dealing with them. In every instance it was only necessary to compare the new doctrine with the plain meaning of the old formula in order to discover that the new was inconsistent with the old, or, in other words, that it was hetera pistis, and therefore false; so that what are incorrectly called the doctrinal definitions of the fifth and sixth General Councils were not, properly speaking, defini- tions at all; they were in fact judicial declarations that the several heresies which they condemned were inconsistent with the Catholic Faith, as it had been already defined. (8). No one, I suppose, will doubt that it was of God’s wise providence that the Catholic Church was enabled in her General Councils to defend the Faith of Christ against the assaults of heresy. No one, I imagine, can fail to admire the reverent reluctance exhibited by those great assemblies in approaching the duty which God’s providence imposed upon them, of choosing human words for the definition of divine truth. No Catholic Christian can deny or doubt that they were divinely guided, as the Lord had promised, in their definitions of the truth; and just as little can we question that they were divinely guided in forbidding definition to be carried further. Surely we must equally believe it to have been of God’s wise providence that from the time when the essential verities of the Faith had thus been clearly and suffi- SECOND EDITION. XX1 ciently expressed in a form of words which could not have been changed without endangering the Faith itself, no true Geu- menical Council of the whole Catholic Church has ever been convened. Humanly speaking, if General Councils had been held in subsequent ages they would have done what pro- vincial Councils and patriarchal Councils have done every- where ; they would have taken up the passing questions of the time and would have multiplied definitions of unimportant doctrines until the Faith of Christ would have been obscured in a confused mass of inconsistent theological philosophy. Doubtless the Holy Ghost could have guided the Church through all such dangers. But the way in which the provi- dence of God actually has saved the Church has been by suffering the holding of General Councils to become impos- sible. Thus the wrath and sinfulness of men has been made to subserve the safety of the Church ; and, as we glance back upon the history of the ages, we may well adore the mystery of Providence, when we perceive that every individual and particular Church has sinned and erred in divers ways; that *‘as the Churches of Jerusalem, Alexandria and Antioch have erred, so also the Church of Rome hath erred,” and the Church of England hath erred; and yet the Catholic Church, but the Catholic Church alone, hath not erred, but hath been wonderfully saved from error, and even from danger of error, lo, these many centuries. _ III. (1). It is no part of the purpose of this essay to enlarge on the divine truths which are declared in the only authorized Symbol of the Catholic Faith ; and it is needless further to insist that the Christian Faith is sufficiently as well as truly defined in that consecrated Symbol. What the Catholic Church has authoritatively defined in that Symbol is true and Catholic; what she has forbidden to be defined may indeed be true, but it is not Catholic, and cannot lawfully be imposed upon any Christian man as a condition of communion in the Church of Christ. Hence the pretended right of the Roman Patriarchate to define new doctrines of Faith, or, in other words, to change the Christian Religion, is a sheer rebellion against the Catholic Church ; and every attempt to impose such doctrines as a condition of communion is an act of schismatical usurpation. But the ease of mind and the comfort of faith which a Catholic Christian may enjoy in 6-4 PREEPACH) DO THE these days by remembering what the Chalcedonian law of liberty does not define, and even forbids to be defined as Catholic doctrine, extends to many other matters besides the arrogant pretensions of the Church of Rome. After a brief reference to some of these, the present essay may be fitly closed. (2). In these days we hear much of the conflict between science and religion. That there unfortunately is, and has been, very much of conflict between scientific men and religious men is unquestionably true; but nothing which the researches of scientific men have proved to be true does even so much as touch the utmost verge of the Catholic Faith. Briefly stated, the whole religious question involved in the vague doctrine of evolution, for example, is this: How does God create? On that question the Catholic Faith says noth- ing. It simply declares that God is, and that He is the ‘* Maker of heaven and earth, and of all things visible and invisible.” The Catholic Christian has no conflict with science; rather, he is full of sympathy with those who study the wonderful works of God. He may be slow, perhaps, to adopt the hasty theories of scientific men, but he is always thankful for their facts, and he is utterly fearless of them. What has he to fear from them? Atheism? Atheism is not science! Atheism is a negative proposition which can never be proved, but which every fact of science_goes to disprove. (3). Again, in these days, we hear much about the destruc- tive tendencies of biblical criticism, and it must be confessed that to the mere Protestant, who has only some sentimental sort of belief in the Catholic Church, there has been ample cause for consternation. Not so to the Catholic Christian. On the subject of the Sacred Scriptures his faith cannot be shaken. That deep and pregnant declaration that it was the Holy Ghost ‘* Who spoke by the prophets” will never, indeed, allow him to make light of any part of Holy Scripture, nor to lay irreverent hands upon the pages of The Word. He will not run lightly into new-fangled theories, either of criticism or of interpretation. He will be prone to remember that the Scriptures are very old, and that the science of biblical criti- cism is a very new and a very capricious and uncertain sort of thing. But from any fact that criticism can establish con- cerning the books of Holy Scripture, he has no reason to SECOND EDITION. XX1iL shrink. On the contrary, he has every reason to desire the increase of kuowledge which will enable him more perfectly to follow the mind of the Spirit ‘‘Who spake by the Prophets.” (4). Again, when we consider the endless controversies of philosophical theologians on the subject of soteriology, or the means of man’s salvation, and remember the hideous distor- tions of the divine character which the perverted ingenuity of men has set forth as divine truth, it is profoundly humbling and instructive to recur to the round simplicity of faith which is preserved in the Catholic Symbol. In it there is no exalt- ing of the incarnation so as to make the death and passion of our Lord merely an incident of the incarnation ; neither is the incarnation made to be merely the introductory step to the tremendous sacrifice of Calvary. All the truth is given without interpretations that our Lord and His Apostles did did not give, and nothing is depressed from its divine impor- tance. ‘‘ For usmen and for our salvation (di dc «. 7.4.) He came down from heaven and was incarnate of the Holy Ghost and the Virgin Mary, and was made man; for our sakes (i7ép muav) He was crucified under Pontius Pilate, and suffered, and was buried, and rose again the third day according to the Scriptures, and ascended into heaven, and sitteth on the right hand of the Father ;” (for our sakes) “He cometh again to judge the quick and the dead.” It was all from first to last “‘for us men and for our salvation ;” it was all, in whole and in part, ‘‘for our sakes.” What an amazing contrast have we here to the endless muddle of scientific soteriology set forth by schools and parties in the Church and outside of the Church. (5). Again, when we consider the embittered controversies which have raged concerning the divine foreknowledge and decrees of God, things which must undoubtedly exist, but which from their very nature are not rightly knowable, and therefore cannot be rightly defined, is not a blessed thing to know that on these subjects not one single word is to be found in the Catholic Symbol? Even into the vestibule of that sanctuary of the secret things of God, which men have pro- faned with their presumptuous and uncharitable clamor, the Catholic Church of Christ has not presumed to enter. (6). Not less reverent is she touching the inscrutable oper- XXi1V PREFACE TO THE ations of the Holy Spirit in the hearts of men. She adores Him as the Giver of life; but she does not attempt to parcel out and label His ineffable gifts, nor does she authorize others so todo. She leaves us to learn from the simple language of Scripture: ‘It is the Spirit that quickeneth;” ‘by grace are ye saved, through faith, and that not of yourselves ; it is the gift of God;” ‘‘ therefore being justified by faith, we have peace with God.” No nicety of definition could add to the instruction or to the comfort of such words; attempts at nicety of definition have in fact done monstrous mischief; but they have never been sanctioned by the Catholic Church. (7). There are many who might learn a lesson of humility from the reverent silence of the Catholic Church concerning the sacred mystery of sacramental grace. She asserts the reality of sacramental grace in the acknowledgement of “ One Baptism for the remission of sins;” but there she stops. The divine mystery and the unspeakable gift of the Holy Eucharist she does not define. The unbroken tradition, and (until recently in the Roman Communion alone) the universal cus- tom of every branch of the Catholic Church has regarded the Holy Eucharist as chief among the agenda of the Church, the liturgy and its accessories being left to the discrimination of each particular Church; but no definition of evedenda con- cerning it is set forth in the Catholic Symbol. This is a very remarkable fact concerning which more than a few observa- tions might well be made. Enough that it is a fact which should teach us at least three things: Ist, to be cautious in forming positive opinions concerning the doctrine of the Sacraments; 2d, to be yet more cautious not to set forth any opinions we may have formed as if they were catholic truth ; and, 3d, always and everywhere to resist and deny the oe tense that exact modern definitions, by whomsoever set forth, have the slightest color of catholic authority. (8). I have now to note a seventh topic on which the Catholic Church did not define, but which has recently en- gaged the minds of men to a great extent. It is astonishing that on the subject of Es schatology, concerning which whole libraries have been printed, the Catholic Faith gives us in the Greek original only fourteen words in which it declares that our Lord Jesus Christ ‘cometh again with glory to judge both the quick and the dead,” and affirms that ‘‘ we look for SECOND EDITION. XXV the resurrection of the dead and the life of the world to come.” Once again we are compelled to contrast the sim- plicity and reserve of the Catholic Church with the volubility of arrogant dogmatism displayed by vastly less respectable authorities. On the subject of future rewards and punish- ments the abundance of assertion has been in inverse ratio to the littleness of our knowledge. The doctrina Romanensium, or the vulgar Romanism of the middle age, went wild in its horrible declarations concerning the state of the lost; and the vulgar Protestantism of later times bated nothing of the Romish horrors ; indeed it made them worse, by denying the existence of a purgatory, which in the Romish system left some chance of escape. From the cruel atrocity of Romish and Protestant doctrine concerning the last things, the common sense and instinct of mankind recoiled; and I believe that it hag been the horror of those abominable and unauthorized teachings, more than any other one thing, which has caused a multitude of men to renounce Christianity altogether. Of late years the recklessness of denial has been almost as remarkable, if not so atrocious, as the former recklessness of assertion. Now there is declared to be neither hell nor purgatory. nor any judgment at all worth thinking of. The reaction has cer- tainly been extensive and radical; but, standing in our posi- tion as Catholic Christians, we are not swayed, and our Church has not been swayed, to the one extreme or to the other. We do not pretend to make void the words of Scripture that ““whatsoever a man soweth, ¢hat shall he also reap.” We dare no more reject all meaning from the words, “ Depart ye cursed,” than we dare to cast away the comfort of those others, ““Come ye blessed of My Father.” We are not free to mis- use our lexicons in such wise as to show that the tremendous -word aionios, the significance of which transcends imagina- tion, really means nothing of any consequence. But, on the other hand, we hold not, and we have never held, those mon- strous calumnies against the moral character of God which vulgar Romanism and vulgar Protestantism have equally set forth. So far as definition goes, the Anglican Churches add not a word to the definition of Constantinople. We care not further to define. It is enough to know that “for our sakes” the Lord Jesus Christ “cometh again with glory to judge the quick and the dead.” Enough for us, in the blessed hope of xxvl PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION. his merciful award, to “look for the resurrection of the dead, and the life of the world to come.” IV. I conclude with two brief observations : (1). Tf any thoughtful man will consider the history of Christ’s Church in the ages that are past he will observe this universal fact: that whenever a Church, or a prelate, or an individual theologian, has violated the Decree of Chalcedon, the immediate fruit has been schism, and the aftermath has been an even more abundant. harvest of heresy. (2). If he shall then look forward to the future he will see that the only hope of the restoration of unity to the separated fragments of the Catholic Church is this: that one day or another, and some way or another, as God’s good providence shall direct, all of them shall return to the common platform of faith, which, thank God, ts still the common heritage and possession of all. Constantinople, and Alexandria, and Antioch will never submit to Rome. England and the greater England of English-speaking Churches can never submit to any of their elder sisters. But England, and Alexandria, and Antioch, and Rome can all submit to their common Mother, the Holy Catholic Church of Christ ; not by renouncing their provincial traditions, but by obaying the Chalcedonian Law of Liberty which secures the liberties of each by maintaining the rights of all. JOHN FULTON. St. GEORGE’s CHuRCH, St. Louris, Mo., EAS8TERTIDE, 1883. PREFACE TO°7HE FIRST EDITION: HE preparation of this little Manual of the Canon Laws of the primitive Church was undertaken at the sug- gestion of several Bishops. It is now laid before the public not only with their sanction, but with that of many others of our chief Pastors who have very cordially approved the plan of the work, and who have generously trusted that the dili- gence of the compiler would suffice to execute it to the satis- faction of the Church. Of the utility of such a Manual on such a plan it is not, therefore, necessary for the writer to speak ; of the merits or demerits of its execution it is not for him to judge; and the object of this preface is only to give such information to the reader as may tend to make its use more satisfactory. 1. The Greex Texr which has been followed in the Apos- tolical Canons is that of Beveridge’s Codex Canonum Eccle- siz Primitives Vindicatus ac Illustratus. In the Canons of tne Councils the text is that set forth by authority of the Holy Synod of the Church of Greece under the title SYNTATMA TQN OEIQN KAI IEPQN KANONOQN, The other documents, which, for the sake of greater completeness, it was thought advisable to insert, have been drawn from various sources, and are believed to be correct ; though in some few cases the compiler ha: been obliged to use the privilege of an Editor in deciding between various readings. This, however, has never been done in any case which touches the substance of a doctrine or of a Canon. XXVill PREFACE TO THE 2. In the Enetish Version the Translator has aimed at such a conscientious accuracy as might justify its claim upon the reader’s confidence. In the choice of English equivalents for Greek words that might be supposed to have a special bearing upon any question doctrinal or ecclesiastical, he has invariably chosen that which is most literal ; thus tpeoBv- tepoc, for example, is always rendered by presbyter, never by priest ; and whenever the word priest or priesthood occurs, which is exceedinely seldom, it is because the original de- mands it. To assure the general exactness of the rendering, former editions and translations, Greek, Latin, French, and English, have been diligently examined and compared ; so that wher- ever this version is found to differ in sense from that of its English predecessors, it is because of some reason which has been deliberately weighed. Happily such instances are few. To the learned reader there is a sufficient safeguard in the presence of the Greek Text side by side with the English ; but to many of the honoured laity, and even of the reverend Clergy, to whom the Greek tongue is no longer as familiar as it once was in the consulship of Plancus, it may not have been unnecessary to say thus much of the Version now before them. 3. In the Inrropuction an attempt has been made to gather together such information as might suffice to a clear under- standing of the Canons; and this has been done with the double purpose of avoiding a multiplicity of Notes upon the Text, and of presenting the leading facts in as readable a form as possible. The Inprex to Tax Inrropucrion, which has been carefully prepared, will enable the student to refer at his pleasure to any particular point. It is hoped that there is nothing in the Introduction which can justly be objected to on any ground. Nevertheless, the writer thinks it right to say that in this part of his work he has felt himself entitled to a measure of freedom in the expression of opinion which would have been wholly inadmissible in any other part. FIRST: EDITION: XXix 4. In the Dicesr the same careful accuracy has been stu- died as in the Translation ; but as the Digest is merely a com- plete summary and convenient Index of the matters contained in the Canons, it has been felt admissible to use the word Priest, which is the word constantly used in the Book of Com- mon Prayer, and customarily used in common conversation as the equivalent of Presbyter. 5. It will be observed that the writer has included in the present work all of the Docrrinat Derrrrions which were directly set forth by the first four undisputed General Coun- cils ; and this he has felt it right to do even in a work which is intended to bear only on the Canons of those Councils ; because the Canons themselves frequently presuppose some knowledge of their own doctrinal reasons. Yet it is not to be supposed that the documents here given are all the documents approved by these four Councils; for, to mention no others, the Tome of §. Leo and the doctrinal Canons of S. Cyril, are _as fully sanctioned as the disciplinary Canons of Ancyra or the rest of the Provincial Councils whose decrees were sanc- tioned at Chalcedon. Neither is it meant to be implied that the writer does not recognize the Fifth and Sixth General Councils of the undivided Catholic Church. He has simply given the doctrinal decrees which were directly set forth by the Councils with whose Canons he is here concerned, and he has given nothing from the Fifth and Sixth General Coun- cils, for the single reason that those Councils passed no Canons. If the present work shall be received with favor by the Church, it will encourage him, or some one abler than himself, to bring out a more noble work than this ; im which the doctrinal decisions of the undivided Church of Curist shall all be given in Greek and English ; and their matter be digested and arranged under the sections of the Nicene Symbol. This volume passes from the writer to the public and the Church with a deep feeling on the writer’s part that it might XXX PREFACE TO THE FIRST EDITION. have been better. With more learning he might doubtless have given more instruction; and with greater leisure he might have avoided inadvertencies that doubtless will be found. Therefore, he asks to be considered by his brethren, not as one who would be thought a Master, but as the mere assistant of their higher and more fruitful studies. The book before them is not a Thesaurus, but a Manual ; it is an Index, not a Cyclopedia ; and in their judgment of its faults he prays them to remember that it has been put together in the irregular hours of often-interrupted leisure which are not too frequent in the daily avocations of a working Parish Priest. CHRIST CHURCH, MOBILE, June 15th, 1872. EN Tr Oh) Ore EG IN’. kar » Law 4 4 i \ ay " , = i : . a ie rT - a ‘1 Bide Cals q 7 aA aigenres: 5A eal ay rad a - hice ia * re Lee EL 4 J in Bau ay i ae ¥ a on Pee ants 4 oi ant Sea ee Pas ie 7 . x A af ‘ « oy ary A iy Le a Py a eK et aN rile =e. ame Pak Gi re Sie Aira och Uae j ; - =, {7 Ay, =e, 4 ' ’ b Pay 4 r +f y Vis “4 oe ’ t Coe é Pe ant ny at ae s ' cs 7 ay t f ¥ 7 ws , i7 = i Ss j . i \ 4 } + ¥ . 4 nes 4 u ' i 4 ud : ‘f ? . Fi ni | . é 9 i » #6-) | OUR AS er a0, THE PROVINCIAL SYSTEM OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE. NECESSITY OF THIS DISCUSSION. UNIVERSALITY OF ROMAN LAW. THE ORGANIZATION OF ROME AND ITALY THE MODEL OF MUNICIPALITIES AND PROVINCES THROUGH- OUT THE WORLD. THE CITY AND ITS ORGANIZATION. THE PARISH. THE PRO- VINCE. THE DIOCESE. THE PRZTORIAN PREFECTURES. THE SYSTEM OF THE CHURCH NOT A SERVILE COPY OF THE CIVIL DISTRIBUTIONS OF THE EMPIRE. N order to have any clear conception of the marvellously simple and perfect system of organization which grew up in the Church of the first centuries, it is necessary, first of all to understand at least the outlines of the system of municipal and provincial government which then prevailed throughout the Roman Empire. The Roman world in which the Church was first established was a world, not of contending Kingdoms and distracted Commonwealths, but of uniform and universal law. Notwithstanding the sagacious policy of Rome, which led her to respect, as far as possible, the local customs and religious preferences of the nations she had conquered, every generation as it saw her power more firmly rooted, likewise saw her system of administration growing to a perfect and undeviating uniformity. The civil law of Rome became the code of every province of the Empire, and the practice of the Roman courts became the code of practice likewise in the provinces. Hence the municipal arrangement of the cities and the governments of provinces were organized throughout the world in strict conformity to those of Rome and Italy, and the administration of justice was conducted by officers in- vested with like powers to those possessed by officers at Rome; and as at Rome the City Government had jurisdiction both in the City proper and in the suburbicarian districts, so throughout the densely populated regions of the Empire in Europe, Asia and Africa, even where the substantial benefits of Roman Citizenship had not been conferred upon the peo- ple, the Cities were made the Centres of Government, and the 14 INTRODUCTION. magistrates had jurisdiction over the outlying districts of their own immediate vicinity. Tue Crry, therefore, (urbs, 7) 76Atc), is the first element of the Roman government that must be observed and borne in mind. “Even in the times of the Apostles,” says Bingham, “every city among the Greeks and Romans was under the immediate government of certain magistrates within its own body, commonly known by the name of BovA7 or Senatus, its Common Council or Senate, otherwise called ordo and curia, the States and Court of the City; among which there was usually one Chief or Principal above the rest whom some call the Dictator, and others Defensor Civitatis.” The Jurisdiction of the City Courts and Officers, however, extended sometimes far beyond the limits of the City itself, The Suburbs (tpodoreva) and the surrounding country, often to the extent of many miles, and including villages and lesser towns, were all under the jurisdiction of the City Govern- ment. The City, together with its subordinate districts, was in the Greek part of the Empire called tapoikia, , Partsu ; and in the villages or towns of a Parish there were not un- frequently subordinate officers or deputy magistrates chosen by the magistrates of the City, and responsible to them for the performance of their trust. But the Magistrates of the City were themselves respon- sible for their administration of the Parish to the Preetor or Proconsul or other Officer of like rank who presided over the Proyince in which the Parish was situated. A Province in- cluded all the Cities and Parishes of a certain region of coun- try. The Seat of government was in the Merropotis or chief city of the region, and it was in the Metropolis that appeals were heard against the decisions of the Magistrates of other Cities of the Province. Under the Commonwealth and in the earlier period of the Empire Provinces were of great extent, and were generally conterminous with the nations which had been subdued by the Roman arms; that is to say, they included the undivided territory of one or more nations, nations which had been wholly conquered, being seldom dismembered or distributed among different Provinces. The number of Provinces at the beginning of the Empire was seventeen; viz., Sicilia; Sardinia et Corsica; Hispania Citerior et Ulterior; Gallia Citerior ; INTRODUCTION. 15 Gallia Narbonensis et Comata; Illyricum; Macedonia; Achaia; Asia ; Cilicia ; Syria; Bithynia et Pontus ; Cyprus ; Africa ; Cyrenaica et Creta ; Numidia ; Mauritania. Those of a sub- sequent date were either new Provinces acquired by con- quest, or they were erected by dividing older Provinces. Such were Rhetia ; Noricum ; Pannonia; Mesia ; Dacia; Britan- nia ; Mauritania Cesariensis et Tingitana ; Aigyptus ; Cappa- docia ; Galatia ; Rhodus ; Lycia; Commagene; Judea; Ara- bia; Mesopotamia; Armenia; Assyria. Gradually, however, the necessities of administrative gov- ernment in the transaction of local affairs demanded that the area of Provinces should be diminished; and about the time of Constantine their number had been increased by successive divisions to nearly one hundred and twenty. But at the same time unity of administration was secured by the erection of thirteen larger districts called Drocrses, presided over by officers called Eparchs or Vicars of the Empire. These Dio- ceses included each from three to seventeen Provinces, over which the Eparch exercised the right of superior jurisdiction, and, indeed, of limited control. There remains but one officer and one division of this complex and yet simple system to be mentioned. The four Preetorian Preefects, of the East, of Illyricum, of Italy, and of Gaul were the highest officers of the Empire, and exercised the supreme administration of Justice. and of the Finances. They controlled all inferior magistrates, “removed the neg- ligent, and inflicted punishments on the guilty. From all the inferior jurisdictions an appeal in every matter of import- ance, whether civil or criminal, might be brought before the Prefect ; but his sentence was final and absolute. The Km- perors themselves refused to admit complaints against the judgment or the integrity of these magistrates, in whom they reposed unbounded confidence.” * We have thus glanced briefly at the form in which the Empire had come to exist at the time and during the period which requires our attention, because it was to this model that the Church conformed the outward shape of her divinely constituted Order. The Imperial System consisted, as we have seen, of the following elements : * Gibbon, abridged. 16 INTRODUCTION. THE EMPIRE, divided into FOUR PRAITORIAN PRASFECTURES, which had jurisdiction over THIRTEEN DIOCESES, including ONE HUNDRED AND SEVENTEEN PROVINCES, in which the local affairs were administered by the Magistrates of THE CITIES, and the Cities with their suburbs and outlying districts and villages, over which the City Magistrates presided, were known as PARISHES. The attentive student of the early Canons will speedily find that the Church, in following the suggestions of this plan of the Empire, as she unquestionably did, nevertheless did not conform to that plan in a spirit of slavish imitation. The Parochial and Provincial System was everywhere adopted ; of the Diocesan System we have some trace in the Canons of the Undivided Church ; the later idea of Patriarchates may have been taken from the Preetorian Preefectures, though the Patriarchates never corresponded either in location or in jurisdiction with the Preefectures ; but of an Imperial Head of the Church on earth it is not too much to say that there is not one trace in any Canon of the Undisputed Councils of the Universal Church. In the sketch which we are now about to give of the organi- zation of the Church in what might not improperly be called the Age of the Councils, the reader must do us the justice to bear in mind that the sole object of this essay is to illustrate the actual condition of the Church in that Age, as we find it in the Canons of the Councils ; that otherwise than incident- ally it is not our province to discuss the processes of growth or gradual development by which the various elements were constituted or combined ; and that we have even less to do with the corruptions and exaggerations of a later time. CEE as. kT, THE CLERGY, OFFICERS, AND RELIGIOUS ORDERS OF THE CHURCH. MEANING OF THE WORD CLERGY. THE CLERGY LIST. THE PRIESTHOOD. THE BISHOP. HIS ELECTION, ORDINATION, AND PRIVILEGES. THE PRESBYTERS. THE DEACONS. THE MINOR CLERGY. SUBDEACON. ACOLYTHIST. EXORCIST. READER. DOOR- KEEPER. SINGER. COPIAT#. PARABOLANI. CATECHIST. STEWARD. ADVOCATE OF THE POOR. ADVOCATE OF THE CHURCH. MANSIONARIUS. WARDEN. SCEU- OPHYLAX. HERMENEUT#®. NOTARII. APOCRISARIT. DEACONESSES. THEIR ORIGIN. THEIR ORDINATION. THEIR DUTIES. MONKS. MONASTICISM PERMITTED, NOT EN- JOINED. THE TRUE IDEA AND PURPOSE OF ASCETICISM. THE ANCHORETS. CCNO- BITES. PILLAR MONKS. STROLLING MONKS. GENERAL UTILITY OF THE MONAS- TERIES. REGULATIONS OF MONASTERIES. RISE OF SACERDOTAL CELIBACY. MAR- RIAGE AFTER ORDINATION FORBIDDEN. THE VIRGINS OF THE CHURCH. THEIR DISTINCT RECOGNITION IN THE SECOND CENTURY. THE -NATURE OF THEIR PRO- FESSION. THEIR MARRIAGE AFTER PROFESSION NOT HELD TO BE YOID NOR ADULTEROUS. CEREMONY OF CONSECRATION. CONSECRATED VIRGINS WERE NOT THE SAME AS DEACONESSES, THE SYNEISACT®, THE WIDOWS OF THE CHURCH. HE Currey (6 «Ajpoc), a term which, to us, means only the three great Orders of Bishops, Presbyters, and Deacons, has throughout the Canons a much wider scope. All who were appointed to any subordinate function in the hurch, as the Subdeacon, Reader, and Singer, or to the charge of its affairs, as the Giconomus or Steward, were like- wise enrolled among the Clergy (¢v 76 KAnpw). A List of THe Creray («aTdAoyog Tév KAnptkOv), other- wise called Tue Canon (0 kavov), and still more frequently the SacerporaL List (Kkatadoyoc tepazinoc), was kept in every Parish, and included the names of all who served the Church in any Official capacity whatever, whether they were ranked among the Priesthood, or belonged to any of the Minor Orders. Tue Priesraoop (iepareiov), in its various offices of worship and administration, included only the Bishop, Presbyters, and Deacons as the Presiding Orders of the Church (01 tpoeatGrec Tho éxkAnoiac, Ant. I.). They alone cculd take part in the Sacred Service (Aevtovpyia) of the Sacrifice (@vaia) ; only the Bishop or a Priest being permitted to offer (zpoopépecv), and 18 INTRODUCTION. none beneath the rank of a Deacon being permitted to assist at the Oblation (mpoodopdé). And as none but they might serve at the Altar (Ovcacrjpiov), so none but they were per- mitted to communicate within the Sanctuary (Gjwa), or even to touch the Holy Vessels (iepa oxet7). So wide was the line of distinction between the Priesthood and the other Minor Clergy that it was forbidden to the Subdeacon to frequent the Diaconicum or Deaco .’s Room ; and in short it was distinctly recognized that while the Priesthood was essential to the very being of a Catholic and Apostolic Church, and therefore was ordained -by the solemn imposition of hands with prayer and invocation of the Holy Ghost, the other Clergy were appointed merely for convenience and efficiency in the administration of subordinate affairs, and therefore might be multiplied or wholly set aside as individual Churches might see fit. At the head of the Priesthood in every Church was the Bisyop, and a glance at the provisions of the Canons as sum- med up in the Digest at the end of this volume will suffice to show that every Bishop stood in his own Parish as a Father and a Prince. The earliest Bishops were of course appointed and ordained to their respective Sees by the Apostles or by Apostolic men. How they were appointed or elected in the age immediately succeeding the Apostles, is not clear, and perhaps the custom varied both in different Churches and at different times ; but it may be assumed that the united suf- frage of the Clergy and the Laity was in many places long considered necessary to a lawful election.* The disorderly proceedings, however, which accompanied such popular elec- tions, led to a gradual change in the rule, so that the neigh- boring Bishops, or at a later time the Bishops of the Province, who at first probably gave a bare consent to the election of any orthodox man who might be chosen by the people, were at length invested with the power of electing fit men for this office. Doubtless as a general rule, a Bishop was chosen from among the Clergy of the See, over which he was to preside, and the recommendation of the Clergy and Laity of the See was also doubtless of great weight in determining the choice; but it seems evident that from the Council of Niceea onward the power of choosing men to fill Sees that fell vacant rested ab- * For a full discussion of this subject, see Bingham, Bk. IV. INTRODUCTION. 19 solutely with the Metropolitan and cther Bishops of the - Province in which such a vacancy occurred. Until the Council of Nicza the Bishop-Elect was ordained by two or three Bishops, and from that time by at least three Bishops of the Province in which his See was situated; and from the moment of his ordination he had full jurisdiction over all orders of men, Clergy and Laity, in the City and Parish of which he was Bishop. He alone ordained the Pres- byters and Deacons, and appointed Clergymen of Minor Or- ders; he presided in the public worship of the Church ; he had control of all Church funds and properties, though he was bound to take the counsel of his Presbyters and Deacons as to the appropriation of them ; the exercise of discipline was in his hands; and with it he had like power of indulgence to the truly penitent. Though, as we shall see, his personal acts were subject to investigation, and his official acts and judgments were subject to revision and reversal in the Synod of his Province, yet within his Parish he had no superior and no equal. The Bishop was no autocrat; he was as much “under authority” as the poorest Reader, or Singer, or Monk within his jurisdiction; but when charged with personal wrong or crime, he had a right to trial by his peers, his Brother Bishops of the Province; and his official acts stood as effectual and canonical until they were reversed by the Pro- vincial Synod. The Prespyrers were next in order to the Bishop. They performed the functions and enjoyed the dignities of the Sacerdotal Office. They had no right to ordain ; perhaps not even to confirm ; but every other priestly ministry might be performed by them as well as by the Bishop. They were sub- ject to the Bishop’s jurisdiction ; yet in the administration of his See he was required both to give due consideration to their counsels and to make known to them whatever disposi- tion he might make of moneys or estates belonging to the Church. In an inferior sense the Drsacons were included in the Sacred Order of the Priesthood. Though they might not offer (mpoopéperv), they assisted at the Oblation, and were Ministers of the Altar ; they had charge of the Holy Vessels ; they communicated at the Altar with the Bishop and the Presbyters; and they administered the Oblation to the inferior 20 INTRODUCTION. Clergy and the Laity. With the Presbyters they were the Almoners of the Bishop in the distribution of Church charities. The Bishop was required to seek their counsel with that of the Presbyters in the administration of affairs, and to communi- cate to them his disposition of Church funds. The Mrycr Crurcy ranked far below the Orders of the Priesthood ; yet though they were wholly subordinate to the Presbyters and Deacons, they were everywhere recognized as Clergymen. They lived under clerical discipline ; they were supported in their office from the revenues of the Church ; and though they had no ordination by imposition of hands, they were admitted to their ministry with sacred ceremonies which could be performed by none but the Bishop or Chor- episcopus. First among the Minor Clergy* was Tue Suppnacon (i77péTH¢, brodidKovoc), who was charged with the preparation of the Holy Vessels, and delivered them to the Deacon at the proper time in Divine Service. During the Celebration of the Eucharist they attended at the doors of the Church, though this duty seems to have been sometimes shared with them by Deacons who stood at the men’s gate while the Subdeacons stood at the women’s gate. Not the least important of the functions of the Subdeacon was that of bearing episcopal messages and letters from one Church to another. The Subdeacons were strictly charged not to en- croach on the functions of the Deacons; nor to minister the Holy Gifts to the people; nor to touch the Sacred Vessels during the Oblation; nor to come within the rails of the Altar; nor to have any place in the Diaconicum or Deacon’s Room ; nor to bid the prayers in Church ; nor to wear the Vestment called the Horarium; nor even to sit in the presence of a Priest or Deacon without his leave. Tue Aconyrist (dKéAov0oc), as distinguished from the Subdeacon, was unknown in the Eastern Church until the fifth century, though counted among the Clergy by the Latins at an earlier date. His duty was to light the candles of the Church, and to attend the Ministers with wine for the Eucharist. Tue Exorcist (¢popkeorhc) was not regarded as a separate Order before the third century. Origen ascribes the power * For a full account of the Minor Clergy see Bingham, Bk. III, from which these definitions are mainly abridged. INTRODUCTION. 21 of casting out devils to the prayers and adjurations of ordinary Christians. Bishops and Presbyters, however, were the ordi- nary ministers of this power, until the class of Exorcists was established and recognized. Their duty was to lay hands on the energumens, to repeat the forms of prayer prescribed, and to command the evil spirits to depart. Tue Reaper (dvayveéoryc) was appointed to read the Gos- pels and other parts of Scripture from the Ambo or Pulpit which stood in the midst of the Church. This class of Minor Clergy does not appear before the third century. Tue DoorKerrrr (7vAwpd6c) seems to have been little more than Sexton and Janitor. Tue Sincer (Wadarij¢ kavovikéc) is first mentioned in the Council of Laocdicea. His office was to sing in the Church, in his appointed place, which was the Ambo or Pulpit. Tue Coprara or Fossarit (Kkomdtal, komt@vtec) had charge of funerals, and were particularly bound to see that the poor had decent burial. Tue PaxaBonant (tapaBodAavoi) are counted by some as a distinct Order among the Minor Clergy, while others with better reason believe them to have been a class of men chosen from among the Clergy, but not a distinct Order. ‘Their duty was to take care of the sick, and their name was taken from that of the gladiators (sapdéBoAor), who fought with wild beasts, on account of the equal danger incurred by the para- bolani in encountering infectious disease. Tue Carecuists (katnyntal), were not an order of the Clergy, but were men chosen from among the Clergy superior and inferior cn account of their peculiar aptness to teach. Their duty was to receive and instruct the candidates for Baptism. They were also sometimes called vavroddyo. As the Bishop, as ruler in the Ark of Christ’s Church, resembles the tpwpev¢ or Pilot ; the Presbyters, the yatta: or Mariners; the Deacons, the toiyapyor or Chief Rowers; so the Catechists were called vav7o0Adyor, Ship’s Clerks, they being appointed “to receive passengers and contract with them for the fare of their passage ;” 7. e., to show the Catechumens the contract they were to make, and the conditions on which they were to be received into the vate (Nave) which represented the Ship or Ark of the Church. Tue Srewarp or THE CuHuRcH (olkovduoc), like the Cate- 22 AN TROD UCTILON: chist, was chosen by the Bishop out of the Clergy of the Parish. He was, therefore, always a Clergyman, though the Stewardship was simply an administrative office in the Church, and not an Order of the Clergy. His duty was to manage the revenues of the whole Parish under the inspection of the Bishop, and particularly to take care of the revenues of the Church during the vacancy of the Bishopric. Tue Scevoppyiax (PvAag tHv oxevwv, or otherwise PiAak TOV KEeyndAiwv), was commonly a Presbyter, and had charge of the sacred vessels, utensils, and such precious things as were laid up in the sacred repository of the Church. He was also properly the Cuartopnyiax, or Keeper of the Rolls and Archives. Taz Hermeneure or Inrerprerers (épuqnvevtal), were a class of men of whose existence in Churches where the people differed in language, there is no doubt. In countries like Palestine, for example, where probably some spoke Syriac and others Greek, or in Africa where some spoke Latin and others Punic, their office was to render the one language into the other, as there was occasion, both in reading the Scriptures and in the homilies that were addressed to the Congregation. So careful was the Church of the instruction of the people, that she not only translated the Scriptures into all languages, but provided a standing office of Interpreters that whatever was done in her public worship, might be so done as “to be understanded of the people.” Besides the Clergy whom we have named, there were Offices in the Church which it may be well to mention here, though their incumbents were not counted as forming Orders of the Clergy, and indeed were not always even Clergymen, but might be chosen from the Clergy or the Laity as might seem most expedient. Such was the ApvocaTE or Dersnsor oF THE CHURCH (&- dixog zi¢ éxxAnoiac), who is also sometimes called Eccrxstec- picus (&k«Anovédtkoc). It is probable that the duties of this officer varied in different Churches or at different times in the same Church, and it is certain that they were occasionally divided in extensive Parishes between two or more Advocates. In the latter case it was the business of the Apvocarr OF THE Poor to look to the interests of poor persons, widows, and virgins belonging to the Church, and in case of wrong or INTRODUCTION. 23 injury being done them by the rich, to act as their attorneys and advisers in seeking redress from the Magistrates. Tue Cuurcn Apyocatsr, properly so called, was appointed to the same office in behalf of the Church as a corporation, and in behalf of any of the Clergy who were so injured or oppressed as to have occasion for redress in a civil court. It was his duty in ease of failure before the ordinary magistrates to appeal directly to the Emperor, and obtain a Rescript in favour of the Church. The Church Advocates were also em- powered to admonish idle Monks and Clergy who were in the habit of resorting to Constantinople, and in case of necessity to compel them to return to their own homes. Together with the Stewards they had the superintendence of the Copiatz and they were required to inform the Bishop of any negli- gence on the part of Clergy in attending the celebration of Morning and Evening Service in the Church. It is to be observed, however, that the Advocates had no spiritual power, authority, or function whatever. Tur Manstonarius (tapapovdproc) was an officer concerning whose functions there has been much dispute ; but he seems in the judgment of the weightier authorities to have been the Steward or Bailiff of the lands of the Church. THe Wardens oF THE CuuRCHES (dtAaKeg THY ExKANOLaY) were either the same as the Doorkeepers, or they were a body of men analogous in their position to the Wardens and Vestry of English Churches. Tue Norarm or Excrptores (éfvypdgol, tayvypdpor) were shorthand writers appointed to attend the trials of Martyrs and Confessors, and minutely to report the circumstances of their examination. It was also their duty to be present at the executions of the Martyrs, and to record whatever passed during the time of their suffering. Such descriptions were called Gesta Martyrum, and were the original accounts which every Church preserved of her own Martyrs. It is not necessary to mention more than one other class of Church Officers, the Apocrisarm ov REsponsAaLEs, who were resident representatives of foreign Bishops and Churches, appointed to act as proctors at the Imperial Court in all causes ecclesiastical wherein their principals might be con- cerned. 24 INTRODUCTION. But we cannot leave the subject of the Clergy without taking particular notice of three important classes of persons, viz.: the Deaconesses, the Monks, and the Virgins of the Church. There is evidence that Draconrsses were of apostolical ap- pointment, since St. Paul, in Rom. xvi, 1, calls Phoebe a Servant (d:dkovoc, Deaconess) of the Church of Cenchree. The original word dvdkovoc, used by St. Paul, is exactly equi- valent to the Latin Ministra, by which name certain women of the Church are called in Pliny’s Epistle in which he speaks of the Christians.* Tertullian and other early writers call the Deaconesses Viduce, Widows, and their office Viduatus, Widowhood, because they were usually appointed from among the Widows of the Church. According to certain regulations they were required Ist, to be Widows; 2d, to have had but one husband; 3d, to have borne children; and 4th, to be of considerable age, as forty, fifty or sixty years. These regulations, however, were not inflexible, since it appears that Virgins as well as Widows were promoted to the office of Deaconess, and that even after Chalcedon, Widows were sometimes at least ordained while under forty years of age ; nor is it absolutely certain that a Widow who had lawfully married a second time after being separated by death, not by divorce, from her first hus- band, was always excluded from the office of Deaconess. Concerning the ordination of Deaconesses, there has been much dispute among the learned, some affirming and some denying that they were always regularly ordained by the im- position of the hands of the Bishop. Bingham shows con- vincingly that they did receive imposition of hands, and that not merely in the way of benediction, but as an actual conse- eration of them to their office in the Church. Among the Paulianists it is probable that the Deaconesses were not so ordained ; and among the Catholics it is probable that there were two classes of persons indifferently known as Dea- conesses, viz., true Deaconesses who had been regularly or- dained ; and novices or candidates who had not been actually * Plin. lib. x. Ep. 97. Quo magis necessarium credidi, ex duabus ancillis, que Ministre dicebantur, quid esset veri et per tormenta querere. Wherefore I deemed it the more necessary to put to the torture two damsels who were called Ministers, and in- quire of them what the truth was. PENT RO DU: Cr TON. 25 ordained, but who lived under the rules and appeared in the habit or dress (¢v 7@ oyjare) of the Deaconesses. Zonaras states (Com. on Nic. x1x) that Deaconesses were sometimes chosen from the Virgins of the Church, though they were not ordained until they had attained the age of forty ; but that Virgins of twenty-five years received from the Bishop a certain habit or dress without imposition of hands ; and that these latter were also called Deaconesses (dvaxoviooar) even in the Canons of the Church. It is to be observed that the ordination or consecration of the Deaconesses conveyed to them no power to execute any part of the Priestly Ministry. This was always forbidden. They were appointed to perform merely some inferior services of the Church, chiefly relating to women, for whose sake they were appointed ; and particularly to assist in preparing women for Baptism, and to attend them before and after the immer- sions with which Baptism was customarily celebrated. They acted as private catechists to female catechumens; they visited women who were sick and in distress ; they ministered to the Martyrs and Confessors in prison; in Greek Churches they attended the women’s gate in the Church; they preserved order in Church among the women; they presided over the Widows; and it was their duty to introduce to the Bishop any women who had a suit to prefer to him. Early in the fourth century the Monks (uovayor) began to be a very important class in the Church, but Monasticism is not to be confounded with the Ascrricism which was culti- vated and enjoined from the beginning. Asceticism in its true primitive sense meant nothing more than our Saviour meant in his encouragement of “Prayer and Fasting,” and in his prediction concerning his disciples when He should be taken away, “Then shall they fast ;” or than St. Paul meant when he said, ‘“‘I keep my body under, and bring it into subjec- tion.” It is true that the measures and degrees of mortifica- tion practised by private Christians of the early ages were vastly greater than are dreamed of by the Christians of the present day : but the object was the same then that it is now, “to keep under the body and bring it into subjection,” and thereby the more easily to mortify their ““members upon the earth, fornication, uncleanness, inordinate affections, and evil concupiscence.” In the early Church, there were many who 26 INTRODUCTION. “for the Kingdom of Heaven’s sake” renounced the ordinary pursuits of men, such as honour, riches, power and the like, that they might the better give themselves to the studies and pursuits of a holy life. Such self-discipline the primitive Church always approved, and while she never propounded it as a rule, nor prescribed the degrees to which an individual man must practise it, she unequivocally approved the practice and applauded the design. But on the other hand, the primi- tive Church was the steady foe of that false asceticism which despises or abominates the things that it renounces, as a reference to the article “ Asceticism” in the Digest will suffice to show. The uniform language of the Church was: “If any Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, or any other of the Clergy shall abstain from marriage, flesh, or wine, od Sia doxnotv, dAAG Ova BdeAvpiar, not through asceticism (or self-discipline) but as abom- inating the good creatures of God, let him be deposed and cast out of the Church.” Notwithstanding this decided position of the Catholic Church, the various forms of false Asceticism in the early ages were well nigh innumerable, as the early Canons show, so that while it is true that Christianity fostered true Asceticism, it is no less true that the Church was forced to be a resolute adversary of its counterfeit. In the eye of the Church, therefore, Marriage and Celibacy, considered as states of life, were equally estimable. Marriage was ‘honourable unto all men,” Bishops, Priests, and Dea- cons not excepted; but for him who “could contain” and who for the love of Ged, that he might better serve the Church or promote his own salvation, kept himself a virgin, it was felt that honour should be given in proportion to the greatness of his sacrifice. Nevertheless it was not till the beginning of the fourth century that Monasticism as a professed state of life began to prevail so widely as to need the regulation of the Church, but from that time it was speedily developed under many forms. Tue AncHorets (avaywpytai) were men who retired into the wilderness and dwelt in natural caves, or artificial cells, or even in tents. When many of these were near each other, though separate from each other and independent of each other, their settlement was called a Laura. When the Monks were joined together in one Community they were called CanopsrrEs (KovvoZirat), and their habitations ENE RODUCTION: 27 were called Canobia (koivéBia). Such communities were soon established in all parts of Christendom, and became the regu- lar form of Monastic Institutions. They were under regulo- tions of greater or less stringency, according to the rules which they professed, and they were in all things subject to the Bishop, who was required by the Canons to provide for their decent maintenance. It was also his duty to maintain a godly discipline over the Monks, and in case of their contu- macious persistence in any forbidden courses, to expel them from their Monasteries. Of the many extravagant and capricious forms of monastic life none was more extraordinary than that of the Sryzirm or Pillar Monks who were so called because of their living per- petually on the top of a pillar. Naturally enough the profes- sors of this way of life weve extremely few, but the accounts of their prolonged endurances are certainly astonishing. It does not appear that they were in any very great or general esteem. Far more pernicious to the Church and to the State were the bands of Strolling Monks, who lived in companies of two or three together, making their profession a pretext for idle. ness, and their pretence of ascetic sanctity a plea for setting at defiance all authority except their own. They were the pests of the Cities, fomenting contentions and disturbances, slandering the Clergy, challenging and receiving superstivious veneration from the multitude, affecting an unusual habit, making frequent visits to the Virgins, fasting to absurd excess at fasting times, but on the feast-days drunk and riotous to beastliness, when, as St. Jerome says, satuwrabantur ad vomitum. In the correction of such disgraceful rioters it is evident that spiritual censures were of small avail, and it sometimes be- came necessary to call in the civil power for the abatement of the nuisance. Happily this corruption of Monasticism was the exception, not the rule. The early Monasteries were, in general, of real and valuable service to the Church. It was no trifling matter in an age like that, when Christianity had still to struggle with the virus of hereditary heathenism in the hearts of the baptized themselves, that houses should be found in every city filled with men of faith so strong that they renounced the world in order that they might win Curist. And it is 28 INTRODUCTION. beyond a doubt that in the great majority of cases, making due allowance for the frailty of humanity, the Monks were in their lives and conversation wholesome patterns to the mem- bers of the Church. The religious simplicity of their daily life was only equalled by the unwearying fervency of their devo- tions. Their houses were abodes of learning, industry, and piety, and it was often in the Monastery that the truest life of Christianity was lived and its most perfect spirit breathed. Yet in spite of the reputation they acquired, and of the reverence in which their virtues caused them to be held, the Monks had no rank in the Church but that of simple laymen. As they had embraced an exceptional state of life, which needed more than ordinary safeguards, they were protected and restrained by a more strict and watchful discipline than ordinary laymen ; but they had, beyond this, no rights, rank, nor titles in the Church that any layman might not claim. They were stringently forbidden to meddle with ecclesiastical affairs ; and it was a well-known point of order that, however learned he might be, no Monk nor other layman might usurp that right of public teaching and preaching which is the pre- rogative of the Priests of God.* Whenever, therefore, a Monk was for any cause promoted to be a Priest or Bishop, says Bingham, he was obliged to go through all other Orders of the Church, as it was then cus- tomary for laymen to do, before the superior Orders were conferred upon them; and in this respect, adds the same learned author, “the difference between a Monk and any other layman was only this, that a Monk by virtue of his edu- cation in a school of learning and good discipline (such as Monasteries then were) was supposed to be a better proficienr than other laymen, and therefore allowed the benefit of a quicker passage through the inferior Orders than other candi- dates of the Priesthood.” It does not appear that the Monks ordinarily aspired to the Sacerdotal Dignity, though there were several instances in which it was customary to promote them to the Priesthood. In the Lauras the Priest was natu- rally taken from among the Hermits, and a like rule was fol- lowed in all Monasteries of any considerable size. Indeed in * Leo, Ep. 60 al. 62. Illud quoque convenit precavere, ut preter eos qui sunt Domini Sacerdotes, nullus sibi jus docendi et preedicandi audeat vindicare, sive sit ille monachus, sive laicus, qui alicujus scientize nomine glorietur. INTRODUCTION. 29 the Cities, where the Monastic Houses were often very large and had Churches attached to them, the Archimandrite or Abbot was Priest of the Church, and was even permitted to have four or five of the other Monks hkewise ordained to the Priesthood for the service of their Church. On account of the learning and piety which prevailed in the Monasteries it also came to be common for Bishops who had need of Clergy to take Monks out of their Monasteries with the consent of the Abbot, and ordain them for the service of the Church. The men thus chosen commonly continued in the world that ascetic way of life which they had practised in the cloister ; and on this account both these and the Priests of Monasteries were by the Greeks called iepoyovayot or Priest-Monks, to dis- tinguish them on the one hand from Monks who were not Priests, and on the other from Priests who were not Monks. It happened, too, sometimes, that a Bishop and all his Clergy embraced an ascetic way of life, having all things common, renouncing individual property, living in one house, eating at one table, and being all clothed at the common expense. This happened oftener in early times at the East than at the West, St. Ambrose being the first who brought this way of living into the Western Church. St. Austin himself says that he intro- duced it into Hippo, where, as he declares, he made his Bishop’s-house a Monastery of Clergymen who, like the Apos- tles, had all things common.* Thus in a third way it came about that Monasticism was professed and practised by the Priesthood. Celibacy, however, was by no means exacted from the Clergy in general. A declared contempt for marriage was considered cause sufficient for the deposition of a Bishop or other Minister or for the excommunication of a layman. Mar- riage was no impediment to ordination even as a Bishop ; and Bishops, Priests, and Deacons, equally with other men, were forbidden to put away their wives under pretext ef religion. The case was different when a man was unmarried at the time of his ordination. Then he was held to have given himself wholly to Gop in the office of the Holy Ministry, and he was forbidden to take back from his offering that measure of his eares and his affections which must necessarily be given to * Aug. Serm. 49 de Diversis. Volui habere in isti domo Episcopi meum monas- terium clericorum, Ecce quomodo yivimus. WNulli licet in societate habere aliyuid proprium, 30 IN TRODUCTION: the maintenance and nurture of his family. In short, the married man might be ordained, but with a few exceptions no man was allowed to marry after ordination. It could net be that the devout practice of celibacy by Christian men of every order lay and clerical should thus pre- vail, without a corresponding tendency among the women of the Church. Rather we might look for greater and more marxed developments in this direction among women than among men. For in every age and country the chastity of women has been the one virtue without which all other virtues were of no avail ; and even among the heathen of the older world the Virein consecrated for her life or for a term of years was the most sacred type of womanhood. In a religion which declares as one of its most fundamental articles that the Errernat Son or Gop, being conceived of the Hoty Guost, did not abhor the Virgin’s womb ; but that, being Gop of the Substance of the Faruzr, He became Man of the Substance of the Blessed Virgin Mary His Mother ; in such a religion, it could not but be that from the first many holy women should give themselves to the Service of Gop in the estate of Perpetual Virginity. Such at least is the established fact ; and as ascetic celibacy was frequently embraced among men for centuries before monastic institutions became common in the Church, so among women there were many recognized as Virgins of the Church though dwelling at their own homes and in the midst of their own families before conventual communities of women had been thought of. Early in the second century we know from Tertullian that there were Vir- gins who made open and public profession of Virginity, and dedicated themselves to Curist in that estate ; that such Vir- gins were specially recognized by the Church ; that they were enrolled on the Sacred List of the Chureh (dvayeypaypévar év TO TOV éxKAnody Kavov) ; and that their customary distinec- tion was that of Virgins of the Church or Ecclesiastical Vir- gins (IMap0évor txnnovaorixat). ‘So that,” as Bingham says, “it is now out of dispute that as the ascetics for the first three hundred years were not [cloistered] Monks, so neither were the Sacred Virgins of the Church monastical Virgins or Nuns confined to a cloister as in after ages.” On what terms the profession of Virginity was permitted IN TROMUCTLION: 31 to be made is not by any means clear. It is admitted on all hands that there must have been on the woman’s part some, declaration of her purpose to continue in that state through- out her life ; but whether this was in the form of a simple declaration or in that of a solemn and irrevocable vow to Gop is not so certain. Perhaps in this as in so many other in- stances the custom was different in different Churches ; per- haps the custom was different at different times even in the same Church ; perhaps there was a choice left to the woman of the form in which she should profess; and perhaps in some cases there may have been a novitiate introduced by a simple profession of intention to remain a Virgin, followed when the woman was of riper years by a more solemn vow. It is evi- dent, however, that a solemn and irrevocable vow was not universally required in the age of St. Cyprian, who expressly says of the Virgins of the Church : “If they have given them- selves to Curist through faith, then let them abide so in modesty and chastity without pretence ; and so let them await in strength and stableness the wages of Virginity. But if they either cannot or if they will not abide, then better were it that they marry than that they should burn through their offences.” * Yet it is equally evident that the tendency of the Church’s legislation was always to greater and not less strict- ness in this matter, so that the penalty of excommunication was visited on professed Virgins who contracted marriages. It is to be observed, nevertheless, that such marriages were never declared to be null or void. The parties to them fell under the censures of the Church, and might not be absolved without a long continued penance ; but their act was not dis- annulled nor cancelled, neither was their union held to be adulterous. And it is further to be observed that by the im- perial laws as well as by the Canons of the Church, the Con- secration of a Virgin was not reputed valid till she was forty years of age, but that if done earlier it was in her power to disavow her profession and enter lawfully into the married state. * Cypr. Ep. 62 al. 4. ad Pompon. Si ex fide se Cristo dicaverunt, pudice et caste sine ulla fabula perseverent; ita fortes et stabiles premium Virginitatis exspectent. Si autem perseyerare nolunt, vel non possunt, melius est nubant, quam in ignem suis delictis cadant. 82 INTRODUCTION. When a Virgin desired to be consecrated she made known -her wish to the Bishop, who either himself or by one of his Presbyters met the woman in the Church, and there publicly invested her with the Virgin’s Habit, a peculiar dress by which she might at once be recognized as a consecrated person. To this was added the Veil, the usual badge of marriage, but in this case signifying the giving of herself to Gop. She also received a head-dress called the Mitre, and as there was a form, usual in secular marriages, of unbinding the woman’s hair in token of her subjection to her husband, so the Virgin’s hair was unbound in token of ber unreserved submission of herself to Curist. It will be noted that the consecration of a Virgin differs greatly from the ordination of a Deaconess. The Deaconess had an Office in the Church to which she was ordained by the Bishop only. The Virgin entered on a State of Life which the Church approved ; and in her public self-consecration she was recognized and invested with the symbols of her state by the Bishop himself, or by a Priest of his appointment. In a word, the Virgin stood to the Dea- coness in the same relation in which the Monk stood to the Clergy, and the ceremonies of her consecration: neces- sarily differed in a marked degree from the ordination of the Deaconess. The great esteem and veneration in which the Virgins of the Church were held, and the inviolable chastity which all believed them to maintain, led in the third and fourth cen- turies to an abuse which is repeatedly forbidden in the Canons. Unmarried Clergymen, requiring supervision for their households, employed women who were not kinswomen to live in their houses and take charge of their affairs. The desire of society and the fear of scandal often led them to prefer the Virgins of the Church for this position. The Vir- gins so entertained were naturally chosen from a preference on the Clergyman’s part—a preference which was not at all concealed, but on the contrary was openly professed. A chaste love and a wholly spiritual affection were declared to be the cause of the connection. The Virgins, or others, so living with Clergymen, were therefore called dyatytai or beloved ; and it would be uncharitable not to believe that in many instances the connection was, at least at first and in the purpose of the parties, pure and chaste. Yet in the nature of things it could LDR OD UCLPLoON’. 33 not but lead to great scandal and no small amount of actual sin even on the part of those whose first designs were inno- cent; and when the impure availed themseives of such a license the effect might readily have been foreseen. “ For it appears,” says Bingham, “from the complaints of St. Cyprian, St. Jerome, and others, that the practice of some was very in- tolerable ; for they not only dwelt together in the same house, but lodged in the same room, and sometimes in the same bed ; and yet would be thought innocent, and called others un- charitable and suspicious that entertained any hard thoughts of them.” With such an excess of charity as these lewd persons required, the Church declined to treat them, and proceeded against them as scandalous libertines who were unworthy of communion with her. And that such things might forever cease, it was absolutely forbidden to any Clergy- man of any order to have any woman (not of his near kin- dred) dwelling with him (ovveicaxrov). Grave as this scandal was, it would be difficult to find a better or more singular proof of the general estimation of the chastity of the Virgins of the Church than that such an outrage upon common decency should ever have been possible under such pretexts. Tur Winows of the Church were in regard to their habit, profession, consecration, and the like, under the same laws as the Virgins. They were required to have been only once married, and before profession to have long lived chastely and irreproachably after the death of their husbands. When they were admitted, they made to the Bishop openly in the Church a profession of their purpose to continue in the state of Widowhood, and were then invested by the Presbyter with the Widow’s garment. The ceremonies of their consecra- tion differed in some respects from that of Virgins, but the chief point of distinction was that Widows were forbidden either at their consecration or thereafter to assume the Vir- gin’s veil. We have thus glanced at the officers and other persons who were recognized in a peculiar manner by the Church, and had their names enrolled in the Sacerporan Lisr or Sacred Canon of the Church. The whole, as we have seen, comprises 34 [INTRODUCTION , I. Tue Priesruoop, including the Bishop, Presbyters, and Deacons. TI. Toe Minor Currey, including the Subdeacons, Aco- lythists, Exorcists, Readers, Doorkeepers, Singers, and the Copiate or Fossarii. Here, too, perhaps, we ought to class the Deaconesses. III. Cruertcat Orricers, that is persons chosen from the whole list of the Clergy, superior and inferior, to fulfill some special function. Such were the Parabolani, the Catechists, the Steward, the Sceuophylax, and the Hermeneute. TV. OFricerRS WHO MIGHT BE EITHER CLERGYMEN oR LayMeEn, viz., The Advocate or Defensor, the Mansionarius, the War- dens, the Notarii, and the Apocrisarii. V. Tue Ascerics, including Monks, Virgins, and Widows. Ciipaae anor ANCIENT CHURCHES AND THE APPOINTED STATIONS OF THE VARIOUS CLASSES OF THE LAITY. CHURCHES IN THE AGE OF PERSECUTIONS AND AFTERWARDS. THE CATHEDRAL AND THE SEE. ORATORIES. MARTYRIES. CEMETERIES. THE BISHOP’S THRONE. THE ALTAR. THE BEMA. THE PROTHESIS. THE DIACONICUM. THE CHANCEL. THE HOLY GATES. THE NAVE. PLACE OF THE MINOR CLERGY AND THE FAITHFUL, THE CO-STANDERS. THE AMBO. PLACE OF THE READERS AND SINGERS. PLACE OF THE PROSTRATORS. THE WOMEN’S GALLERY. THE INTERIOR NARTHEX. THE ROYAL GATES. PLACE OF THE HEARERS AND CATECHUMENS. PRIVILEGES OF THD HEARERS. CATECHUMENS, THEIR AGE, THEIR PROBATION, THEIR FOUR CLASSES, THE GREAT GATES, PLACE OF THE HYEMANTES. PENANCE IN THE PRIMITIVE CHURCH WAS A DISCIPLINE, NOT A PUNISHMENT NOR A MERITORIOUS EXPIATION. FTER the account of the Clergy and Asceties of the early Church which has been given in the previous chapter, it will be expected that we should give some account of any classes or distinctions that were recognized among the Laity ; and possibly the best way to do this acceptably will be to combine a brief description of the Sacred Edifices of that age with some slight outline of the ancient discipline. During the centuries of persecution Christian Churches were extremely simple in their form and structure. The necessities of the time often compelled the Christians to per- form the Holy Mysteries of their religion in whatever place seemed likeliest to afford security from the intrusion of their enemies ; yet it is evident that from the first they had their consecrated places for the worship of Almighty Gop, and that their use of common dwellings, caves, and catacombs was caused by mere necessity, not from a disregard of the pro- prieties and decencies of Gop’s House. The moment they were free from danger, Churches (kvpiaxd) appeared in every City ; and where the number of believers needed more than one, they were indefinitely multiplied. The chief Church of the City was the Bishop’s Church, not that he had less author- ity in one Church than another, but because in that he had his special throne (@pévoc), or seat of office, which was there- fore called the Bema ((ija), or Tribunal, because it was there 36 INTRODUCTION. that he pronounced his sentences and made known his deci- sions. The Bisnop’s throne was called by the Latins Sedes and by the Greeks Cathedra, whence we derive our English word See to designate the City from which he takes his title, and CaTHEprat as the name of his chief Church. Besides the Cathedral there were frequently other Churches that demand some special notice. Such were Oratories (tpooevKripta, olkot evKejptol), a name which is often indiscriminately applied to all Churches wnat- ever, but which more strictly belongs to private chapels which were always dependent on the Parish Church, and were licensed only for the purpose of Common Prayer, and not for the Celebraticn of Holy Communion. Marrtyries (wapttpia) were Churches erected over the eraves of Martyrs or called by their names ; but if the person in memory of whom the Church was built was a Prophet or Apostle, then it was called Propuernum (tpodytetov), or Avos- TOLEUM (a7ooToA€tor). CEMETERIES (Kolwn77pla), were the same as Martyries, except in origin. During times of persecution the Christians were accustomed to assemble in private vaults or burying places, and particularly at the graves of Martyrs and Confessors ; and when the persecutions ended they erected Churches on the places which had thus been doubly consecrated and en- deared to them both by the ashes of the Saints, and by the consolations of religion. Such Churches received the name of Cemeteries, that is, sleeping-places, which had previously been given to the burying-ground or vault above which they were built. But by whatever name known, and however simple or however ornate in their structure, all Churches were arranged in much the same way as the Eastern Churches of the present day ; and this fact is an evidence not only of the prevalence of liturgies which closely corresponded with each other, but also, as the reader will ere long perceive, of a uniform order of discipline. Let us then proceed to examine the ground plan of an ancient Church as it is exhibited in the engraving opposite to the title-page of this book. Following the order suggested by the figures on the draw- ing we find first of all (1) at the East end, in the center of a IN ER.ODUC TION . 37 ereat arc, the Bishop’s Turone (@pévoc) which was also some- times called the Bema (37a); and to the right and left of this are the lower thrones or sedilia of the Presbyters. Immediately in front of the Bishop’s Throne is the Attar (2) called in Greek Ovotaoripror, that is, an Altar of Oblation or Holy Table, but never called Bwydc, a name which was ex- clusively applied to heathen altars. This distinction suffices to explain the fact that while in their Canons and other writ- ings the ancient Fathers habitually spoke of the Holy Table as an Altar, @vovaoripiov, they indignantly denied that they had Bwyotc, that is, such altars or for such purposes as the heathen had. The enclosed space around the Altar (3) took its name from the Bishop’s Throne, and hence was commonly called the Bema; but it was also sometimes, though seldom, called the Atrar. Intothe Bema none but Bishops, Priests, and Deacons were permitted to enter. Opening into the Bema by a door on its North side is (4) the Proruesis (7pd0ectc), or room in which the offerings of the people were received, and particularly the Bread and Wine which were to be consecrated at the Altar. On the South side of the Bema, is (4’), the Dracontcum (dtaxovikdv), or Deacon’s Room, in which were kept the Sacred Vestments and Holy Vessels which were used in Di- vine Service. The entrance from the Body of the Church to the Bema is (5) through the Hoty Gares (dysae wbAac), which stand in the middle of a partition (6) of lattice-work or rails (Kvy- KAidec, Lat. Cancelli, whence our English Chancel). Passing through the Holy Gates Westward we come (7) into the Body or Nave (vdoc) of the Church ; and here, next to the Chancel, was the place for the Minor Crerey and Farrarunt Larry (moro, téAevor), who were in the enjoyment of the full Communion of the Church. With these a class of Prenrrenrs was permitted to stand during the service of the Church, on which account they were called Consisrentes (ovviotduevor), or Co-stanpers. These per- sons were permitted to communicate in prayers with the faithful ; that is, to be present at all parts of the service, even the Oblation or Celebration of the Holy Eucharist. They were therefore in one sense Communicants, but they were not 38 [INTRODUCTION : permitted to partake of the Holy Gifts, and were not reputed as Communicants, until they were restored to the full Com- munion (70 réAevov) of the faithful at the Altar. In the Nave stood the Ampo (aur), an elevated platform for the Readers and Singers who ascended to it by a flight ‘of steps, and Behind the Ambo was the place appointed for the second class of Penitents called Prosrrators or KnesiErs (v7o07in- Tovrec, yovuKdivor7ec) from the attitude of kneeling or pros- tration which they were required to preserve during the prayers of the Church. They were excluded not only from receiving, but even from being present at the Celebration of the Eucharist, and were dismissed with the benediction of the Bishop, after special prayers had been offered in their behalf, but before the Oblation was begun. On the North and South of the Nave there was generally (8) a Portico on the ground-floor, and above this a Gallery occupied exclusively by the women. West of the Nave, but still within the Body of the Church was (9) the Ivrertor Narruex (vdp07&, tpovdoc), opening into the Nave by (10) the Beautiful or Royal Gates (m0Aat wpaiat, mbAa Baotdtkai), and in this was the appointed place of the third class of Penitents called Hearers, as well as of the Carrecuumens, and of Jews, Heathens, Heretics, or Schismatics who desired from any cause to hear the doctrines of the Church. The Hearers (dkpo@evor) were not permitted to enter the Nave, nor to join even in Common Prayers with the rest of the Congregation. They were admitted only to the Interior Nar- thex and allowed to listen to the reading of the Scriptures, the recitation of the Psalms, and the Sermons which were commonly delivered by the Bishop only, but sometimes by a Presbyter of his appointment : and when the Prayers began the Hearers were commanded to withdraw. The Carecuumens (Kat7yovjevol) were persons recelvying elementary instruction in the Christian religion, with a view to Holy Baptism. When they had made formal application for Baptism they were acknowledged in an imperfect sense as Christians, and were admitted to the state of Catechumens with some solemnity and ceremony, including prayers, imposi- tion of hands, and the Sign of the Cross. INTRODUCTION. 39 The age at which Catechumens might be received varied according to circumstances. The heathen were received at any age at which they might present themselves; unbaptized children were received even under seven years of age ; and the baptized children of the Faithful were considered as Catechumens from the moment that they were capable of receiving instruction. The length of time that the Catechumens were required to wait before they were baptized varied in like manner. Not unfrequently Baptism was administered almost or quite im- mediately ; but more than one Provincial Council found it expedient to require a probation of considerable length, as two or even three years. There were, probably, four recognized Classes of the Cate- chumens, though many of the learned make but two. Ham- mond, following Bingham, gives them as follows: 1. Those who were under private instruction only, and not yet publicly received as Catechumens in the Church. 2. The Hearers, who were permitted to hear the Scriptures read and the Ser- mon preached, but not to remain for any of the Prayers,.not even for those which related to the other classes of Catechu- mens. 3. The Kyreters, who remained during the Prayers for the Catechumens which immediately followed the Bishop’s Sermon, together with those for the Energumens and Peni- tents. After these prayers they received the imposition of hands, kneeling. 4. The Comprrenres or Exect, called in Greek BarrTiGouevor or dwriGouevot, who were the immediate candidates for Baptism, and had received the Bishop’s exami- nation and approval. Again proceeding Westward from the Interior Narthex we pass (10’) through the Great Gates into the Exterior Narthex, or area included within the wall which inclosed the whole circumference of the outer courts. In front of the Great Gates there was an open area (aiOprov) of greater or less ex- tent (11) surrounded by a portico (oroa/), and having some- where, generally near the middle, a fountain (/aAa) or spring (ppéap) of pure water. In our engraving which is copied from Beveridge, the fountain is perhaps incorrectly represented in the Interior Narthex (12); though it may be that this was its actual place in some Churches. It was in the open area that the lowest 40 INTRODUCTION. class of penitents were found. They were such as had been euilty of hemous crimes, and were not so much penitents in the ecclesiastical sense of that word, as candidates for re- admission to the Church by means of the established disci- pline of public penance. They were called Mourners or Werrers (ovykdAaiovrec) and stood or lay without the Great Gates with visible tokens of mortification and distress, beg- ging the prayers of the Clergy and of the Faithful as they entered. This class of penitents is also sometimes called xesacouevot, Hiemantes, or Hibernantes, on account of their being compelled to remain exposed to the weather outside the shelter of the Church. Of the penitential discipline of the Primitive Church, it cannot be out of place even in a work of this kind to observe that it was emphatically a system of discipline. It was in no sense a system of punishment inflicted by the Church on her offending members. On the contrary, it was always asked by the returning sinner, and was granted to him as a grace ; the Church endeavouring, by a long-continued course of spiritual exercises suited to his weakness, to advance him prudently to higher and still higher privileges ; till at length she might again embrace him in the full communion of the Blessed Sacrament without the apprehension of a second fall. So, too, the course of penance through which he was called to pass was in no sense conceived to be a meritorious expiation of his past offences. The state of penance in its very nature in- volved a renunciation of all pretence of merit, and its object was not to atone for the abuse of past grace, but by means of discipline to frame the heart and life to a worthier use of more grace which was in due time to be again received. A reference to the numerous Canons on this subject will show that the appointed times of penance were exceedingly protracted, sometimes reaching even to the hour of death. Yet a certain discretion was almost always left with the Bishop to dispense with some part of the penance if he saw in the demeanour of the penitent such signs of true repentance as sufficed to justify such leniency ; and whatever might have been the crime for which the penance was imposed, no dying sinner was permitted to depart without the consolation of the Blessed Sacrament, “the last, most indispensable provision for his journey,” as it is called by the Council of Niczea. INTRODUCTION. 41 It is needless to observe to the attentive reader of these Canons that they contain no trace, however slight, of any compulsory or obligatory confessions required from mem- bers of the Church on any occasions or for any reasons whatever. Yet to the careful reader, and even to the curious, these documents are not without some indications of a voluntary opening of spiritual griefs to an appointed Minister of Gop. ls Miele el yi bay) eal gp Ye PARISHES, PROVINCES, AND DIOCESES OF THE CHURCH. PARISIES. COUNTRY DISTRICTS. -CHOREPISCOPI. THEIR ORDINATION. THEIR PRIVI- LEGES AND DUTIES. THEIR VALUE. EFFICIENCY OF PRIMITIVE ORGANIZATION. POWER OF THE BISHOP. SOLIDARITY OF THE EPISCOPATE. JURISDICTION OF THE WHOLE OVER THE PART; OF THE PROVINCE OVER THE PARISH. PROVINCIAL SYN- ODS. METROPOLITANS. THEIR PRIVILEGES AND DUTIES. EARLY DATE OF THE METROPOLITICAL SYSTEM. ITS UNIVERSALITY. THE DIOCESE A PROVINCE OF PROVINCES. DIOCESAN SYNODS AS COURTS OF APPEAL. THE ARCHBISHOP OR EXARCH. PATRIARCH A LATER TERM. DUTIES AND PRIVILEGES OF THE ARCH- BISHOP. ALL ARCHBISHOPS EQUAL. PRECEDENCE GIVEN TO ROME AND CONSTAN- TINOPLE FOR POLITICAL REASONS. NO TRACE OF THE ROMAN PAPACY TO BE FOUND IN THE CANONS. I. Parisurs anp Country Districts. * 7 HEREVER the civil power had erected a municipal organization, it was the policy of the Church to create a See, and to establish a Bishop ; and the jurisdiction of the Bishop was made co-extensive with the Parish of which the City was the political centre. So strong, indeed, was the tendency to multiply Bishoprics in places where there was even the appearance of a real need of episcopal oversight, that at a very early period it was necessary to forbid Bishops to be consecrated for the villages or lesser towns. Yet, as the Parishes connected with the Cities were often of considerable size, including widely separated and extensive districts which it was impossible for any City Bishop to attend to, it was customary in the primitive age, and particularly in the East, for the City Bishop to appoint and ordain Bishops of such country districts to act as his representatives. Such country Bishops were called Chorepiscopi. They had no independent power or jurisdiction whatsoever, but were merely the repre- sentatives and deputies of the City Bishop, by whom they were appointed, and to whom they were responsible. So limited, in fact, was their authority, that not a few of the learned have supposed them to have been merely Presbyters ; DN TRODUCTEON. 43 but there seems to be no doubt that they were true Bishops. though their appointment might be made and their ordination might be performed by only one Bishop; while the ap- pointment of the City Bishop required the concurrent choice of the Bishops of the Province, and his ordination required the presence and participation of at least three of their number. The Chorepiscopus was charged with a general oversight of the Clergy of his district; and he might ordain Clergymen of Minor Orders, such as Sub-Deacons, Readers, and Exorcists, without being required to consult the City Bishop in every particular instance. Presbyters and Deacons they were strictly prohibited from ordaining without the express consent of their Bishop. They had the right to confirm persons who had been baptized in the Churches of their districts, and they were permitted to grant letters dimissory to such Clergy of their districts as desired to remove to another district or Parish. They were permitted, when in the City, to officiate in the presence of the Bishop and Presbyters of the City—a privilege not granted to the country Presbyters ; and in Councils oi the Church they had a right to sit, to vote, and to subscribe the decrees which might be enacted—a right enjoyed by no Presbyter. Yet it is probable that the functions of the Chor- episcopus were not at all times and in all places the same ; but rather that they very greatly varied, sometimes approach- ing, if not equalling the independence and authority of the City Bishop ; and sometimes falling so nearly to the level of the Presbyter as to be performed by one of that order. So, too, the number of the Chorepiscopi varied very greatly in different ages ; for while in the fourth and fifth centuries they are constantly noticed in ecclesiastical documents, they seem as early as the ninth to have passed nearly, if not quite, out of existence. Of the usefulness of such assistants to the Bishop of an extensive Parish there can hardly be a doubt ; and it may well be considered whether the creation of some such officers as the Chorepiscopi is not the best way now of meet- ing the imperative demand for increased episcopal efficiency among ourselves, and also whether in a country like our own the Chorepiscopus in his District would noi be the best agent to prepare the way for the subsequent establishment of the Bishop in his See. Let it be borne in mind, however, that the 44 INTRODUCTION: Chorepiscopus was never meant to do away with the direct and personal supervision of the Bishop. On the contrary, the Bishop was expected to visit every district of his Parish fre- quently, and never less than once a year. It was only when a multiplicity of duties or unusual extent of territory hindered him from doing more than this, that he was expected to ap- point a Chorepiscopus for his outlyimg districts. Nothing, indeed, can be more admirable than the practical sagacity and nice address with which the Bishop’s personal power and influence was made to permeate and be felt through every portion of his jurisdiction. In the City, his well-ordered corps of Presbyters, Deacons, Minor Clergymen, and other officers was daily carrying the influences of his power, of his authority, and of his charity to representatives of every class of men ; and in the Country, where it was impossible that he should come into as frequent contact with the members of his charge, the Chorepiscopus, his own, appointed, confidential representative, in like manner conveyed his admonitions or obeyed his orders. Thus, common sense and tact arranged a system of organization nearly perfect in the then existing cir- cumstances ; and intelligent organization soon achieved and long sustained the triumphs of the Church. Indeed, no ttle of the wonder with which one reads of the marvellous rapidity with which the faith spread among the heathen population, in a measure disappears when we consider the efficiency with which the Church’s power was made to reach to every sort and condition of men. Give the Church now her Bishops in every City, and let them take the primitive Church for the model of their action, rather than for the convenient topic of homiletic panegyric, and the same results will follow from like causes of success. II. Tue Province. We have now seen in the present as well as in the previous chapters of this Introduction the immense powers, spiritual, moral, and temporal, which were entrusted to the Bishops of the primitive age ; and if it seem at first sight that such pow- ers were too great to be committed to the head of any body of free men, we must remember that the Bishop was himself, INTRODUCTION. 45 in fact as well as theory, the executive and representative of an authority superior to his own. The Episc»pate of the whole world was held to be a unit to which, as to a never-dying Col- lege of Apostles, was committed the ingathering and safe- keeping of the Flock of Curisr. Of this Sacred College every Bishop in his Parish was the representative, It was his duty to instruct his people in the doctrine that was held by all, to strengthen them with means of grace enjoyed by all, to rule them upon principles approved by all of the Episcopate. His government was therefore never meant to be a merely arbi- trary or personal government; it was part of the charge of the undivided Episcopate ; and what he did, he did as the executive of its authority rather than his own. And as the power of the Episcopate was exercised by one Bishop over the people of one Parish, so the Bishops of every Province, acting in their corporate capacity, exercised the power of their united Episcopate over every Bishop and every Parish within their jurisdiction. When a See was vacant, no election by the people was sufficient to the installation even of a man who had already been elsewhere ordained and con- secrated as a Bishop. Jurisdiction over the See was inherent, not in the people of the See, but in the Bishops of the Pro- vince in which the See was situated ; and no Bishop might pretend to jurisdiction over any portion of the Province who had not had jurisdiction given to him by the Bishops of the Province. Even when he had been validly elected, duly con- secrated, and canonically constituted Bishop of his See, they still retained the power to try him for malfeasance, to reverse his unwise judgments, and if need were, to withdraw the jurisdiction they had given him. The Provincial Synod, there- fore, in which the Bishops of the Province assembled twice a year, was a real power in every Parish. In it lay the true safety of the members of the Church against attempted usur- pation or injustice by the Bishop ; and in it, too, lay the safety of the Church against corruptions of her doctrine ; for it was one special purpose of these frequent Synods that the Bishops might make mutual examinations of each other as to purity of doctrine. . The Synods usually assembled in the Metropolis of the Province, and then courtesy alone would require that the Bishop of that City should preside. It seems, however, to 46 INTRODUCTION have been settled from the first that the right to preside in a provincial Synod was vested in the Bishop of the Metropolitan See, and the Canons subsequently decreed that no Provincial Synod should be held to be validly constituted, unless he should be present and preside. It was also the right of the Metropolitan to take charge of all vacant Sees within his Pro- vinee; to administer their affairs; to secure their revenues; to procure the speedy election of Bishops and to ordain them, or appoint some other to ordain them ; it was his duty to inter- pose and endeavour to settle controversies or disputes that might arise among them; to summon them to attend his Synod at such enn ings and at such places as he might designate : to cite before the Synod any Bishop who might be accused of error in doctrine, viciousness of life, or maladminis- tration in office ; to make due publication of such imperial laws or ecclesiastical canons as might from time to time be passed by competent authority ; and to give letters commen- datory to Bishops about to travel ; without which, indeed, no Bishop was at liberty to leave his Parish. Yet in the Synod over which he presided, the Metropolitan had no more power than any other Bishop. He was simply primus inter pares, and might speak and vote no otherwise than as his peers. In short, he had that amount of influence and prestige which attaches to the permanent President and Executive Head of any eminent body of legislators ; and no more. The Provincial and Metropolitical System of the Church dates from the earliest time. One of the early Apostolical Canons, dating possibly from the beginning or middle of the Second Century, before the persecuted Church had dared to show herself at all points side by side with the imperial authorities, expressly declares the principle of the System. The language is as follows: “It is necessary that the Bishops of.every nation should know who is chief among them, and should recognize him as their head by doing nothing of great moment without his consent ; and that each of them should do such things only as pertain to his own Parish and the dis- tricts under him. And neither ought he (who is chief) to do anything without the consent of all; for thus shall there be unity of heart, and thus shall Gop be glorified through our Lor» Jesus Curist.” The use of the word nation instead of INTRODUCTION, 47 Province, and the absence of all mention, eo nomine, of a Metropolitan, suffice to show the early date of this Canon ; while its whole tenor, followed by the solemn con- clusion, sufficiently proves that the gathering of neigh- boring Bishops round one recognized chief of thcir own order for mutual counsel and support, was a thing which might indeed have been neglected, but which was yet recognized as of the customary order of the Church.* From the moment that the Church emerged from her sore persecutions she is found to have been, as universally estab- lished, with her Provinces and Metropolitans, as with her Bishops, Priests and Deacons; and the single exception of those African Provinces, in which circumstances had led to the adoption of the rule that the Bishops should preside in the order of their Seniority, without regard to the location of their Sees, is not a happy one. For when the hordes of Islam fell upon the Christians of the Hast and on the North of Africa, the Churches of the Hast stood fast in their integrity ; while those of Africa, having no head, no centre, and no mu- tual bond of union and support, were swept off as in a day by hundreds, and left not a trace behind. Til. Tse Diocese. The Province, with its Metropolis, its Synod, and its exe- cutive officer and President, the Metropolitan, which probably existed from the first foundation of the Church, contained * The present essay is not the right place in which to enter into the discussion of historical questions even when their bearing upon matters of undoubted practical im- portance is immediate and direct. But if these questions were proposed: Whether the Provincial and Metropolitical System, as we find it universally established in the Fourth Century, was formed on grounds of human reason by the voluntary aggregation of isolated Sees, round the Metropolis as a convenient Centre: Or whether, on the con- _trary, the Metropolis, from the beginning and of divine purpose, was intended to be, as in point of historical fact it actually was, the Mother Church of the Country or Pro- vince, with which every other See within her area was from the first connected as a spiritual daughter :—the writer is prepared on grounds of Holy Scripture, history, and common sense, to prove the former proposition to be false, and the latter, with one possible exception, to be true. He commends the consideration of this subject to his learned readers: for in this, as he conceives, is matter for reflection nearly touching the great problem of the missionary agency of ‘‘this Church” on this Continent and elsewhere. As things stand now, the question is between ourselves with all our justly boasted purity of primitive truth, and Rome with her sagacious following of primitive organization; but at our present rate of progress she will leave us out of sight before the present century is ended. 48 INTRODUCTION. within itself the idea of the larger cooperation of the Bishops of the Diocese when the division of the Empire into Dicceses came to be made. In our first chapter we have shown that the Provinces of the Empire were at first comparatively few and of immense extent, and that for certain reasons they were gradually subdivided till their number had increased to nearly one hundred and twenty. These successive sub- divisions were, apparently, invariably followed by the Church, so that wherever the State erected a new Province with its own Metropolis, there the Church established her Synod and recognized the Metropolitan. In like manner, the sub- sequent erection of the Dioceses of the Empire, with the Ex- archs or Vicars at the head of their administration, was at once accepted by the Church as the convenient geographical arrangement of Superior Synods and Tribunals of the Church. Whenever, therefore, it was found impossible for the Synod of a Province to arrive at moral unanimity in the determination of a matter of importance that had been submitted to it, the whole matter could be brought before a Greater Synod of the Diocese in which the Pro- vince was. Or if a Bishop had been condemned to any punishment by his Provincial Synod, he was free to carry up his cause to the Superior Court of the Diocesan Synod ; and whatever cause was there determined could be brought before no higher Court. The erection of Dioceses dates only from about the time of Constantine, and the Chief Bishop of the Diocese was originally called Arcupispop—a word which now means merely a Metropolitan Bishop, but which then meant not merely a Metropolitan, but the acknowledged head of all the Metropolitans whose Provinces had been included by imperial decree within one Diocese. In the Canons he is also called the Exarcu of the Church, this being the word which also designated the Chief Civil Magistrate of the Diocese. It was not until a later period that the name Parriarcu began to be applied to certain of the Arch- bishops. The Archbishops generally were ordained by the Synod of the Diocese over which they were appointed to preside ; and it was their privilege to ordain all other Metropolitans of the Province ; to call the Synods of the Diocese and to preside INTRODUCTION. 49 therein ; to receive appeals from the decisions of Metrepoli- tans and of Metropolitan Synods ; and to take cognizance of charges brought against Metropolitans, or even against the Provincial Bishops in case their Metropolitans were lax or remiss in discipline. In addition to these general privileges which were enjoyed by all Archbishops, the local customs of certain Sees permitted other privileges which were neither claimed nor granted elsewhere. But whatever power they might enjoy at home among the Metropolitans and other Bishops of their several Dioceses, the Archbishops had no power whatever over each other ; no appeal lay from any one of them to any other; they had no superior but a General Council of the Catholic Church. Yet for political reasons which are plainly stated in the Canons which decreed it, the Bishop of Rome as being Bishop of what was then the Capital of the world and seat of the imperial dignity, was permitted a certain precedence of honour among other Archbishops. For a like reason the Archbishop of Constantinople, whose _ See was then the Second Capital of the world and seat of the imperial dignity in the East, enjoyed the second place of honour. The third place seems to have been held by the Archbishop of Alexandria. This precedence was entirely a matter of Canon, and how little it depended on even the most sacred traditions may be inferred from the fact that the See of Jerusalem, where the Apostolic office was created by our Lorp Himself, and whose first Bishop 8S. James the Just pre- sided over the First Council of the Sacred College of “ Apos- tles, Elders, and Brethren,” was for a long time not allowed even the dignity of a Metropolis, but was subordinate to the See of Czesarea, under whose Metropolitan the Bishop of Jerusalem enjoyed only such precedence of rank over the other Bishops of the Province, as is now enjoyed by Bishops of Lon- don over their fellow-suffragans of the Province of Canter- bury. To trace how the greater Patriarchates grew out of the Dioceses, and how the Patriarchate of the West grew up into the present arrogance and insolence of the Roman Papacy, with its absurd pretence of personal infallibility and universal jurisdiction, is not necessary to the student of the carly Coun- cils of the Christian Church. In them he will discover not a sign of any universal jurisdiction save that of the universal Catholic Episcopate when gathered in a General Council. Of 50 INTRODUCTION. the personal infallibility of any individual Bishop, which would have made General Councils and all controversies in behalf of truth unnecessary, he will also find no sign. In other words, he will discover that throughout the age in which the undisputed General Councils of the Church were held, the Roman Papacy had not been born, nor had it even been con- ceived, Cb Are BEV, HISTORY OF THE COUNCILS OF THE CHURCH. NATURAL TENDENCY TO COUNCILS IN THE EARLY CHURCH. ORIGIN OF THE APOSTO=2 LICAL CANONS. THEIR ANTIQUITY. THEIR AUTHENTICITY. SYNODS PROVINCIAL, DIOCESAN, AND GENERAL. AUTHORITY OF GENERAL COUNCILS. TEST OF THEIR CECUMENICITY. SANCTION OF THE FIVE PROVINCIAL SYNODS BY THE COUNCIL OF CHALCEDON. COUNCILS OF ANCYRA, NEO-CZSAREA, NICHA. PRESIDENTS AT Nie CHA. CONDUCT OF CONSTANTINE. ARIUS. EXPANSION OF APOSTOLICAL CANONS, CANONS OF SARDICA. HISTORY OF THE SARDICAN COUNCIL. COUNCILS OF GANGRA, ANTIOCH. TRICK OF THE ARIANS. LAODICEA. rT HE very nature of the Episcopate as a body represented by individual men, rather than an aggregation of indi- viduals, must, independently of every other cause, have led the Bishops of the early ages to take frequent counsel with each other ; and particularly when some case of general in- terest to the Church, or to their order, might, from time to time, occur. In ages of persecution, the number of Bishops who could conveniently or even safely meet together for such consultations, would be very limited ; and then the spirit of charity as well as a desire of approbation from their brethren would lead to the communication of their acts to other Bishops who had not been able to be present. On the other hand, previous decisions thus communicated, would have great weight with all later gatherings of Bishops; and so, gradually, it might be expected that a kind of common Code would grow into existence and command the general obedience of all or- ders in the Church. Such, beyond a reasonable doubt, was the precise way in which the most ancient code of Canons in existence came to be compiled. The Canons called Apos- tolical, though there is not the slightest evidence that they were written in the age of the Apostles, are of very high anti- quity ; and Beveridge (in his Codex Canonum Eccles. Prim.) clearly shows that they had grown up into general acceptance in successive Synods ; that they had been gathered into one collection by some unknown hand before the termination of the second century, or certainly, at latest, in the first part of 52 INTRODUCTION: the third ; and that before the Council of Nicea they were recognized as universally obligatory everywhere throughout the Church. Some persons, indeed, as Hammond well sums up a lengthy controversy, ‘are disposed to consider the first fifty of these Canons as of more authority than the remainder, and Beveridge himself does not appear decidedly against this opinion. There does not, however, seem to be any sufficient foundation for it. It appears to have originated in the cir- cumstance of the first fifty only having been translated into Latin by Dionysius Exiguus, and inseried into his collection of the Canons about A. D. 500 ; which collection was used in the Latin Church. The whole eighty-five exist in the con- temporary collection of John of Antioch ; they were acknowl- edged and approved as ancient and authoritative by Justinian who began to reign A. D. 526; and they are received and commented upon by all Greek writers and commentators with- out distinction. There is no apparent break or dissimilarity of style between the two portions ; but what is the most con- clusive proof of their unity is, that the references to the Canons by both Fathers and Councils, are made as distinctly and un- hesitatingly to the Canons in the latter part of the Collection as in the former. Neither does there appear to be any reason for suspecting that the collection or addition of these Canons, as we have it, was made by Arians or other heretics. On the contrary, the circumstance of the Arians, in the Council of Antioch, having formed their own Canons upon these, and under cover of them made their attack upon Athanasius and Paul, is a strong argument of their previous reputation and authority in the Church.” It seems, indeed, impossible to entertain a doubt of the antiquity, the universality, or the general integrity of the Apostolic Canons, after reading Bev- eridge’s masterly vindication and illustration of that ancient Code ; and though the Councils in which they were gradually set forth have been long ago forgotten, yet they are, on that ac- count, in no degree less venerable. For, like the Common Law of England, these Canons were accounted in the universal Church as of such antiquity that the memory of man ran not to the contrary ; and thus they were accepted from the Coun- cil of Niceea downwards as a fundamental portion of the Canons of the Catholic Church. When the Provincial System of the Church had been INTRODUCTION. 53 clearly established, and the cessation of persecutions had made it possible to carry out that system with some slight approach to its integrity, the Synods of the Church, as we have seen, were Synods of the Province, of the Diocese, or of the Universal Church in all its Provinces. The authority of a Provincial Synod extended over the Province in which it had jurisdiction. The authority of a Diocesan Syncd, in like man- ner, extended over the Diocese in which it was held. It is not, however, to be therefore inferred that a General Council had of necessity an equal jurisdiction over the universal Church. For, not to enter into any doctrinal or theological reasons, General Councils were sometimes extremely meagre in the disproportion of their numbers, to the Hpiscopate of the whole Church. Thus, at Nicza there were present only 318 Bishops ; at Constantinople only 150 ; and at Chalcedon the far larger number of 630; though even this was but a fragment of the total number of Bishops in the Universal Church. In such assemblies, where whole Provinces, Dio- ceses, nations, were entirely unrepresented, it is evident that there was no true presence of the Catholic Episcopate, even by representation ; and particularly as the Bishops who were actually present came of their own personal pleasure, not by the election of their comprovincial Bishops. Since, then, the presence of the universal Episcopate would have been necessary to give universal jurisdiction to a Council, and universal au- thority to its decrees, it follows that no General Council had in virtue of that name, or of its numbers, or of the circumstances of its meeting, any universal jurisdiction or authority through- out the Church of Curist. The assembly of Bishops at Ephe- sus, A. D. 449, had as many of the visible tokens of a General Council! of the Catholic Church as the Councii of Constan- tinople ; while the latter has been universally accepted by the Universal Church, while the former has as universally been branded with the titie of a Band of Robbers. What, then, is the test of the authority of General Councils? Simply their general recognition as true General Councils and the general reception of their doctrines and decrees throughout the Uni- versal Church. By this test every General Council stands or falls. By this test the doctrines of the Six Great Councils of Niczea, Constantinople, Ephesus, Chalcedon, and the Second and Third of Constantinople, stand, being to this day undis- oy | 4 INTRODUCTION. puted by any Catholic Church. Perhaps it were as well for Christendom if the Canons of the First Four had in later times been as religiously regarded as the doctrines of the Six. With the Second and Third Councils of Constantinople we have no concern in this work, for those Councils passed no Canons, but were occupied exclusively with doctrine. We shall therefore confine the brief historical outline we are now about to give, to the First Four General Councils, and the Five Provincial Councils of Ancyra, Neo-Cesarea, Gangra, Antioch, and Laodicea, whose decrees received the sanction of the General Council of Chalcedon.* Councit or ANCYRA. The Council of Ancyra was held A. D. 314 or 315; that is to say, about ten or eleven years before the First General Council of Nicza. Ancyra was the Metropolis of one of the * The writer has been requested to discuss the question whether no other Canons than those of the Five Provincial Councils above-named were approved at Chalcedon. As it is the purpose of the present work to include only what is universally received by East and West, it would be beyond its purpose to discuss that question. Never- theless, the writer cannot withhold from his readers the hints suggested by a reverend and very learned correspondent. P ‘““If is a very important point,’ he observes, ‘‘to determine what Canons are authorized by Canon I. of Chalcedon. I think that all Canons of orthodox Synods and Councils, East and West, which were held prior to Chalcedon, are authorized: those of local Councils being approved—not indeed as of cecumenical force; but as of force within the jurisdiction of the local Synod which enacted them. Hence, such Canons as those of Eliberis in Spain are, by Canon I. of Chalcedon, recognized as of force there. Provincial Councils and those which were Diocesan, as, for example, that of the six Provinces of North Africa under Carthage, were, as you know, recognized as haying the power to enact Canons, long before the Fourth Gicumenical Council. The erudite Beveridge does, indeed, favour the view that the only Canons of local Councils ap- proved by the Canon of Chalcedon are those of Ancyra, Neo-Cesarea, Gangra, Antioch, and Laodicea; and Hammond, pp. 148 and 149, seems to follow his notion, as I myself once did; but I now think otherwise. For those from the West who approved this enactment would naturally, in the absence of any sufficient proof to the contrary, understand all Canons before Chalcedon, Western as well as Eastern, to be ap- proved.” Without entering into further detail on this point, the writer would simply observe— 1. That Canon I. of Chalcedon denies the force of no Canon previously passed by any competent Synod for the government of the Church within its jurisdiction; but that 2. No Canons except those of Ancyra, Gangra, Neo-Czesarea, Antioch, and Laodicea, are universally recognized, East and West, as haying received a universal force from the endorsement of Chalcedon; and 3. That no Western Province would have a right to think that its provincial rules had been specially approved, unless it had positive evidence that they had been spe- cially examined, [NEW ODE CLL ON:. 55 Provinces of Galatia, and was chosen as a convenient place of meeting for the Bishops of Asia Minor, Pontus, Cappadocia, Armenia, Cilicia, and Syria; though the number who actually attended was only eighteen. The principal object of their meeting was to consider the case of those who had lapsed into idolatry during the persecution of Maximin, and who now sought restoration to the communion of the Church. It is to such cases chiefly that the twenty-five Canons of this Council relate. Nevertheless, there are Canons of this Council which are exceedingly interesting and valuable on account of doc- {rine as well as discipline.* Tue Councit oF Nro-CmsarEA Was held in the same year as that of Ancyra, and was at- tended by thirteen Bishops; of whom certainly some, and possibly all, had been in attendance at the former Council. This Council enacted Fifteen Canons. THE FIRST GENERAL COUNCIL OF NICHA Was assembled by the Emperor Constantine, A. D. 325, to settle the prevailing discords which had been excited by the impious and novel doctrines of Arius{ and his partisans. Courteous letters were addressed by the Emperor to all the Bishops of the world inviting them to attend the Council at * This Council is not to be confounded with an assembly of Semi-Arians who met in the same place, A. D. 358, under the auspices of George of Laodicea, and adopted a Creed into which they admitted the word Substance, but not the word Consub- stantial. + Artus was a Presbyter of the Church of Alexandria, anda man of subtle turn, and remarkable for his eloquence. He maintained various erroneous opinions in religion ; but that for which he is most notorious was the assertion of the inferiority of the Son, in nature as well as dignity, to the FarueEr, and the denial of his divinity. These opinions spread rapidly throughout Egypt and the neighbouring Provinces, and found many supporters; in consequence of which Alexander, the Bishop of Alexan- dria, summoned two Councils at Alexandria, A. D. 315 and 319, in which the tenets of Arius were condemned, and he himself excommunicated. Arius upon this retired to Palestine, where he found many abettors, and amongst them Eusebius, Bishop of Nicomedia, a man of great influence and authority in the Church. The troubles and commotions consequent upon these events increased so much, and caused such great confusion in the Church, that Constantine at length assembled the Council of Nice to put an end to the controversy. Arius being condemned by this Council, was banished to Illyricum; but some years afterwards one of his followers found means to persuade Constantine that his 56 INTRODUCTION. Niczea in Bithynia, and offering the means of transportation to and from their Sees both to the Bishops and to their attendants. Three hundred and eighteen Fathers came together at this summons ; and among them were the Pres- byters Vincentius and Vitus as the representatives of the Bishop of Rome. The Presidents of the Council were Alex- ander of Alexandria (who was attended by his Deacon Athana- sius), Hustathius of Antioch and Hosius of Cordova. The Bishops met in the imperial Palace, when their session was opened by the Emperor Constantine in person, who as- sured the Bishops, in a courteous address, that he affected no power of determining ecclesiastical questions, but left the decision of such matters to them. He then invited the Presi- dents to open the discussions, though he seems himself to have been very active in the Sessions of the Council. ‘The Em- peror,” says Eusebius (Life of Constantine, Bk. IIL, Chap. XIII), “gave patient audience to all alike, and received every proposition with steadfast attention; and by occasionally assist- ing the argument of each party in turn, he gradually disposed even the most vehement disputants to a reconciliation. At the same time, by the affability of his address to all and by his use of the Greek language, with which he was not altogether unacquainted, he appeared in a truly attractive and amiable light ; persuading some, convincing others by his reasonings, praising those who spoke well, and urging all to unity of sen- timent ; until at last he succeeded in bringing them to one mind and judgment respecting every disputed question.” Arius also made his appearance in the Council, and set _ forth his doctrines, which he defended at length in speeches which are said to have contained horrible blasphemies. His arguments were met and answered by the Fathers, and par- condemnation was unjust; in consequence of which the Emperor recalled him from banishment, A. D. 330, repealed the laws which had been enacted against him, and permitted his chief protector Eusebius, Bishop of Nicomedia, and his faction, to vex and oppress the maintainers of the Nicere Council in various ways. Athanasius, who had succeeded Alexander in the See of Alexandria, was one of those who suffered most from these vexations. Having resolutely refused to restore Arius to his former rank and office in the Church of Alexandria, he was deposed by the Council of Tyre, A. D. 335, and banished into Gaul. The people of Alexandria, however, could not be prevailed upon to receive Arius, upon which the Emperor invited him to Constantinople, A. D. 336, and ordered Alex- ander, Bishop of that city, to receive him to communion. Before, however, this order could be put into execution, Arius died at Constantinople, and Constantine survived him but a short time.”—Mosheim, Cent. IY., P, 2, C. 5. INTROOCETION: 57 ticularly by Athanasius the Deacon of Alexandria ; and then his heresies were condemned by the Council, and Arius him- self was excommunicated. The Council next proceeded to abate the disorders which had attended the schism of Meletius,* Bishop of Lycopolis in Egypt ; and afterwards brought the long-continued contro- versy concerning Easter + to a satisfactory conclusion. The important documents of this Council are the Symbol or Creed which was adopted in opposition to the heresy of * “Mprretricvs was Bishop of Lycopolis in Egypt. He was accused and convicted of having offered incense to idols, and was in consequence deposed by Peter, Bishep of Alexandria, whose jurisdiction extended throughout all Egypt. Meletius upon this became the head of a schism in the Church, by assuming to himself the power of ordi- nation, which was vested in the Bishop of Alexandria, and exercised by him in all the Egyptian Churches. Epiphanius, Her. 68, attributes the dissensions between Meletius and Peter to another cause. He says that the rigorous proceedings of Peter against Meletius were occasioned by the latter’s refusing to readmit into the Church those who had fallen from the faith during Diocletian’s persecution, before their penitential trial was entirely finished. The former opinion, however, is supported by the superior authority of Socrates and Theodoret. The confusion which Meletius introduced into the Church by his illegal ordinations was rectified by the Council of Nice, as appears by the Sixth Canon, in which it was ordained that the ancient privilege of the Church of Alexandria should be preserved, and the general authority of the Metropolitans over the Bishops of their several provinces was declared and confirmed.’—Mosheim, J0., note by Dr. Maclaine. + The controversy respecting the proper time of celebrating the Easter festival was of very early origin inthe Church. The generality of the Asiatic Churches kept the festi- val as the Jews did their Passover, on the fourteenth day of the first moon in the new year, whatever day of the week that happened to be. The Western Churches generally deferred it to the first Sunday after the first full moon. The former alleged the author- ity of St. Philip and St. John for their practice, the latter that of St. Peter and St. Paul, and of a revelation made by an ange] to Hermas, brother of Pius I., Bishop of Rome. Polycarp, Bishop of Smyrna, came to Rome about the middle of the second century, to confer with Anicetus, Bishop of Rome, upon the subject; but they could not come to any agreement as to the proper day. They agreed, howeyer, in this, that the peace and communion of the Church were not to be broken on account of the difference. Some years after, Victor, Bishop of Rome, being unable to persuade the Asiatics to adopt the Western custom, excommunicated the Asiatic Churches, and sent circular letters to all the Churches which agreed with him respecting Easter, that they should hold no communion with the Asiatics. This proceeding of Victor's was, however, condemned by all the wise and sober men of his own party, several of whom wrote sharply to him upon the subject, and particularly Irenzeus, who wrote to him in the name of the Churches of Gaul. The dispute still prevailed till the time of Constantine, who, wish- ing to terminate it, sent, in the first instance, Hosius, Bishop of Corduba in Spain, into the East, to endeavor to bring those Churches which still retained the Asiatic cus- tom to an agreement with the rest of the Church. The mission, however, proving fruitless, the subject was submitted to the decision of the Council of Nice, which de- creed that from thenceforth all Churches should keep the feast on the same day, 2. ¢., the first Sunday after the full moon, which happens upon, or next after, the vernal equinox, 7. ¢., the 2ist day of March. The great reverence which was paid to the decrees of this Council produced a mere general agreement, which was further enforced by the decrees of other Councils, and thenceforth those persons who kept the feast according to the old Asiatic practice were accounted heretics, and subjected to eccle- siastical punishment.—Bingham, B. XX. C. 5. 58 INTRODUCTION, Arius, the Synodical Epistle in which the Acts of the Council were communicated to the Churches of Egypt, and twenty Canons on yarious subjects. Of these twenty Canons there are five which distinctly appeal to an earlier code of eccle- siastical law on as many different points ; and on investigation we discover these same points clearly expressed in the Apos- tolical Canons. In these instances and in at least two others the Canons of Niczea are evidently mere expansions or appli- cations of the rule or principle which is more briefly expressed in the Apostolical Canons on the same subject. Among the Canons of Niceea are regulations for the recon- ciliation of the Cathari* and the Paulianists,f and for the restoration of persons who had lapsed during the persecutions of Licinius.} * The CaTHARI were Novatians, a sect so called from Novatian, a presbyter of the Church of Rome, who having adopted very severe notions respecting those who had lapsed in persecution, and also respecting other offenders, and having in vain opposed the ordination of Cornelius, who was elected Bishop of Rome, A. D. 250, separated from the Church, and brought to Rome three Bishops from the further part of Italy, whom he compelled by force to ordain him Bishop. He then erected a new society, and ordained Bishops and Presbyters in it. There was no difference in point of doc- trine between the Noyatians and Catholics: what particularly distinguished this sect was their refusing to readmit to communion those who after baptism had fallen into grievous sins; and to communicate with those who had married twice; and other such-like severities of discipline. They pretended to an extraordinary degree of purity, and therefore called themselves Cathari, or the pure ; and obliged such as came over to them from the general body of Christians, to be rebaptized on entering into their society. One of the chief partisans of Novatian was Novatus, a Carthaginian presbyter, who passed over to Rome from Carthage to avoid the excommunication of Cyprian, his Bishop.—IIammond, pp. 43, 44; Bingham, Scholastic Hist. of Lay Bap- tism, p. II., C. II., s.2. Mosheim, B. I., p. IL, C. V.,s. 17. + The PaviiAnists derived their name from Paulus Samosatensis, who was elected Bishop of Antioch, A. D. 260. He maintained, amongst other errors, that our Lorp was a mere man, and had not come down from heaven. He was condemned and de- posed by a Council at Antioch, A. D. 272. The Canon requires the Paulianists to be rebaptized, because in baptizing they did not use the only lawful form, according to our SAviourR’s command, ‘‘In the name of the Fatuer, the Son, and the Hoty Guosr.” This, indeed, was a general rule in the ancient Church applicable to all heretics, that those who did not use that form should be baptized on their admission into the Church, but that those who did use it should be admitted by imposition of hands without any fresh baptism.—Hammon4, pp. 51, 52. + Licrxtus, who, after the defeat and death of Maxentius, A. D. 312, and of Maxi- min, A. D. 313, shared the empire with Constantine, was at first favorably disposed towards the Christians. and, in conjunction with Constantine, issued a decree, A. D. 312, granting. to them full power to live according to their own laws and institutions ; which power was specified still more clearly in another edict, drawn up at Milan in the following year. The joy of the Christians at these favorable events was, however, soon interrupted by the war which broke out between Licinius and Constantine. Licinius being defeated, A. D. 314, made a treaty with Constantine, which he observed for some years, but then broke out in another war. In order to engage the friends of the old superstition on his side, he cruelly persecuted the Christians. This persecu- tion commenced about A. D. 320, and lasted till the final overthrow of Licinius, A. D. 324, the year before the assembling of the Council of Nice.—~Hammond, p. 46. : INTRODUCTION. 59 As early as the beginning of the Fifth Century an attempt was made by Zosinus, Bishop of Rome, to pass off the Canons of Sardica as genuine Canons of this Council in addition to the twenty which are universally acknowledged to be genuine. At alater period the Roman Canonists have alleged the same Canons of Sardica in evidence of the Pope’s pretended right of hearing appeals; and they have affirmed that these Canons are to be considered as at least a sort of appendix to the Canons of Nica. Some account, therefore, of the Council of Sardica seems to be necessary in connection with the Council of Nicea; and we accordingly append what follows as abridged from Johnson and Hammond. Counciy oF SARDICA. “ Athanasius, Bishop of Alexandria, and several others, being de- posed by the Arian party, which prevailed in the East through the countenance of the Emperor Constantius, took refuge at Rome. Ju- lius, Bishop of that city, heard their cause in a Synod assembled for that purpose, A. D. 340, and decided in their favor; and wrote to the Eastern Bishop, requiring them to be restored. When this was refused, Constans, Emperor of the West, espoused their cause, and threatened Constantius with a war in case he did not oblige the Bishops to permit Athanasius and his associates to return to their bishoprics. Hereupon, by the joint consent of both Emperors, a Synod was appointed to meet at Sardica in Hlyricum to give a final decision to this dispute. The Eastern Bishops, to the number of seventy-six, came to Sardica; but the great majority of them being Arians, refused to assemble with the Western, who were orthodox, and went and formed an assembly of their own, at Philippopolis in Thrace. The Western, with Athanasius and the other refugees, held a Synod at Sardica, A. D. 347, where they absolved Athanasius and the other orthodox Bishops from the sentence of deposition, and for their further security made the Canons in question. This Council was intended to be a general one, being called by the Emperors both of the East and the West, and being designed to consist of the Bishops of both parts; but, by the secession of the Eastern Bishops, it came to pass that it was really a Western Synod only; and therefore its Canons were never received into the code of the Universal Church.”— Johnson’s Clergymsan’s Vade Mecum, Vol. IL., p. 157. Amongst other things enacted by these Canons, it was provided, that in the eyent of any Bishop considering himself aggrieved by the sentence of the Bishops of his Province, he might apply to the Bishop 60 INTRODUCTION. of Rome, who would write to the Bishops in the neighborhood of the Province of the aggrieved Bishop, to rehear the cause; and should also, if it seemed desirable to do so, send some Presbyters of his own Church, to assist at the rehearing. These privileges indeed were not allowed to the Bishop of Rome by the Sardican Fathers as a matter of right, but of favor; as appears from the words of Hosius, Bishop of Corduba, in proposing the Canon to the Synod. “ Hosius, Bishop, said: If any Bishop thinks that his cause has been misjudged, in order that it may be judged again, if it seems right to your love, let us honor the memory of the Apostle Peter, and let those who have judged the cause write to Julius, Bishop of Rome, in order that a new trial may, if proper, be had.” And at the end of the Canons relating to the subject it is added: “ The Bishops answered, We approve of. what has been said.” It is probable, indeed, as Richerius in his His- tory of Councils observes, that these Canons were only provisional, and intended for the security of the Eastern orthodox Bishops against the Arians, and that the privilege conferred upon the Bishop of Rome in them, was not meant to be given to the See of Rome, but only to © the then Bishop Julius, who is expressly mentioned in them; and con- sequently that they were only designed for the case then before the Council. An attempt, however, was made at the beginning of the fifth cen- tury, by Zosimus, Bishop of Rome, to establish his authority in the African Churches, by means of these Canons, on the following oc- casion, Apiarius, a Presbyter of the Church of Sicca in Africa, having been deposed by his Bishop for gross immoralities, fled to Rome, A. D. 415, and was received to communion by Zosimus. Zosimus further sent legates into Africa, to the Bishops there, desiring that Apiarius’s cause should be heard over again, asserting that the Bishops of Rome had the privilege of requiring such rehearings con- ferred upon them by the Canons of Nice. The African Bishops to the number of two hundred and seventeen, being assembled in Synod at Carthage, received these legates, who declared the cause of their coming, and, in proof of the authority claimed by the Pope, quoted the Sardican Canons, which they alleged as genuine Janons of the Council of Nice. The African Bishops said in their answers that they acknowledged the authority of the Nicene Canons, and were ready to abide implicitly by them; but that as regarded those which the legates alleged, they were not to be found in the copies of the Nicene Canons, which were brought to Africa by Cxci- lian, Bishop of Carthage, who was present at the Council of Nice, nor in any other copies that they had ever seen. That, however, they would send to the Bishops of Constantinople, Antioch, and Alexan- dria, who must have the genuine Canons, and if it should appear IN LROD UCT ION... 61 that the alleged Canons were genuine, they would submit to them. They sent accordingly, and received answers trom Atticus, Bishop of Constantinople, and Cyril of Alexandria, with copies of the genuine Canons. By these answers it was indisputably proved that the twenty Canons alone were genuine, and that no others had ever been known or heard of. The matter, however, was not finally settled for several years, in the course of which Zosimus and his successor Boniface died, and it was closed by a letter from the African Bishops to Celestine, then Bishop of Rome, in which they assert the independence of their own, and all other Churches, and deny the pretended right of hearing appeals claimed by the Bishop of Rome ; and further exhort him not to do or attempt anything contrary to the Canons of the Church, either by receiving into communion persons who had been excom- municated by their own Bishops, or by interfering in any way with the privileges of other Churches. For a full account of the particu- lars contained in this note, see the account of the Synod of Sardica, and of those of Carthage, in the collections of Councils. The Canons of Sardica are translated by Johnson, and inserted in the Clergyman’s Vade Mecum.— Hammond, pp. 55, 56. Counc, oF GANGRA. The exact date of this Council is unknown. If Eusebius, whose name stands first among the signatures of the Bishops who attended it, was, as some suppose, Bishop of Czesarea in Cappadocia and predecessor of Saint Basil, then the Council must have been held during the Episcopate of Eusebius, which extended from A. D. 362 to 871. The more probable opinion is that it was held between the Council of Niczea and that of Antioch, that is, sometime between A. D. 325 and 341. The Twenty Canons of this Council are chiefly directed against the practices of a spurious asceticism which had been propagated by a certain Eustathius whose heresies are fully detailed in a Synodical Letter. Lest, however, the Canons which were then enacted to meet an unavoidable necessity and to abate an intolerable scandal should be misconstrued into a condemnation of true asceticism, a valuable protesta- tion is appended to the Canons, in which protestation the Bishops disavow every such purpose, and declare the real distinction between true asceticism and its pretentious counterfeit. 62 EN TROD UC PLO, Councit or ANTIOCH. The Council of Antioch was held A. D. 341, on the occa- sion of the assembling of many Bishops at the dedication of the Church known as the Golden Church of Antioch, which had been founded by Constantine, and completed by Constan- tius. The Bishops numbered nearly one hundred, most of whom were Arians, or Semi-Arians. They did not, however, attempt to make the Council an occasion of propagating their peculiar tenets by any mode of direct teaching. Indeed, they set forth more than one confession of faith, and one, at least, of these St. Hilary maintains to be susceptible of an orthodox construction. The Synodical Letter, brief as it is, boasts much of the unanimity and peace which had prevailed at the Council, and the phraseology is studiously chosen so as to give no offence to Catholics. Their object was, in short, to gain authority among the Catholics by seeming to be Catho- lics, in order that they might the better serve the cause of heresy. Accordingly they professed in their First Canon the most perfect obedience to the “holy and great” Council of Niczea; then they proceeded to establish other Canons which in fact, are very valuable applications and expansions of the ancient code of Canons called Apostolical; and then, still never seeming to touch doctrine, but to be aiming only at true principles of Canon Law, they enacted their famous XI. and XIT. Canons, which were intended to apply to Athanasius, the great defender of the Catholic Faith against the heresies of Arius. Athanasius had become Archbishop of Alexandria, where he had first served as a Deacon; but heresy which he had seemed to crush by his transcendant genius now assailed him with its usual weapons of most infamous slander. To set these at rest the Emperor Constantine, A. D. 335, summoned a Council, to convene at Tyre, and when it had convened it was discovered that a large majority of the assembled Bishops were adherents of the Arian party. Hence it is not to be won- dered at that though the innocence of Athanasius of every charge alleged against him, was sufficiently established, yet he was condemned to be deposed from his Archbishopric, and banished from his See. Against this infamous sentence Atha- nasius protested and appealed to Constantine, who interposed, and the Archbishop was restored. The bearing of the XL INTRODUCTION. 63 and XII. Canons of Antioch upon this case will readily be perceived ; for the former was, and was in fact designed to be, a new decree cf deposition against Athanasius, while the latter was intended to prevent all possibility of future res- toration by a subsequent rehearing of his cause before a higher and more competent canonical tribunal. A lke pur- pose is apparent in the XIV. and XV. Canons ; and the XVI. and XVII. were enacted to cover the case of Paul, Arch- bishop of Constantinople, a Catholic whose election to that See had been bitterly resisted by the Arians, and, as they now alleged, had been accomplished without the concurrence of Theodore of Heraclea, Metropolitan of Thrace. Passing the XVIII. Canon, all the others of this Council are mere expan- sions of Apostolical Canons, and were doubtless intended to impose upon the Church by their appearance of devotion to the ancient statutes of the Church. It is also to be noticed that this Council adopts in its XX. Canon the rule of the Apostolic Canons in reference to the time of holding the Spring Councils, rather than that of the Council of Niczea—a circumstance which seems to indicate that such matters, even when regulated by a General Council, were never intended nor understood to override the ancient, well-established cus- toms of particular Churches. On the whole, though the purpose of the Council of An- tioch was clear enough both to the orthodox and to the heretic ; yet as it did not set forth any heresy in any formal manner ; as, on the contrary, it professed entire submission to the only General Council that had then been held ; and as the Canons it enacted were entirely unobjectionable, and in- deed extremely valuable additions to the previous legislation of the Church ; they were therefore universally received into the Code of the Church, and having been approved by the General Council of Chalcedon, they have now as much author- ity as if they had been passed in a true General Council in- stead of by a Council of Semi-Arians. Councin or Laopicra. This Council was held at Laodicea in Phrygia, but the year in which it was held is not known. Baronius maintains that it was held A. D. 314; others date it in 319 ; others yet 64 LN PRODUCTION: think that it was held during the pontificate of Liberius who was elevated to the See of Rome A. D. 352 ; Beveridge argues that it was held A. D. 365 or thereabouts. The opinion of those who would date this Council before that of Nicza, is sufficiently disproved by the mention of the Photinians in Canon VIL, since that sect did not appear till after the Coun- cil of Niczea ; and the mere fact that in Collections of the Councils it has always been placed after that of Antioch is presumptive evidence that it was later than that Council. We may therefore assume that it was held certainly later than A. D. 325. Of the particulars of this Council nothing further is known than what may be gathered from its Canons. Gd a cao ela eee HISTORY OF THE COUNCILS, CONTINUED. THE SECOND GENERAL COUNCIL. ITS DATE. ITS PRESIDENTS. MELETIUS NOT IN COM- MUNION WITH ROME. ADDITIONS TO THE CREED OF NICEA, THE FILIOQUE AFTER- WARDS INSERTED THROUGH THE INFLUENCE OF SECULAR POWER. COUNCILS OF TOLEDO, ROME, AIX-LA-CHAPELLE. ACTION OF CHARLEMAGNE AND LEO Ul. ROME ADOPTS THE INTERPOLATION UNDER NICHOLAS I. COUNCIL OF EPHESUS. DOCTRINE OF NESTORIUS. ACTION OF POPE CELESTINE AND 8. CYRIL. CONDEMNATION OF NEs- TORIUS. ARREST OF NESTORIUS AND CYRIL. DECISIONS OF THE COUNCIL. SUB- MISSION OF JOHN OF ANTIOCH AND OTHERS. COUNCIL OF CHALCEDON. EUTYCHES AND HIS DOCTRINE. THE ‘LATROCINIUM EPHESINUM.’”” MARTYRDOM OF FLA-~ VIAN. CONDUCT OF POPE LEO. CONDEMNATION OF EUTYCHES. PRIVILEGES CON- FERRED ON CONSTANTINOPLE. APPROVAL OF EARLIER PROVINCIAL COUNCILS. REE SECOND ,. GENERAL COUNCIL, WHICH IS THE FIRST COUNCIL OF CONSTANTINOPLE. HE Second General Council was called by the Em- peror Theodosius, A. D. 381, for the purpose of de- ciding on the strange and heretical doctrine which had been recently maintained by the Arians, the Macedonians, and others mentioned in the first Canon of the Council, who had erred from the Catholic Faith.* It was com- * Of these heretics the following were the chief: The EunomiAns, so called from Eunomius, a disciple of Aétius (from whom this sect were also sometimes called Aétians), and Bishop of Cyzicus, the Metropolis of the Province of Hellespont. The tenets of Eunomius were those of the more rigid Arians. He taught that the Son was of a different substance from the FatuHer (whence the name of Anomzans or dissimilar), that the Son was created by the Farner, and the Hoty.Guost by the Son, and that the Hoty Guos't is destitute of all divinity, or creative power.—Hammond, p. 68. The Evpoxtans derived their name from Eudoxius, who was Arete first of Ger- manicia in the Province of Euphrates, afterwards of Antioch, and lastly of Constanti- nople. Their tenets were in all respects the same as those of the Eunomians.—Ham- mond, p. 69. The SEMI-ARIANS Or PNEUMATOMACHI were properly those who neither agreed with the Catholics in holding that the Son is of the same substance, dnoover0s, with the FATHER, nor with the rigid Arians in asserting that he is altogether dissimilar, avé- povos, but maintained that he is, although a creature, yet of a different nature from all other creatures, and in a peculiar manner like to the FATHER, d6jocover0s, but that the Hoty Guosr is in all respects a creature, and different from the Farner and the Son. 66 INTRODUCTION. posed of One Hundred and Fifty Bishops, among whom it is remarkable that not one was from the West. Dama- sus, the Bishop of Rome, was not represented even by legates. This Council was successively presided over by On this account they are classed with the Pneumatomachi in the Canon. The Pneu- matomachi, properly so called, were orthodox in their opinions respecting the FATHER and the Son, and held that they were of one and the same substance, but they would not acknowledge this of the Hoty Guost, whom they asserted to be a mere creature. Augustin, Hier. 52, says that some persons called them Semi-Arians on this account, as agreeing partly with the orthodox and partly with the Arians. The founder of this sect was Macedonius, Bishop of Constantinople, from whom they were commonly called Macedonians. It was chiefly against these heretics that the Council of Constan- tinople was assembled by Theodosius, and two of the principal leaders of the sect, Eleusius, Bishop of Cyzicus, and Marcian of Lampsacus, were present at it.—Ham- mond, p. 69. The SAaBELLIANS, from Sabellius, a native of Lybia, held that the Son and the Houy Guost are not only the same Gop with the FATHER, but the same person; so that the Godhead is not only one in substance, but one in Person, and FaTHER, Son, and Hoty Guost, only three appellations of the same person, who appeared or mani- fested himself at different times as FarHeR, Son, and Hoty Guost, and who is therefore sometimes called the Farner, sometimes the Son, and sometimes the Hoty Guost. They are therefore called by the Latin Fathers, Patripassians, since it neces_ sarily follows from their doctrines that the FatHmr was incarnate, and suffered on the cross.—Hammond, p. 69. The MARcELLIANS, were so called from Marcellus, Bishop of Ancyra, in Galatia, who lived about or shortly after the time of the Council of Nice. He asserted that at the end of the world Curisr would give up his kingdom and his subsistence, so that he would neither reign nor subsist for ever, but be dissolved at the last into the Fa- tueR. He founded his opinion upon i Cor. xv. 24-28. It was apparently to meet this heresy that the Constantinopolitan Fathers made that addition to the Nicene Creed, ‘of whose kingdom there shall be no end,” as it was to meet the Macedonian heresy that they added the articles relating to the Hoty Guost.—Hammond, p. 10. The Paorrmrans, took their name from Photinus, a disciple of Marcellus, and afterwards Bishop of Sirmium. He maintained the absolute unity of the Godhead, denying any Trinity of Persons, or the Personality of the Word, or the Hoty Guosr. He asserted that Curist was a mere man, and that he had the beginning of his exist- ence from the Virgin Mary.—Hammond, p. 70. ApoLuinarivs, from whom the Apollinarians took their name, was a native of Laodicea, and taught that our Lorp took our body without a rational or intellectual soul; and that his divine nature supplied the place of a soul, or at any rate of the in- tellectual faculty—Hammond, p. 70. The SABBATIANS were so called from Sabbatius, a Presbyter, who adopted the sentiments of Noyatianus. Antstert, is probably a false reading for Aristi,@.¢., the best; as we also find Cathariand Catheroteri, i. e., the pure and the more pure. The QUARTODECIMANS, or TETRADITES, were those persons who persisted in ob- serving the Haster festival with the Jews, on the fourteenth day of the first month, whateyer day of the week it happened to be.—Hammond, p. 74. The Monranists, one of the older sects, were so called from Montanus, who em- braced Christianity in the second century. Te professed to be inspired in a peculiar way by the Hory Guost, and to prophesy. He was supported in his errors by two women, Priscilla and Maximilla, who also pretended to prophesy. His heresy infected many persons, amongst others Tertullian, but being condemned by the Church, his followers formed a sect remarkable for extreme austerity. But although they asserted that the Hoty Guosr had inspired Montanus to introduce a system of greater perfec- INTRODUCTION. 67 Meletius * of Antioch, Gregory Nazianzen, Timothy of Alex- andria, and Nectarius of Constantinople. The Fathers of Constantinople reaffirmed the Nicene Creed in its integrity, and they further appended to it the clauses concerning the Hoty Sprerr, which seemed necessary in addition to the Creed of Niczea, in order to meet new forms of heresy that had sprung up. The Creed of Constantinople was never, however, supposed or intended to teach doctrine which had not been fully and explicitly held by the Fathers of Niczea ; but as the earlier controversies had been chiefly concerning the person of Curist, so the later controversies had been chiefly concerning the Hoty Guosr; and so it had been found advisable to adopt clauses which by general sanc- tion should define the doctrine of the Hoty Srinrr as precisely as the Council of Niczea had defined the doctrine of the Son of Gop. Hence, as these Creeds are not two, but in fact one and the same, the Creed of Constantinople was universally adopted, and is now customarily called the Nicene Creed. But here we have unhappily to note a variation by the Western Churches from the pure text of the Creed of Constan- tinople, that has confessedly been the chief cause of the great schism between the East and the West. The Fathers of Con- tion than the Church had before known, and condemned those who would not join them as carnal, they did not at first innovate in any of the Articles of the Creed. This sect lasted a long time, and spread much in Phrygia and the neighbouring districts, whence they were called Phryges and Cataphryges, and latterly adopted the errors of Sabellius respecting the Trinity.—Hammond, p. 74. Here also we may mention the case of Maximus the Cynic, which is the subject of the Fourth Canon. Maximus the Cynic was an Exyptian by birth, and a cynic philosopher. He was converted to the faith by Gregory Narzianzen, and baptized and ordained by him. Afterwards being led by ambition to desire the Bishopric of Constantinople, he suborned certain Egyptian Bishops, and brought them to Constantinople to elect and ordain him Bishop. Before, however, the ordination was completed, they were driven out of the church by the people, and retired into a private house, where they performed the ordination. This whole transaction, however, was so completely at variance with all the laws and customs of the Church, that the Synod would not recog- nize it in any way, and therefore did not decree that Maximus should be Ceposed, Dut that all ecclesiastical acts done towards him, or by him, were utterly void and of none effect.—Hammond, p. 71. * For a long time there had been a schism at Antioch. That city had two Bishops, Meletius and Panlinus. The Bishop of Rome was in communion with the latter, and consequently regarded Meletius as schismatic. . . . . . The Second @ecumenical Council was therefore under the presidency of a Bishop who was not in communion with Rome. Meletius died during the sitting of the Council. Those who were well known for eloquence among the Fathers pronounced his enlogy. . . . . . He was regarded by all as a Saint; and when his body was transported to Antioch, the journey was an uninterrupted oyation.—The Papacy by Abbé Guettée. Engl. Ed., p. 110. 68 LN PRO DTC LLON: stantinople, following the exact words of our Saviour, say that the Hoty Guosr “proceedeth from the Farner.” In the ver- sion now used universally throughout the West the clause is: Ex Parre Finioguvz procedentem, ‘*‘ Who proceedeth from the Faruer and the Son.” It is not within the scope of such a work as this to discuss the theological importance of this cor- ruption or variation : nor to show the inveterate confusion in the Western mind of the idea of procession in the order of nature with mission in the order of time; nor on the other hand to show the inveterate prejudice of the Easterns, who as it seems, are unwilling to believe that one can say “ Who proceedeth from the Farner and the Soy,” without meaning that He proceeds in the same way or in the same sense from the Son as from the Farner. But without at all entering into the theological merits of this question, or even touching upon the kindred question of the duty of Western Churches at the present day, it will not be out of place to mention the historical succession of facts connected with this matter. It has been attempted by the Latins to prove that the pre- sent Western version is in fact the true version of the Creed: but not one Greek copy has ever been produced in which the interpolated words Finioguu, “and from the Soy,” are to be found. The earliest authentic instance of their use is in some copies of the Latin Version of the Creed which is found in the Acts of the Third (Provincial) Council of Toledo, A. D. 589. It is therefore evident that the Creed of Constantinople, which was afterwards confirmed with an anathema by the Gen- eral Council of Chalcedon, did not contain these words. The use of the words in some Latin copies of the Council of To- ledo is to be traced to a singular cause: no other, indeed, than the indiscreet zeal of a royal convert from Arianism, Recearedus, King of the Spanish Goths, who on renouncing Arianism insisted on the introduction of Fim1oque into the Creed as an act of greater homage to the Son of Gop. From this time onward the expression is found in the records of several Spanish Councils of the Sixth and Seventh Centuries. In an English Council held A. D. 679 the Spmrr is said to proceed in an ineffable manner from the Farurr and the Sox. The Council of Friuli, A. D. 791, adopts the words in its version of the Creed. In the only other Latin Council INTRODUCTION. 69 which contains a copy of the Creed, that is, in a Council of Rome held under Martin L, A. D. 642, Fim10que is not found. As it was the influence of aroyal layman which had caused this interpolation at first, so it was again the influence of an imperial meddler that prevailed over the Church’s own author- ity to make the interpolation permanent. In A. D. 809 a Council was held by Charlemagne at Aix-la-Chapelle from which deputies were sent to the Pope, Leo III., to obtain his sanction to the singing of the Creed with the interpolated words which had not then been adopted at Rome. The Pope peremptorily refused ; and in testimony of the true Creed as he had received it, he caused two silver tablets to be hung up in the Basilica of S. Peter at Rome, on which there were en- graved the Greek text and the Latin version of the Creed of Constantinople, both without the Finioquz. Popes, in those days, were not thought to be infallible, and the imperial theo- logian carried matters with a high hand. ‘The interpolated version of the Creed was sung in spite of Leo’s prohibition, and before long, probably in the Pontificate of Nicholas I., the Church of Rome itself adopted the interpolation. THIRD GENERAL COUNCIL. EPHESUS. The Council of Ephesus was assembled, A. D. 431, by the Emperor Theodosius the Younger, for the trial of Nestorius, Bishop of Constantinople, who had permitted a Presbyter called Anastasius and a Bishop called Dorotheus to preach and maintain that the Blessed Virgin may not lawfully be called Theotocos ; Dorotheus in fact going so far as to pro- nounce an anathema against all who should apply that title to her.* The Clergy and people of Constantinople declared * The word THEoTOCcOos, which properly signifies the Bringer-forth of Gop, was originally introduced, not as a title of honor to the Blessed Virgin, but in order to as- sert the true and proper divinity of our Lorp Jesus Curist, and that fundamental doctrine of our faith, that ‘‘undoubtedly even the nature of Gop itself in the only Person of the Son is incarnate, and hath taken to itself flesh.”—(Hooker.) In the words of Basil of Seleucia, ‘‘The Virgin having brought forth Gop incarnate, is named Theotocos,” Ocdv capxwhévta Texovga Ocordkos ovoudgerar. It is not known who 70 INTRODUCTION: against Nestorius, and the quarrel having been reported abroad, 8. Cyril of Alexandria and Celestine of Rome both held provincial Councils in which the doctrine of Nestorius and his party was condemned. Nestorius, however, still con- tinued to maintain his heresy ; the tumults at Constantinople were continued ; and therefore, at the instance of Nestorius himself, as well as of Celestine and Cyril, Theodosius called a General Council to be held at Ephesus. On the day appointed for the meeting, Cyril with Bishops of Eeypt, Syria, and Asia assembled, and Nestorius also came with ten Bishops in his train ; but owing to the absence of a number of the Hastern Bishops and the representatives of Rome, the opening of the Council was postponed from day to day for fifteen days. When that time had expired the Council was convened, although the absentees had not arrived; and then first introduced the term, but it is to be met with in many of the most eminent Fathers of the Church, who lived before the time of the Council of Ephesus, as Athanasius, Basil, Gregory Nazianzen, Gregory Nyssene, Eusebius, Alexander of Alexandria, Dionysius of Alexandria, Chrysostom, and others, whose words are quoted by Bev- eridge and by Suicer, in v. @eoroxos. Indeed, it appears that Nestorius or Anastasius were the first persons who expressly denied that the Virgin might properly be called Theotocos, because they could not reconcile this title with their particular opinions respecting our Lorp’s incarnation. The Council of Ephesus, however, haying so- lemnly approved of the word, it was from that time constantly used not only by Greek, but also by Latin writers. In later times, indeed, the word Deipara was introduced as a translation of Theotocos, but it was not used by the earlier Latin writers, such compounds not being agreeable to the idiom of their language. They therefore re- tained the Greek word Theotocos, as they did the other famous Greek compound Ho- moousios; or if they wished to explain the term, they used the word Genitrix, which properly signifies the Bringer-forth, and not Mater, in doing so. Thus Peter the Deacon: ‘‘ We believe rightly and according to the truth, that the Blessed Virgin is Theotocos, 2. é., the Bringer-forth of Gop (Dei genitricem).” And Leo I., Bishop of Rome, ‘t We anatnematize Nestorius, who believed the Blessed Virgin Mary to be the Bringer-forth (genitricem) not of Gop, but only of man.” Ephraim of Theopolis translating these words of Leo into Greek, uses the word uyryp to express the Latin genitrix, and therefore says in another part of his works, that Leo was the first person who called the Holy Theotocos, Mother of Gop, Myrnp Geov, which none of the Fathers before him had done in express words. From this it appears, as Beveridge observes, that the Greeks first called the Blessed Virgin Theotocos; the Latins afterwards inter- preted that phrase by the Latin Genitrix Dei; the Greeks then rendered the expression Genitrix Dei by Mytnp Gc00, which being retranslated into Latin became Mater Dei, the Mother of Gop. To this I would add, that the expression, Mother of Gop, having thus originated in a mistranslation of the original word, and having, as we know, been in after-ages perverted from its primary jntention of an assertion of our Lorp’s divin- ity. and used to exalt the privileges of the Blessed Virgin beyond those bounds within which (blessed and highly to be honored as she is) they ought to be confined; and being on this account likely to give offence, and lead to error, it seems desirable that it should be avoided, and that either the original word Theotocos should be retained, or some such rendering as that of The Bringer-forth of Gop, be adopted in its stead. Vid. Suicer in voce @eoz6xos, and Pearson on the third Article of the Creed.—Ham- mond, pp. 79-81. INTRODUCTION. val Nestorius was summoned to appear before it for the trial of his cause. On various pretexts he refused to attend. The Council proceeded in the strictest obedience to the letter of the Canon provided for the trial of a Bishop ; and Nestorius still remaining contumacious, his publications were examined in his absence, and he was condemned to be deposed. To this sentence he refused submission. Five days afterwards the Eastern Bishops, numbering twenty-six, arrived with John*of Antioch at their head ; these joined the party of Nestorius and held a Counter-Council which proceeded on its part to hurl a sentence of excommuni- eation against Cyril and the orthodox who had united in the condemnation of Nestorius. Soon afterwards, again, the representatives of Rome ar- rived, when the previous condemnation of Nestorius was con- firmed ; John of Antioch with the other dissidents was also excommunicated ; sundry Canons were adopted ; and several ecclesiastical affairs were settled.* * Of these affairs, by far the most important were the condemnation of Celestius (Canon I), the condemnation of the documents submitted by Charisius (Can. VID), and the complaint of Rheginus (Can. VIII). CELESTIUS was a disciple of Pelagius, and held the same opinions with his master, and, therefore, the sect of Pelagians were also called Celestians. The common opinion of both was, that the sin of Adam only injured himself, and not the human race; and that infants when they are born are in the same state in which Adam was before he sinned. Some of the Bishops who joined with John of Antioch in his schism, were, as it appears, followers of Celestius, and, therefore, this Council, although originally assembled only against Nestorius, joined the Celestians with the Nestorians in their sentence of condemnation, noticing the Celestians by themselves in the first Canon, and in conjunction with the Nestorians in the fourth. Hammond, p. 86. The seventh Canon of this Council as well as the next are not found in the Synodal Epistle which contains the six former, but are decrees of the Council which were made respecting other matters which came before it. As regards the present Canon, it was occasioned by an application made to the Council by CHaristus, who was a Presbyter, and C&conomus of the Church of Philadelphia. He informed the Fathers who were assembled in Council, by a writing which he exhibited to them, that a certain James who had come from Constantinople, and had been recommended as orthodox to the Bishops of Lydia by Anastasius and Photius, two Nestorian Presbyters, had, in despite of the Creed of the Nicene Ccuncil, composed another profession of faith, and had persuaded some of the more simple of the Clergy to subscribe to it, and had pro- ceeded so far as to require of those persons who were converted from heresy to the Catholic Church, that they should. before they were admitted, subscribe this Creed, which had been introduced by him, and which was filled with heretical, 7. e., Nesto- rian opinions. The Fathers who were assembled in Council. having heard the charge of Charisius, and read the new Creed, immediately made the present decree, which afterwards came to be reckoned amongst the Canons of the Council. From this ac- count appears what is meant by the words at the beginning of the Canon, “ These things having been read,”’ that is, the writing of Charisius, and the new Nestorian Creed, upon hearing which the Fathers made this decree. The full account of this transaction is to be found in the 6th Action of the 2d part of the Acts of this Council, 72 INTRODUCTION? In the meantime, Theodosius, learning the dissensions which prevailed at Ephesus, ordered that both Cyril and Nes- torius should be arrested, and that all the other Bishops of both parties should assemble in one Council. Both sides refused ; Nestorius was sent back to his Monastery ; Cyril was detained under arrest; and then, the Emperor himself having heard deputies from both sides, gave his judgment that Nestorius had been righteously deposed; that Cyril in any of the collections of Councils. The Nestorian Creed which is referred to in it is very artfully composed, and calculated to deceive persons not thoroughly alive to the niceties of expression which render an exposition of the doctrine of the Incarna- tion orthodox or heretical. It begins with great apparent deference to the ancient faith, and gives rather an amplified form of the Catholic doctrine respecting the Trin- ity, thus preparing the way for a more lengthened statement of the doctrines respect- ing the Incarnation of The Word, in which the Nestorian hypothesis of two Persons is stealthily introduced, so that the heresy might escape discovery at first. Afterwards, however, it is stated more openly, by way of recapitulation, as follows: ‘ We, there- fore, say that there is one Son and Lorp Jrsus CuHrist, by whom all things were made: considering primarily Gop the Word, the Son of Gop and Lorp according to substance; and further considering with him that which was assumed, Jesus of Na- zareth, whom Gop anointed with the Spirit and Power, as partaking of the Sonship and dominion by the connection with Gop the Word, &c.” In the Acts of the 5th and 6th General Councils this Creed is ascribed to Theodosius of Mopsuestia, and was re- cited amongst other extracts from his works which were read to the former of these Councils, and upon which the sentence of condemnation pronounced against him was founded.—Hammond, p. 87. The Eighth Canon of Ephesus, as well as the Seventh, was in the first instance passed in the form of a decree, but afterwards numbered amongst the Canons. The occasion of it was this. Rheginus, Bishop of Constantia, the Metropolis of Cyprus, and Zeno, Bishop of Curium, and Euagrius, Bishop of Soli, in the same island, pre- sented a memorial to the Council, in which they complained of the attempts which had been made by the Bishop of Antioch, to usurp authority over the Bishops of Cyprus, ‘*contrary to the Apostolical Canons (Can. Apost. 85), and the decisions of the most holy Synod of Nice.” They further stated, that Dionysius, the imperial governor of Antioch, had, at the suggestion of the Bishop of that city, written to the commander of the troops at Cyprus, as weil as to the Clergy of Constantia, requiring the former to prevent the ordination of a Bishop of Constantia, in the room of Troilus, who had lately died, till the question as to the right of ordination had been settled by the Coun- cil at Ephesus: and cautioning the latter not to receive any person as their Bishop who should in the mean time be ordained by any one. The Bishops produced these letters before the Council, and prayed that the privileges which they had always en- joyed even from the times of the Apostles, might be preserved, and that the Council would pronounce a sentence in their favor which might prevent their being again in- vaded. The Council had the letters read before them; and having, by the examina- tion of the Bishops, ascertained that there was no instance to be produced, from the times of the Apostles, of the Bishop of Antioch ordaining the Metropolitan of Con- stantia, or any other Bishop in Cyprus, and that Troilus, the late Metropolitan, and his predecessors, Sabinus and Epiphanius, had been ordained by the Bishops of their Province, they passed this decree in favor of the Province of Cyprus, and extended it to all similar cases which might occur in other Provinces and Dioceses. The author- ity, therefore, which the Bishops of Rome, in after-ages, claimed and usurped over the British and other Western Churches, is clearly contrary to ‘this Canon, as well as to those of the Council of Nice.. The account of this transaction is contained at length in the Acts of the Council, Part II., Act 7.—Hammond, pp. 88, 89. ENTRODUCTION. 3 should retain his See ; that all the other Bishops of both par- ties should return home to their several Churches ; that there was no heresy on the one side nor the other ; and that there- fore all should strive on both sides for the restoration of a godly unity and peace. The Council instantly broke up, and for a time it seemed as though a permanent schism had been inaugurated ; for the orthodox stood firm in their adherence to the doctrine of the Council, while the dissidents continued to adhere to the opinions cf Nestorius. Happily the separation was of short continuance. John of Antioch himself subscribed a document in which he recognized that the Blessed Virgin is Theotocos; and not long afterwards the other Eastern Bishops joined in the confession of the Catholic doctrine as declared at Ephe- sus, and so were reconciled to the great body of the Church. Thus unity was speedily restored ; the doctrine and Canons of the Council were accepted everywhere by all the Churches; and the Council of Ephesus has ever since been recognized as the Third General Council of the Catholic Church. FOURTH GENERAL COUNCIL. CHALCEDON. After the condemnation of Nestorius in the General Coun- cil of Ephesus, Flavian, Archbishop of Constantinople, held a Council A. D. 448, at which Eusebius, Bishop of Doryleum in Phrygia, presented a memorial against Eutyches, the Archi- mandrite or Abbot of a Monastery at Constantinople who had fallen into an error opposite to that of Nestorius by ob- stinately denying that there are two natures in the Person of Curist. The Council condemned the doctrine; but Eutyches, having gained the ear of Dioscorus, Bishop of Alexandria, Flavian himself was etted before a Council which was intended to be General, and which was summoned by imperial author- ity to meet at Ephesus, A. D. 449. This Council, over which Dioseorus presided, was so violent and merciless that it has borne the name of Latrocinium Ephesinum, or the Ephesian Band of Brigands. It approved the heresy of Hutyches. 74 INTRODUCTION. Flavian was condemned, scourged, and so cruelly maitreated that he died soon afterwards at Epipas in Lydia, to which place he was banished. Before his death, however, Flavian had appealed for help to Leo, Bishop of Rome. Leo espoused his cause, and en- deavoured to induce Theodosius the Younger to convoke an- other Council which should meet in Italy, and might rehear the cause. The Emperor refused, and Leo was obliged to content himself with holding a Provincial Synod at Rome, wherein the Latrocinium of Ephesus was condemned. After the death of Theodosius, his successor Marcian granted the request of Leo, and called a General Council to meet at Niceea, though, for the convenience of the Emperor it was speedily transferred to Chalcedon ; and there the Bishops as- sembled to the number of 630 or 636 in the Church of S. _Euphemia on the 8th day of October, A. D. 451. The heresy of Eutyches was unhesitatingly condemned ; Dioscorus was deposed, and thirty Canons were enacted. The Bishop of Rome was represented by the Bishops Pascha- sinus, Lucentius, and Julian, and by the Presbyter Boniface, who formally opposed the XXVIII. Canon which granted to the Church of Constantinople, under the title of New Rome, the same privileges as had been conceded to the Elder Rome, and conferred upon the same Church jurisdiction over Pontus, Asia, and Thrace, as well as over Missionary Churches which might lie beyond the limits of the Empire. Notwithstanding the objection of the representatives of Rome, the Canon was adopted by the Council and approved by the imperial au- thority.* | * The account of what took place at the passing of the Canon is given at length among the Acts of the Council, in the 16th Action: and as the matter is of some im- portance in its bearing upon the question of the Papal supremacy, an abridged account of it may not be uninteresting. Upon the meeting of the Council (on the day when the discussion took place), Paschasinus and Lucentius, the Roman Legates, addressed themselves to the imperial Judges, and complained, that on the preceding day, after they, as well as the Judges, had left the meeting, certain things had been brought forward and decreed, contrary to the Canons of the Church, and they requested the Judges to institute an inquiry respecting them. Upon this, Aétius, Archdeacon of the Church of Constantinople, said that it was the common practice in Synods, after settling the more important and necessary matters relating to the Faith, to make also such regulations in other mat- ters as were necessary. That on this occasion the Church of Constantinople had had certain matters to transact, and that they had requested the Roman Bishops to take part in their proceedings, but that those Bishops had refused to do so, alleging that INTRODUCTION. 75 The Definition of Faith set forth in this Council is a docu- ment of great importance, reaffirming, as it does without ex- ception, the decrees and doctrines of the General Councils of Niczea, Constantinople, and Ephesus, and setting forth, with they had no authority for this purpose from the Bishop of Rome. That they had then referred the matters to the imperial Judges, who had desired them to proceed with their business, and they had accordingly done so fairly, openly, and canonically. The Judges desired the account of the proceedings to be read ; and Beronicianus, Secretary of the Consistory, read this 28th Canon, with the subscriptions of all the Bishops who attended the Council annexed to it. Lucentius then asserted that the Bishops had been forced to subscribe against their inclinations; but all the Bishops cried out im- mediately that no one was forced. Lucentius then objected further, that this Canon was contrary to that of the Nicene Council, and founded only upon the decisions of the Constantinopolitan Fathers, which had been passed only eighty years before, and which were not reckoned amongst the Synodical Canons. A&étius, the Archdeacon of Constantinople, then asked the Legates whether they had received any instructions relating to this matter from the Bishop of Rome; and the Presbyter Boniface, who was joined with Lucentius and Paschasinus in their mission, said that amongst other things they were charged by the Pope, not to suffer the decisions of the holy Fathers to be in any way infringed, but to maintain his dignity ; and, ‘‘if any persons, presuming upon the splendor of their cities, should make any attempt at usurpation, to resist them with proper firmness.” The Judges upon this desired both parties to read the Canons of Nice: and the Roman Legates then read the 6th Canon, beginning it with these words, ‘‘'That the Church of Rome has always had the Primacy.’’ Constantine, Secretary of the Consistory, then read the same Canon from a copy furnished by Aétius, as it is read in the genuine Canons. He then proceeded to read from the Synod- ical book of the Council of Constantinople, the three first Canons of that Council. The Judges then asked the Bishops of the Asian and Pontic Dioceses, whether they had been in any way compelled to subscribe the Canon in question ; and they all declared that they had signed it voluntarily, and without any compulsion. Upon this the Judges gave their decision to the following effect: “* That the Primacy and the chief honor should by all means be preserved, according to the Canons, to the Archbishop of Old Rome, and that the Archbishop of the imperial city of Constantinople, New Rome, should enjoy the same privilege of honor. That he should also have power of his own authority to ordain the Metropolitans in the Asian, Pontic, and Thracian Dioceses, who should be elected by the Clergy, and proprietors and most illustrious persons of each Metropolis, and by all the Bishops of the Province, or the greater part of them; and that he should have the option of bringing the persons so elected to Constantinople, and ordaining them there, or of allowing them to obtain the decree confirming their election to the Bishopric in the Provinces. That, however, as re- garded the Bishops of the different Provinces, they should be elected (or ordained, xetpotovercAar), by all the Bishops of the Province, or the greater part of them, the Metropolitan having the right of confirmation according to the Canon of the Fathers, the Archbishop of Constantinople taking no part in such ordinations.” This, the Judges said, was their decision upon the subject, but they desired that the holy and GEcumenical Synod would deign to inform them what was their decision. Upon this all the Bishops cried out at once, that they approved and ratified this decision ; but Lucentius entered his protest against all that had been done in his absence, which he said he would report to the Bishop of Rome, who was chief Bishop of the whole Church, that he might declare his sentiments respecting the wrong done to his own See, and the subversion of the Canons. This was the termination of the Council ; but Leo afterwards wrote various let- ters to the Emperors, to the Bishop of Constantinople, and others, in which, whilst he expressed his complete approval of the proceedings of the Council in matters of faith, he strongly condemned this Canon, which he declared was contrary to the Nicene 76 INTRODUCTION. still more clearness than before, the Catholic doctrine of the Incarnation. It was from the Council of Chalcedon that the Canons of the earlier Provincial Councils received the stamp of cecu- menical approval. Canons, and a most unjust usurpation on the part of the Bishop of Constantinople of the privileges of other Bishops, and particularly of those of the Bishops of Alexandria and Antioch, who were next in rank to the Bishop of Rome. He went so far, in one of his letters to the Empress Pulcheria, as to say that ‘‘ by the authority of the Apostle Peter, he annulled all that was contrary to the Nicene Canons ;” but it is worthy of remark how in all his letters, though he is disposed to magnify his own authority, the whole burden of his charge against the Bishop of Constantinople is, that the privileges which he claimed were contrary to the Nicene Canons, and an invasion of the inde- pendency and rights of other Churches.—Hammond, pp. 123-125. THE CANONS CALLED APOSTOLICAL; THE CANONS OF THE GENERAL COUNCILS; THE CANONS OF PROVINCIAL COUNCILS, WHICH WERE APPROVED AT CHALCEDON. EN GREEK AND” ENGLISH. eV ol - hoawy >a ie ai tnel? © ray y Tes re ke ay Mien CAs ak F vo ies wh a Py) ae Oe ee =a : aa * AAS 4 A faa? ah) ol 7 a heh he rs ON ae awe Ms ] a VP 6a a . j 4 eid x ‘A . ' b be =! : 7 : I AALOPUG ES CANTAS BAGH ONS aay yes Lauer aU es oo ena 1 Tei pad Fe eet fe Tis! Betas thd ee iS LAS bi Mi ued 17% ; vt} : = PE BS es wtb Soom mgs 1 ote my wi J, i ore e! RA 1a a rAS be Cie fe Rie: uy une i } aS) i“ S 7 ; Way ob Vets 7 we me : = 7 a 7 ‘ , % 2 = ’ i ‘ fi . . , anh! Tey , ‘ ' : + we a ” re i , i % Dae Vs « ' 7 ~~ © . of i EA Ors) De Aaa: CO ACN ONS. KANONEY TQN ATION KAT HANS EDTON AMOS TOAQN: Codex Cavomun Ecclesiae Lrimitivae, QUI YULGO Cannes SS. Apostolorwm APPELLANTUR. KANQN A’, "Eniokoroc yelpotoveiaOw b7d emioKkdTWY OVO 7} TPLOV. KANQN BY’. IIpeoBirepog b70 Evocg ETLOKOTIOV xetporovetobw, kal Olékovoc, Kat ot AotTrot KANpLKol. KANON I. Ei zig Erioxotoc, | tpecBitEpoc, Tapa THY tov Kupiov did- Taki thy ént TH Ovola, mpocevéyKy Etepa Tiva Ext TO OvotaorTh- pLov, 7) MEAL, 7 ydAa, 7) dvTt olvov oikepa émiTNdEvTA, 7) bpveEtc, 1 Sad TLva, 7) bompia, Tapa THY OlaTaky, KabatpeioOw* TAryv VEWY XidpwY, 7] OTAPVATS TO Kaip® TO Séovtt. Mi &dv dé Eotw Tpoodyecbai tt EtEpov tic TO Ovoraorhpiov 7) EAaLov Eig THY Avy- viav, kat Ovuiaua TO Kalp® Tie dyia¢g Tpoopopac. KANQN A’. ‘H ddan tadoa bnépa eic oikov atooteAAéoOw, anapy) TO ExloKOT® Kal Toi¢ MpEdBUTEpoLc, GAAG [Lh TPOG TO OvoLaaThpLOY. AjjAov dé, a¢ 6 étioxoTo¢ Kal ol mpeoBiTEpot, Emupuepifovot Toi¢ diakdvotc, Kal Toi¢ AoLTOIG KANpLKOIC. Coe NC No S OF THE Poe NOC RCH, COMMONLY CALLED fot APOSTOLIC AL CANONS. CANON I. Let a Bishop be ordained by two or three Bishops. CANON IL. Let a Presbyter, or Deacon, and the other Clergy, be or- dained by one Bishop. CANON III. If, contrary to the Lorp’s ordinance of the Sacrifice, any Bishop or Presbyter shall offer any other things at the Altar, whether honey, or milk, or manufactured strong drink instead of wine ; or birds, or any living creatures, or vegetables, con- trary to the ordinance ; let him be deposed : except only new ears of grain, and clusters of grapes in their season. But it shall not be lawful to offer any other thing at the Altar, save oil for the lamp, and incense for the time of the Holy Oblation. CANON IV. All other first fruits shall be sent to the house of the Bishop and Presbyters, not to the Altar; and it is understood that the Bishop and Presbyters share with the Deacons and other Clergy. 82 CANONS KANON FE’, ’"Exioxomoc, 7) TpeoBitEpoc, 7} Oudkovoc, THY éavTOD yuvaika pn) ExBarAéTw Tpopdoer ebAaBeiag* éav O& EKBAAAQ, adopicédOw ° étipévar d8, Ka0aipeicbw. KANQN ¢’, ’Exioxotoc, 7) mpeaBvTepoc, 7) OLadKovoc, KoouLKac ppovtidac un avadapBavéTw* ei JE wn, KaBatpeiobo, KANQN Z’, Ei tic étioxoroc, 7) tpeoBitEpoc, 7 AidKoVvoc, THY ayiav TOU Idoya nuépav mpd tij¢ eapivijg ionwepiac eta “lovdaiwy émete- Aéoet, KaVapeiobw. KANON H’, Ei tic érioxotoc, 7) TpeoBbrEpoc, 7} OldKovoc, 7) EK TOV KaTa~ Adyov rod lepatixod Tpoopopac yevouévyng pH peTaAdBor, THVv aitiav eindtw, Kal eav 7 ebAoyos, ovyyvoung tTvyxavérw: Ei dé wh Aéyot, apopiséaIw, Wo aitLog BAdBHG yevouEvog TH Aad, Kat brovolav euToljoac KaTa TOV TpooEvéyKavToc, WO pi VYLOS, GVEVEYKAVTOC. KANQN 0O'.- Idvrac rode eiciovtac muotobc Kal TOY ypapav akovorTac, pi) Tapapévovtac dé TH Tpocevyy Kal TH ayia petadppe, wo artatiav éumouobvrac Ty EKKAnoia apopigecOa yp7. KANQN I’, Ei tie dkowwritwe Kav év olkw ovvetgnrat, ovro¢ apopigéecu, KANON IA’, Ri tic Kabypnuévy KAnpinde Ov KAnpikd ovvedtsnrat, naBat- peia0w Kat adbrtoc, KANQN 1B’, Ei tig KAnpiKde 1) AaiKd¢ adwpropévoc, 7Tot adeKtoc, aTEADaY Ev Erépa rOAEL OeyO avev ypaypdtwy ovotatiKOr, dpopisécdw kal 6 deSduevoc, kat 6 dexOeic, CALLED APOSTOLICAL. 83 CANON V. No Bishop, Presbyter or Deacon shall put away his wife, under pretext of religion ; but if he put her away, let him be suspended ; and, if he persist, let him be deposed. CANON VI. No Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, shall engage in worldly business ; and, if he do, let him be deposed. CANON VII. if any Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, shall celebrate the holy day of Easter before the vernal Equinox, as the Jews do, let him be deposed. CANON VIII. If any Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, or any one on the Sacerdotal List, shall not partake, when the Oblation is made, | he shall tell the cause ; and, if it be sufficient, he shall be ex- cused: but, if he will not tell the cause, let him be sus- pended, as one who causes offence to the people, and brings suspicion on the offerer, as though he had not rightly offered. CANON IX. All the faithful who enter [the Church], and hear the Seriptures, but do not remain for prayer and the Holy Com- munion, shall be suspended, because they cause confusion in the Church. CANON X. If any one shall join in prayer with an excommunicated person, even in a private house, let him be suspended. CANON XI. If any Clergyman shall join in prayer with a deposed Clergyman, let him also be deposed. CANON XII. If any Clergyman or layman who has been suspended, or ought not to be received, shall depart and be received in another City, without letters commendatory, let both the receiver and the person received be suspended. 84 CANONS KANQN II”. Ei d& d@wpiopévoc ein, eretervéecOw aiT@ 6 adopiowdc. ‘ KANON IQA’. ’Exioxorov pi éseivar Katadeipavta THY éavtov Tapotkiav érépa erimnday, Kav bd TAELOvWY avayKdcnTaL* ei [Ln TUG EVAO- yoo aitia 7 TovTO Biagouévn avtov Toveiv, @¢ TAEOY TL KEPdOG duvapévov avTov roic ékeice Adyw evoeBeiag ovuBdAdrcoBaL* Kai rovto dé obK ad’ EavTov, GAAa Kpioet TOAA@Y EmtoKOTWY, Kal TrapakAnoe pEeylory. KANQN IE’, Ei tig mpeoBitepoc, 7 OrdKovoc, 7] OAWG Tov KaTaAdyov THY KAnpikdv anodAsipac tiv éavtod maporkiay, ei¢ Erépay aTtéAOn, Kal TAVTEADC jETADTAS OlaTpiBy ev GAAQ TapotKia Tapa yvouny zov idiov énioKxdTov* TovTOY KeAevouEeV pnKéTL AELTOUpyeiv* Et uddAvora Tpookadovpévov adtoy Tov émLaKOTOV avTov ETnavedOeir, ody iTHKovoer, Erisévwv TH atakia* “wo AaiKdg pévToL ExEioE KOLVWVELTW. KANQN Io¢’. 1a Ei 68 6 érioxotoc Tap’ @® Tvyxdvovol, tap’ oldév Aoytodue- voc tiv Kar’ avtOv dpiobeioav apyiav, déEnTat avTovds wo KANpt- Kove, apopiGéoOw, wc diddokadog atasiac. KANQN IZ’ 'O dvot yduoue ovptAaketc peta TO BarTLopa, | TAAAaKIY KTnoduevoc, od ObvaTtat eivat itioKoToc, 7) TpEdBUTEPOS, 7) OLdKo- voc, 7] bAWG TOV KaTAaAGyoV TOV LepaTLKOD. KANQN IH’, O yipav AaBOv, 7) ExBeBAnuévyy, 7) eraipar, 7) oikétLv, 7) TOY ’ s ~ ¢ , , * int oxnvijc, ob Sbvarat ‘sivas érioxoroc, 7) mpecBuvtepoc, 7) StdKo- voc, ) bAwEe TOU KaTAaAdyoV TOv LepaTLKOd. CALLED, APOSTOLICAL. 85 CANON XIII. But if he be already suspended, let his suspension be prolonged. CANON XIV. It is unlawful for a Bishop to leave his own Parish, and cross over to another, though he may be importuned by many [so to do] ; unless there be some reasonable cause compelling him to do it ; as, for example, if he can by the word of piety confer some greater benefit on them that dwell there: and then it should be done not of his own motion, but by the judgment and at the most urgent entreaty of many Bishops. CANON XV. If any Presbyter, or Deacon, or any one whatever on the list of the Clergy, shall forsake his own Parish, and depart with another, and, having wholly changed his residence, shall remain in another Parish contrary to the will of his own Bishop, and particularly if he be summoned by his Bishop to return, and shall persist in his irregularity, refusing to obey, we decree that he shall no more be permitted to officiate. Never- theless, let him communicate there among the laity. CANON XVI. And if the Bishop with whom [such Clergy] are, shall disregard the decree of suspension against them, and shall receive them as Clergymen, let him be suspended, as a teacher of disorder. CANON XVII. He who, after Baptism, has been twice married, or has had a concubine, cannot be a Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, nor be on the Sacerdotal List at all. CANON XVIII. He who has married a widow, or a divorced woman, or a harlot, or a slave, or an actress, cannot be a Bishop, Presby- ter, or Deacon, nor be on the Sacerdotal List at all. 86 CANONS KANON’ I0’, ‘O Oto ddeA@ac ayayouevoc, 7 adeAgidny, od Sivatat sivas KAnpLKOc. KANQN K’, ‘ KAnptkoc éyytac¢ ddovc, Kabatpsiabw. KANQN KA’, Evivovyoc ei pév && érypeiag avOponwy éyéveto tic, 7) év OlwynG adypéOn ta TOV avdpdr, 7} obTwE Epv, Kai éoTLV akLo¢, ETioKkoTo¢ yLvédbw. KANQN KB’, ‘O axpwrnptdcacg éavr7ov, jut) yevéoOw KAnpLKdG* advtopoveEn-~ THC yap éoTLv EavTod, kal Ti¢ TOU Oeod Onmovpytac Ex Opdc. KANQN KI", El tic, KAnpikd¢g Ov, Eavtov adv dxkpwrnptdoet, KaBape(oOw* goveds yap got éavrtov. KANQN KA’, Aaikog éavrov axpwrnpidoac apoptcéoOw étn Tpia* ETiBovdAoG ydp gore Tij¢ Eavtov Cwijc. KANON KE’, ’Exioxotoc, 7 mpeoBirepoc, 7) SvdKkovocg ént topveia, i) éni- opKia, 7 én KAoT adovc, KabatpEioOw, Kat ph aopisécbu. Aéyet yap 1) ypadi), OvK Exdikjoetc dig én? TO adTd. ‘Qoatbrw¢ Kal ol AoiTol KAnpLKol. KANON Keo’, Toév sic KAjpov tpooceA0dvTwv ayduwv, KeAedouev Bovdaopé- voug yauetv dvayvoorac Kat ypdAtac pévove. CALLED.APOSTOLICAL. 87 CANON XIX. He who has married two sisters, or a niece, cannot be a Clergyman. CANON XX. If a Clergyman become security for any one, let him be deposed. CANON XXI. If any one has been made a eunuch by the wanton injury of men, or if he has been deprived of his virile organs in time of persecution, or if he has been born a eunuch, and is worthy, he may be made a Bishop. CANON XXII. If any one shall mutilate himself [that is by castration], let him not be made a Clergyman, for he is a self-murderer and a hater of Gov’s workmanship. CANON XXIII. If any Clergyman shall mutilate himself [that is by castra- tion], let him be deposed, for he is a self-murderer. CANON XXIV. If any layman shall mutilate himself [that is by castration], let him be suspended for three years, for he is an enemy of his own life. CANON XXV. Let a Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, convicted of fornica- tion, perjury, or theft, be deposed, but not excommunicated. For the Scripture saith [Nahum I. 9, txx Version], Thou shalt not punish twice for one offence. Likewise the other Clergy. CANON XXVI. Of those who have been advanced to the Clergy, while unmarried, we ordain that none but Readers and Singers shall be permitted to marry, if they so will. 68 CANONS KANON KZ!, ’"Exioxotov, 7 mpeoBdtEepoy, 7 OldKovov, TiTTOVTA TLOTODSG duaptadvovrac, 1) aniotove adiKjnoavtac, Kal dia ToLoOvTWY do- BeioOar OéXovta, KaBatpeioOat TpoordtTomev: ovdayov yap 6 Kipiog tovto tudc edidage* tobvavtiov dé, abto¢ TuTTOLMEVOC, ovK avrétumTe* Aatdopovpmevog ovK avTEAoLdopEeL* TaoYWY OvK qretAet. KANQN KH’, Ei tic émiokotoc, 7) mpecBv0TEpoc, 1 OtdKovoc, Kabatpebsic Oikalwe emt éyKAhwaot pavepoic, ToAuioeev dwacbat tij¢ ToTE eyxyenptobeione abt@ AEttovpyiac, Tavtdnacw éexKkonTéEdOy TiC ExkAnolac. KANQN KO’, El tic émickotoc Ola ypnudtwr tio agiac Tabtn¢ eéyKparie yévarat, 7) TpEeaBvTEpos, 7) OldKovoc, KaBatpe(oOw Kat adbtoc Kat 6 yvEelpotovicac: Kal éxxonmTéoOw Kal THC KoLvwWviag TaYTdTaoLY * ac Liuwv 6 Mdyog br’ Euov Ilétpov. KANON A’: El tic éniokoto¢ Kooptkoic apyovot yxpnoduevoc, du’ abtaév éyKkpati¢ éxxAnoiag yévyntat, KaBaipeicOw Kat adopiceoOw, Kal ol KOLVaVvOvYTES ALT ATaVTEC. KANQN AA’, El tie mpeaBitepoc, katadpoviaac Tov idiov éentoKxoTov, Ywpic ovvaydyy, Kat Ovovaotihpiov EtEpov THEY, wNdEV KaTEYVWKWC TOD émlokorov év evoeBela Kal dikaootvy, KaBatpe(oOw we Pidapxoc* tbpavvoc ydp éotiv. ‘Qoatrog dé Kat of AowTtot KANpLKOi, Kat boot av abt@ mpod0@vrat. Oi dé Aaikot dpopicécOwoar. ‘TavTa O& wera piav, Kal devTépav, Kal TpiTHY TapdKAjoLY Tov EmLOKOTIOV ylveob, KANQN AB’. Ei ’ n , Cty ’ , , ’ t Tle MpeoBvTEpog 7 OidKovog bro éEmtoKdTOV yévnTar adw- plowévoc, TovTov pH esetvar map’ éErépov OeyOjvat, add’ i] Tapa CALLED APOSTOLICAL. 89 CANON XXVII. If a Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon shall strike any of the faithful who sin, or any unbelievers who have acted wrong- fully, desiring by this means to terrify them, we ordain that he be deposed. For the Lorp hath not so taught us, but contrarywise ; for when He was smitten, He did not smite again ; when He was reviled, He reviled not again; and when He suffered, He threatened not. CANON XXVIILI If any Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, righteously deposed after public accusations, shall presume to touch the ministry formerly committed to him, let him be wholly cut off from the Church. CANON XXIX. If any Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, shall have obtained his office for money, let both him and his ordainer be de- posed, and let him be wholly cut off, as was Simon Magus by me Peter. CANON XXX. If any Bishop shall have obtained his Church through secular rulers, let him, and all who communicate with him, be deposed and excommunicated. CANON XXXTI. If any Presbyter, despising his own Bishop, shall gather a separate congregation, and raise another Altar, his Bishop having been convicted of nothing contrary to religion or morals, let him be deposed as an ambitious person ; for he is an usurper. Likewise of the other Clergy and as many as ad- here to him ; and let the laity be suspended. But let these things be done after a first, second, and third admonition from the Bishop. CANON XXXII. If any Presbyter or Deacon shall be suspended by his Bishop, it shall not be lawful for him to be restored by any 90 CANONS Tov apopicavtog avTor, ei fu) Gv KaTa ovykupiav TEdEevTHOY 6 adopioac abtov étioxoTos. KANQN AT”. Mndéva tév sEvwv entoKdTwY, 7 TpeoBuTépwr, 7 JDLtakdvav QVEV GVOTATLKOY TPOGdEXECIaL* Kai EnLpEpomévwov abTor, ava- Kpivecdwoav* Kal gav EV MOLY KijpvKEc THC EvoeBElac, TpoddExéo- Owoav. Hi d& ph ye, Ta TpOG ypEiav adroic éntyopnyioavTec, ele KoLVWviav abTtove pH Tpocdéenobe, TloAAd yap kata ovvap- Tayi yiveTal. KANQN AA’, Tod¢ émtoxdmove éxdotov éOvovce eidévar yp) Tov év ad= role mpATov, Kat HysioOat adtov wo KEedadny Kal pndév TE MpaTTELY TEpLTTOV avEV THC exelvov yvounc: exeiva O& p6va mpdttew Exaotov boa TH avTov Tapotkia émuBdAdAet, Kal Tai¢ bw avthy xopatc, “AAAG pndée Ekeivocg avEev THE TaYTOY yvouns TOLEITW TL* OVTW yap Oudvoa ~orat, Kat OokacOjonrar 6 Oed¢ dua Kvuptov "Inoov Xptorodv, nat 6 Tlat7p ova Kupiov év ‘Ayiw IIvetpart. ‘O Ilatip, nat 6 Yidc, nat 76 Ilvedpa 76 “Aytov. KANQN AE’, *Exioxotov pi toAuav &w tHv abtod bpwrv yewpotoviac TroeiaOa, eic Tac py broKepévac advT@ TrOAEc, 7) YOpac* ei O& éheyxOein TOUTO TETOLNKWE TAPa TV TOV KATEYOVTWY TAG TOAELC éxeivac 7) YOpac yvounv, KaBatpeicOw Kal avTo¢ Kai ov¢ ExEL- poTovnoer. KANQN Ac’. El tig vetpotovnbeic Exiokotoc wh KaTadéyolTO THY AEtTOUp- yiav kai Thy dpovtida To’ Aaod Thy eyyxepiobeioay abT@, TOv- Tov adwplonévoy tvyxdvev, Ewe dv Katadésntar* WoatTw, Kat mpeaBurepoc Kat OidKkovoc, Ei d& dmeAOov pi) SeyO7, ob Tapa THY EavTOD yvounv, dAAa Tapa THY TOd Anod poyOnpiay, adTo¢ pevéTo exiokorroc, 6 O& KApOG Tie T6AEwWC adhopicédOw, bTL TOLOD- Tov Aaov avuToTaKTov TaLdEevTal ovK EyEVOVTO. CALLED APOSTOLICAL. 91 other than the Bishop who suspended him, unless, indeed, the Bishop who suspended him should die. CANON XXXIII. Let no Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, be received from abroad without commendatory letters ; and even when they bring these, let them be examined, and if they be teachers of godliness, let them be received ; but, if otherwise, let them be supplied with what is necessary, but not admitted to com- munion ; for many things are done surreptitiously. CANON XXXIV. It is necessary that the Bishops of every nation should know who is chief among them, and should recognize him as their head by doing nothing of great moment without his consent ; and that each of them should do such things only as pertain to his own Parish and the districts under him. And neither let him [who is chief] do anything without the consent of all, for thus shall there be unity of heart, and thus shall Gop be glorified through our Lorp Jesus Cunisr ; even the Farner through the Lorp in the Hory Guosr: [that is] the Farner and the Son and the Hoty Guosr. CANON XXXV. Let no Bishop presume to hold ordinations beyond his own boundaries in Cities or districts not within his jurisdic- tion ; and if he should be convicted of having done this with- out the consent of the Bishop having jurisdiction in such Cities or districts, both he and those whom he has ordained shall be deposed. CANON XXXVI. If any one who has been ordained Bishop will not enter upon the ministry and charge over the people committed to him, let him be suspended until he shall enter thereupon. Likewise also a Presbyter or Deacon. But, if he shall have gone [to his cure] and shall not have been received, not through his own will, but through the perversity of the people, let him remain Bishop; but let the Clergy of the City be sus- pended, because they have not corrected such an insolent people. 92 CANONS KANQN AZ’, Asvtepov tod étove ovvodog ylivécbw TaVv émioKdTWY, Kal avakpiveTwoav addAnjAwe ta doywata tic ebaeBEiac, Kai Tac éumimToveag éKKAnoLaoTiKacG avttAoylacg dlaAvéTwoav* dmakt nev, TH TeTTapTyY EBOowadL Tic LIlevtnKooTIc, devTEpov dé ‘YrrepBepetaiov dwdexaTy. ’ KANQN AH", Ildvrwy tév éxkAnotacttn@v rpayparwv 6 ériokotoc éyéTo THY dpovrida, Kai SLtotKeitTw alta Wo TO’ BEOd EPopOvTOG* [UA e&eivae 0& abt@ odetepiceoOai te && adtav, 7) ovyyevéowv idiot ! p el Olay ¢ Ta TOV OEov yapicecOa* ei OE TEVNTEG Elev, EmLYOpHyEITW OC id ’ XX x 4 hs ‘Al ‘ ~ ? n 7 5) TEVHOLY, GAAG pn TMpopace TOvVTWY Ta TiC EKKAnOLaC dTEL- TWAELTO, KANON AO’, Oi mpeaBvtepor Kai OLtadkovor avEev yvropunco Tod émtoKOTTOV undev émitEedeitwoav* avto¢ yap ~oTIY O TETLOTEVMEVOE TOY AadV ~ , < x Quan ~ ~ ’ ~ s ’ , Tov Kupiov, kai TOV UTEP TOV Wuya@v avToY AOyov aTattnOnOO- /levoc. , KANQN M’: "Eotw davepa ta ida tov émtoKxdrov mpaypyara (ei dé tdva éyer) kai havepa ta Kvptakd* tv’ eovoiav yy Ta Wa TeAEv- TOV 6 étioKoToc, oi¢ BovAETat, Kal wo BovAETaL, KaTadeiipat, Kal {7} Tpoddoe. TOV EKkANoLaOTLKM@Y Tpayuatwv diaTtinTELVY TA tod émuoxdrov, to0 bre yuvaika Kat traidac Kextypévov, 7) ovy- yeveic 7) oixétac, Aixatov yap Tapa Oe@ Kat dvOpwrowc, TO HATE Thy éxKkAnoltav Chuiav TLva VTOMEVELY GyVvoia TOV TOV éTLOKOTIOV TpayuaTwV, pate TOV éTiokoTOY 7} TOE avTOD OvyyEVvEIG TpO- pace Tijc exkAnoiac SnuevecOat, 7) Kai cig Tpaywarta euritTELy Tove avT@ drapépovtac, Kai TOV advtov Oavatov dSvodnuiac TEpt- BaddAcobat, KANQN MA’, IIpooracoouev Tov étioxotov ékovoiay eyerv TOV Tio eKKAn- ciac TpayyuaTwr* ei yap Tac Tywiag TOV aVOpUTWY uYac adiTd TLOTEVTEOV TOAAG av déot TEplL TOY YpNnudTwv evTéAAEoOaL, CALLED APOSTOLICAL. 93 CANON XXXVII. Twice in the year let a Synod of the Bishops be held ; and let them mutually examine each other concerning the doc- trines of religion ; and let them settle the ecclesiastical dis- putes that have arisen. And let the first be held in the fourth week of the Pentecost, [7. e., of the fifty days next after Easter}, and the second on the twelfth day of October. CANON XXXVIIP. Let the Bishop have charge of all ecclesiastical goods, and manage them as in the sight of Gop; but it is unlawful for him to alienate anything, or to bestow on his own relatives the things which are Gon’s. If they are poor, let him relieve them, like [the rest of] the poor ; but let him not on their account sell what belongs to the Church. CANON XXXIX. Let the Presbyters and Deacons do nothing without con- sent of their Bishop; for it is he who is entrusted with the people of Gop, and who shall render an account of their souls. CANON XL. Let the private goods of the Bishop, if any he has, be kept distinct from those of the Lorp, so that the Bishop may be able when he dies to leave his own [estate] to whom he will, and as he will; and so that the Bishop’s property may not be lost through an appearance of its being [part] of the Church funds, when the Bishop, perhaps, has a wife, or children, or other relatives, or slaves. For it is right towards Gop and man, that neither the Church should suffer loss through ignorance of the Bishop’s affairs, nor the Bishop or his rela- tives be injured for the sake of the Church, nor those who belong to him be involved in lawsuits and cast reproaches on his death. CANON XII. We ordain that the Bishop shall have authority over the funds of the Church. For, if men’s precious souls may be committed to him, much more ought he to be entrusted with 94 CANONS vd X < e ~ eo , 7 ~ 5 ~ @OTE KaTa THY EavTod ~Fovoiav Tavta OtotketoMat, Kai Toic deowévorg Sia TpeoBuTépwr Kai dtaKodvwv éruyopnyeicbar peta poBov Osod Kai Taon¢ evdAaBeiags weTadAapBavery O& Kai adbTov TOV dOedvtTwv (El ye déotTO) Eig TAG avayKaiag aiTov xpEiac kat TOV emiSevovpévwov GOEAPOV, WG KATA [NdEva TPOTOY adTOV totepeto0a. ‘O yap vowoc Tov Bed dLeTagato, TO’G TH Ovat- aoTnpiw tmpocedpevovrac, ék TOV Avoltaotnpiov TpépecbaL* éErEt- mep ovdE oTpatiwitns ToTé idiowg Opwriowg STAG KaTa TOAEUiWY ETLPEPETAL, KANQN MB’. ’Eriokorroc, 7] TpeoButepoc, 7) Siakovoc, KvBoLg aYoAdwy, Kai psOalc, 7) Tavoac0w, 7 Ka0aipeicOw, KANQN MI”. e a n ») 7 bl cf a Cd ~ n YrodidKkovoc, 7 avayvootnc, 7) WaATyG, Ta OpoLa TrOL@Y, 7 TAVvodow, 7 apopicéoOw* WoavTwe Kai Aaikot, KANQN MA’. ” ’Eioxoroc, 7} mpeoBurepoc, 7} Oudkovoc, TOKOVSG aTaLT@Y TOC davigouévove, 7) TavodcOw, 7 KabaipeioOw, KANQN ME’, ’Exioxoroc, 7} mpeoBvtepoc, 7] OvaKkovoc, alpeteKoig ovvevéd- pevoc wovor, amopicéoOw * ei O& Kai ErreTpEWEV aLTOIC WC KANpLKOIC évepyjoat TL, KabatpeioOw, KANQN Meo’. ’"Exiokoroy, 7) meeoBvTeoov, aipeTiKOv dekapévove BartLona, i Ovoiav, Kabaipeicbat mpootdacoonev, Tic yap ovudwrnotc XptoTa mpoc BeAtap ; 7} Tic wepic TMIOTH ETA aTrioTOV ; KANQN MZ’, *Exioxorroc, 7 mpeaBitepoc, TOV Kat’ aAnbevav éyovta Ban- Toma, EaVv avwOev BanTion, 7] TOV WEWOAVOLEVOY Tapa TOY doEBaV éav jin Battion, KabeipeioOw, wc yeddiv TOY oOTavpov TOD Kv- piov, Kal TOV Oavatov, Kai fun OlaKkpivwy iepéag Wevdlepewr, —— CALLED APOSTOLICAL. 95 money ; so that he may manage all things according to his privilege; and, in the fear of Gop, and with all piety may sup- ply the needy through the Presbyters and Deacons ; and take what he requires for his own necessary use and that of brethren sojourning with him, so that he may no way fall short. For the law of Gop hath ordained that they who serve the Altar shall be nourished of the Altar, and not even a soldier goeth a warfare at his own cost. CANON XLII. A Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, given to dice or drunken- ness, shall either desist or be deposed. CANON XLIII. A Subdeacon, or’ Reader, or Singer, doing the same thing, shall either desist or be suspended. Likewise the laity. CANON XLIV. A Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, exacting usury from debtors, shall either desist or be deposed. CANON XLV. Let a Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, who joins merely in prayers with heretics, be suspended ; and if he commit any- thing to be done by them as Clergymen, let him be deposed. CANON XLVI. We ordain that any Bishop or Presbyter who shall admit the Baptism or the Sacrifice of heretics shall be deposed ; for waat communion hath Curisr with Belial? or what part hath the faithful man with an unbeliever ? CANON XLVII. If a Bishop or Presbyter shall rebaptize one who has true Baptism, or will not baptize one who has been polluted by the impious, let him be deposed, as one who mocks the Cross and death of Curist, and who makes no distinction between true Priests and false. 96 CANONS KANQN MH’. Ei tug Aaixodg tiv Eavtod yvvaika éxBadGy, 7) Etepav AdBot, j) Tap’ dAAov aToAeAvperny, apoptcécdw, KANQN MO’, ” oP, 1 s x N ~ > Ei tic emtioxoroc 1 mpeoBuTEepoc, Kata TY TOV Kupiov Ouatakiv pu Battion sic Ilatépa, kai Yiov, kai “Ayrov Iveta, GAA’ ic Tpeic avapyouc, 7) Tpeic Yiovdc, 7) tpeic ILapakAnrove ig TpeELC PXOVve, 1] TpEete C, 7 TpELg LlapaKkArToue, Kabapeto0w, KANQN N’. El tic émioxotoc 7) TmpeoBvtEepoc fy) tpia BantTiouata judc uvjoewe emitedéon, dAAa Ev Bantioua sig TOV Oavatov Tod Kupiov didduevov, Kabaipeio0w* ov yap eimev 6 Kiptoc, ic tov Gavatov ov Bantioate* adda, IlopevOévreg pabntevoate navra ta tOvn, Batrigovtec adtovc¢ ei¢ TO dvowa Tod Ilatpoc, kai Tov Yiovd, kat Tod ‘Ayiov Uvevparoc. KANON NA’, ” ) / 1’ 7 bd! , wit Ve} ~ El tic éxioxotoc, 7) TMpeoBvtepoc, 7) OidéKovoc, 7) bAwC Tod KaTaAoyou Tod lepattKov, yauov, Kai Kpedv Kai olvov, ob dv’ doxnsv adda dia BdeAvpiav aréyeTat, EmAaOOmEVvoc, bTt TavTE KaAd Aiav, Kal bTL dpoev Kai OijAv éroinoev 6 Oed¢ TOV av- 4 ~ ~ A XN * , nn Opwrov, aAAG BAaodnuay JtaBadder THY Onuwovpyiay, 7} Stop- fovc0w, 7) KabapsioOw, Kai TIC EkKAnoiacg dTOBaAAEDIW* woav- TwWc Kal Aatkoc. KANQN NB’, ” b, , nn La x 2 é, 3 et Ki tic értiokoroc, 7) TpesBvtEepoc, TOV aTOOTpEpOYTA aT auap= riac ob mpoodéxeTat, GAA’ arroBaAdAetat, KaDaipeioOw* OTL AvTEt tov Xpiotov, Tov einévta, Xapa yivetae ev otpav@ ent Evi GpapTwAG “eTAVvoovyTt, KANQN NI". Ei tug Erioxotoc, i) mpeoBvtEpoc, 7) Staxovoc, év Taic Tpmépate Tov EopTOv ov petadauBaver KpeOv Kai olvov, deAvooopuEvoc, Kal ob du’ doknolv, Kabaipeio0w, Wo KEKAVTNPLAGMEVOG TV oikKEaV ovveidnaty, Kal altiog oKavddAov TOAAGIC yLvomuEvoc, CARED: APOSTOLIC AL. 97 CANON XLVIII. If any layman put away his wife and take another, or if he marry a woman divorced by another man, let him be sus- pended. CANON XLIX. If any Bishop or Presbyter shall disregard the Lorp’s ordinance, and not baptize into the Farurr and the Son and the Hoty Guosr, but into three Bernas without beginning, or three Sons, or three Paractyres, let him be deposed. CANON L. If any Bishop or Presbyter does not make the three com- plete immersions of the one Initiation, but gives one immer- sion into the death of the Lorp, let him be deposed. For the Lorp said not, Baptize ye into My death ; but, Go and make disciples of all nations, baptizing them in the Name of the Faruer, and of the Son, and of the Holy Guost. CANON LI. If any Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, or any at all of the Sacerdotal List, shall abstain from marriage, or flesh, or wine, not for discipline, but because he abhors them; forgetting that all things are very good, and that Gop made man male and female ; but blasphemously slandering Gop’s work ; let him amend, or be deposed and cast out of the Church. Likewise a layman. CANON LII. If any Bishop or Presbyter will not receive one who turns from his sins, but rejects him, Jet him be deposed; for he grieves Curist, who said, There shall be joy in heaven over — one sinner that repenteth. CANON LIII. If any Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, will not partake of flesh and wine on festival days, because he abhors them, and not on account of discipline, let him be deposed as a man who has seared his own conscience, and who is a cause of offence to many. d8 CANONS KANQN NA’, El tig KAnpiwocg ev Katndciw dwpabein eobiwv, adopisécbw * Tapes tov tv travdoxelw év 600 du’ dvayKnv KaTaAvoarroc. KANQN NEV. ” L \ , \ > 4 4 Ei tig KAnptkog bBpioet Tov émioxoTov, KaOaipeicOw, "Ap- Kovta yap Tov Aaod cov ovK Epeic Kakcec. KANQN Neo’. Ei tig KAnptkoc bBpioer mpeoBitEpov, 7} Siakovov, adopt= Cé00w, ‘ KANQN NZ’, Ei tig KAnpixoe YodAor, 7} Kwpdr, 7} TvoAdyr, ip Ta BdoELC TETANYLEVOY YAEvAaCEL, ApopiceoOw * WoaavTwo Kal Aaikéoc. KANQN NH’, "ExioKoroc, 7} mpeoBvtepog dueddyv tod KAnpov, i) Tod Aaov, Kal pr) TALEVWY advToOvE THY EvaEBELAY, ahopisEaIw * erévwv dé TH quedeia Kai pabvuia, KaBarpeicbw, KANQN NO’, El tig étioxoroc, 7 TtpeoBvtepoc, 7) Sidkovoc, Tivd¢ TOV ~ >, ~ aera SS » is) SEN s es , Ms - KAnptkav eEVvdEOvG OVTOC, [7 ETLYOpHYEL Ta SEovTA, apopicécOw émipévav 02, KABalpEetoOw, Wo movevoacg TOV adEAMoV adTod, KANON &’, Ei tug ta Wevderiypapa TOV doeBdv BiBAia, Oc aya, ert Tig exxAnoiac Snwoorever, Eni Avy Tov Aaod Kai Tov KAipov, Kabaipeiobw. | KANON ZA’, Ei tg Katyyopia yévntat Kata TLOTOU, TopveEiac, 7) woLyetac, 1] GAdne TLVOG aTHYOpEevpEernC Tpadsewc, Kai EAeyyMein, sic KAijpov un mpooayéoOw, CALLED ‘APOSTOLICAL. 99 CANON LIV. If any Clergyman shall be detected eating in a tavern, let him be suspended ; unless, when on a journey, he has been compelled to lodge at an inn. CANON LYV. If any Clergyman shall treat his Bishop with insolence, let him be deposed ; for, Thou shalt not speak evil of the ruler of thy people. CANON LVI. If any Clergyman shall treat a Presbyter or Deacon with insolence, let him be suspended. CANON LVII. If any Clergyman shall mock a person who is lame, or deaf, or blind, or who halts in his steps, let him be suspended, Likewise a layman. CANON LVIII. Tf a Bishop or Presbyter shall neglect the Clergy or the people, and not teach them religion, let him be suspended ; and if he continue in negligence and self-indulgence, let him be deposed. CANON LIX. If a Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, shall not supply what is necessary, when one of the Clergy is in need, let him be suspended ; and if he persist, let him be deposed, as one who murders his brother. CANON LX. If any one, to the destruction of the Clergy and people, shall publicly in the Church read the falsely superscribed books of impious men, as if they were Holy Scripture, let him be deposed. CANON LXI. If any accusation of fornication, or adultery, or any other forbidden act, should be brought against one of the faithful, and he should be convicted, let him not be promoted to the Clergy. 100 CANONS KANQN ZB’ Ei tug KAnpixoe dia poBov avOpwrtvov "lovdaiov, 7) “EAAn- voc, ij AlpetcKod, apvjcetat, ei piv TO Ovoua Tod Xpiotod, aToparAccOw* ei Je TO Ovoua Tov KAnpLKOd, KabatpEicOw, Metavoyjoas d&,w¢o Aaiko¢ deyO77o. ISANQN er Ki tig étioKxotoc, 7 TmpeoButepoc, 7) OtadKovoc, 7) bAwe TOD v4 ~ e = ~ 4 > ao ~ - ~ KaTadoyov TOU lepaTlKkoy ayy Kpéa Ev aiuate wWoyxi¢e avTod, i Onpiadwrov, i) Ovycuaiov, Ka0aipeicOw, Totro yap 6 vowoc ? ~ 3 . aoe an ” ’ / areitev, Hi dé Aaikoc ein, apopicécbw, KANQN ZA’ Et tig KAnptkoc, 7) Aaikoc, eicéADQ Eig ovvayeryiv "lov- daiwyv, 7) AipeTiKOv mpooevéacbat, Kai KabaipetoOw, Kat adopt- KANQN EE", Ei tic KAnpikog év payy TlIvad Kpovoac and Tov évoc Kpovouatoc atoKkreivyn, Ka0aipEioOw dia Tijv mpoTéTELaY abToDd ° él 0& Aaikdc, apopicedbw, KANQN 3s”, Ei tec KAnpixd¢g ebpeOy tiv KvplaKijy jpépav vyotevov, 7} TO aaBBatov (TARY Tod éEvde wovov) KaBatpEioOw, Hi 0& Aaixéc, aopicedde), KANON ZZ’, Ei tig rapbévov auviatevtov Biacdpevoc éyor apopicécb ° pn eSeivar O& abt@ éErépav AapBaverv, GAN? exeivnv KaTéxev VY Ypetioato, Kav TEvIYpa TYYYaVy. KANON =H’, Ei tig étioxoroc, i mpeoBvtepoc, 7) OidKovoc, devtépav xEporoviay d&éerat Tapa Tivoc, KabaipsioOw Kai advtoc Kai 6 CALLED APOSTOLICAL. 101 CANON LXII. If any Clergyman, from the fear of man, whether of Jew, or heathen, or heretic, shall deny the name of Curist, let him be cast out ; and if he deny the name of a Clergyman, let him be deposed ; but if he repent, let him be received as a layman. CANON LXITIL. If any Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, or any one whatever of the Sacerdotal List, shall eat flesh with the blood of the life thereof, or which bas been slain by beasts, or which has died a natural death, let him be deposed ; for this the law has for- bidden. And if it be a layman, let him be suspended. CANON LXIV. If any Clergyman (or layman) shall enter a synagogue of Jews or heretics, to pray, let him be both deposed and sus- pended [%. e., let the layman be suspended, but let the Clergy- man be both deposed from his ministry, and also suspended from Communion]. CANON LXV. Tf a Clergyman in a quarrel shall strike a man, and kill him at one blow, let him be deposed for his violence ; and if it be a layman, let him be suspended. CANON LXVIL. If any Clergyman be found fasting on the Lorn’s day, or on any Sabbath except one only [7. e., on Easter Even], let him be deposed. And if it be a layman, let him be suspended. CANON LXVII. If any one shall force and keep a virgin not betrothed, let him be suspended. And let him tale no other woman to wife, but keep her whom he has chosen, even though she be poor. CANON LXVIII. If any Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, shall receive from any one a second ordination, let both him and his ordainer be 102 CANONS xepotovycac* el pajye dpa ovorain, bt Tapa aipeTiKov tye THV yelpotoviay, Tove ydp rapa THv ToLOvTWY BaT- - (ane PD a Se ” X ” ‘\ a TLODEVT AC, i) KELPOTOVNDEVTAC, OVTE TLOTOVE, OVTE KANPLKOVE ELVvat Ovvaror, KANQN £6’, rns > , vX 4; DI , nr dae 7 Ki tug eioxoroc, 7) mpeoBvtepoc, 7) StaKovoc, i) avayvworne, 1] Waatnc, THY dyiav TEcoapakooT7V Tod doya ov vnorever, i] TeTpada, 7) TapaoKeviy, KaOalpsioOw, Extoc ei pi) OV dobéverav OwpatiKyy euTrodigorto, Hi d2 Aaixoc ein, apopicécbw, KANQN 0’, ” = 2 / “ a aN 7 eI ida ~ Ei ti¢ éntoKkotoc, 7) mpeoBdtEepoc, 7 OLaKovoc, 7 bAwS TOD ex va Bea ~ ath Se) 4 mt e , KaTaAoyov TOV KAnpLKOY, vnoTEveL peTa “lovdaiwy, 7) EopTacer oe ] eed A cA = 9 as mo =e (2 ~ Z £2 pet’ av7ay, 7 Oéxerae Tap’ avTwy Ta Tig Eoptij¢g sévia, (olov Jed ~ , . te AN agua, 7 Te ToLodTOv) KafatpeicOw, Hi dé Aaikoc ein, apo- p1-00w, KANON OA’, Ki tig Xprotiavdg EAaov anevéyxot cic iepov eOvav, 7) ei¢ Nar ig , b) ir ine t ~ SEN ey s ee ovvaywyny "lovdaiwy, év tai¢ éoptaic ait, 7) AvXVvovE arTEL, aopicecdw, KANQN OB’. Hi tug KAnpiKdc, 7) Aaikoc aro TIC dyiac eKKAnoiacg abéAnTat KNpoVv, 7) EAaLov, apoptcéoOw, KANQN OT", LKevoe ypvoovtv, 7) apyvpodv, dysacbey, 7) OOovny, pndeic¢ éte el¢ oikeiav xpijoww odetepicéo0w* Tapdvowov yap, Hi dé Tig Pwpabein, ETITYLATOW ApopLone. KANQN OA’, Ch nb 72 al, S +¢ oe b Exioxotov KarnyopnOévta emi TI Tapa asLoTioTWV aV= Opizwv Kadgioba aitov avayKaiov tnd TOY éeémLoKOTWY, Kav ev dmavtjon, Kat duodoynjoyn, 7) tAeyxOein dpigecOar 7d ey | [SUS SG OBA OT ee ny e+), LOO tS émitiwov* eav d& Kadovuevoc pi) braKovon, KadeicOw Kal Sener , , ee) tab , 9 s a NS > devrepov, aTooteAAomévwy er’ av7ov dvo émtokoTwy: Fav dé CALLED APOSTOLICAL. 103 deposed, unless it should be proved that he had his ordination from heretics ; for it is not possible that they who are bap- tized or ordained by such can be either of the faithful or of the Clergy. CANON LXIX. Hf any Bishop, Presbyter, Deacon, Reader, or Singer shall not fast in the holy forty days of Lent, or on Wednesdays and Fridays, let him be deposed, unless he be hindered [from fasting] by bodily weakness. And if it be a layman, let him be suspended. CANON LXX. If any Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, or any one whatever on the List of Clergy shall fast with the Jews, or observe festivals with them, or receive from them gifts, such as un- leavened cakes, or the like, from their feasts, let him be deposed. And if it bea layman, let him be suspended. CANON LXXtI. If any Christian shall bring oil into a temple of the heathen or a synagogue of the Jews, at their festivals, or if he shall light their lamps, let him be suspended. CANON LXXII. If any Clergyman or layman shall carry off wax or oil from the Holy Church, let him be suspended. CANON LXXIII. No one shall appropriate to his own private use any con- secrated vessel of gold or of silver, or linen; for this is a crime. And if any one be found so doing, let him pay the penalty of suspension. CANON LXXIV. If a Bishop be accused of anything by trustworthy men, it is necessary that he be summoned by the Bishops; and that if he appear and confess, or be convicted, they should deter- mine the penalty. But if he be summoned, and will not obey, let two Bishops be sent to him, and let him be summoned a 104 CANONS s WA \ i: 2 s s 4 , , 3 Kal OUTW ju) Drakovan, KadsicOw Kai Tpitov, dvO TadIY ETt- OKOTWY aToaTEAAoULvwY mpoc avTov. “Eav 62 Kal ovTw>S / a 4 4 ’ ? Katappovioac i atavtTioy, 1) ovvodog anopavecdw Kat Be) knw \ ~ w » 4 : , ~ avTov Ta dokoivTa, UTwWC pu OOS) KEpdaivery pvyodiKar. KANON OE’. Hic paptypiav tiv Kata émtoxdmov alpetiKov pn Tpoode- yeobat, GAAG pnd? TlotdOY Eva fdvov, "Et ordwatoc yap dvo i] TPIGV paptvpwv otabjoerat mav pra, KANQN Oc?, "Ore ob xpi EtioxoTmov TO AOEAPA, 7) TO VIG, 7) ETEPW OVY- yever yapigouevov, eic TO ddiwua Tig emloKoTrijg xElpoTovetv Ov BovasTat. KaAnpovouove yap tig émtoKorij¢ ToveioBat ov Oikaov, 7&4 Tov Osod yapisouevov Trd0e avOpwrivw* ov yap Tv ToD OEod éxKAnsiav brO KAnpovomovg dheidet TWévat. . Ki 0& tig TodTO ToLjoEl, Gkvpog pév LoTwW VELpO- rovia, avtocg O& éruTIdoOw apopropa. KANQN OZ’. Ei tic avannpoc 7 Tov ChPaAmov, 7 70 oKxédocg TenANypé- voc, dgioc dé éoTLv EmtoKoTAC, yivéoOw* od yap AWBH COpaTosG avTov juaivel, GAAa Wuyij¢ “oAvoLoc. KANQN OH’. Kuddc d& Ov Kat todddc, py yevéoOw éericxotoc: oby we peacuévoc, GAd’ iva fui) Ta EKKANOLADTLKA TapELTrO- OigotTo. KANQN O06! | 'Edv tie dainova &yyn KAnpikde pH yivéoOw* dAdd pundé toic maroic ovvevyéo0w. KabapOeic dé mpoodeyéobw, kai, 2 ” +s 7 ‘gy 2 fav 4 asloc, yivécbw. CALLED APOSTOLICAL 105 second time. And if he will not then obey, let two Bishops be again sent to him, and let him be summoned the third time. Andif he shall even then despise [the summons], and will not appear, let the Synod pronounce against him what they think right, that he may not evidently be a gainer by avoiding a trial. CANON LXXV. No heretic, nor even a single communicant, is to be re- ceived as the accuser of a Bishop; for, By the mouth of two or three witnesses shall every word be established. CANON LXXVI. It is unlawful for a Bishop desiring to gratify a brother or a son, or some other relative, to ordain whom he will to the dignity of the Episcopate. For it is not just to make heirs of his episcopal office, and through natural affection to give away the things which are Gonp’s. It is not lawful to bequeath the Church of Gop to heirs ; and if any one shall do this, let the ordination be void, and let himself be punished with suspension. CANON LXXVILI. .If any one who is otherwise worthy of the Episcopate be blind of an eye, or lame of a leg, let him be made [Bishop]; for it is not a blemish of the body, but a pollution of the soul, that defiles a man. CANON LXXVIII. But if any one is [{wholly| deaf or blind, let him not be made a Bishop, not because he is defiled, but that the affairs of the Church may not be hindered. CANON LXXIX. If any man have a devil, let him not be made a Clergyman; neither let him pray with the faithful ; but if he be dispos- sessed, let him be received [to prayers] ; and if he be worthy, let him be made [a Clergyman]. 106 CANONS KANQN II’, Tov e& éOvixod Biov mpoceAddvta, Kat Banticbévta, 7) ek pavancg dtaywyic, ob dikaidyv gots Tap’ avta TpoyerpicecBat éxioxorov. "Adikov yap, Tov pndémw reipay éemtdergapevor, étépwv elvat OiddoKadovs ef pujnw kata Oeiay yapiy todTO yévnrat, KANQN IIA’. Eizowev Ute ov xpi) émtoKoTov, 7) mpeoBvTepoy Kabrévat éavrov sic dnjLootac OtotKnoELC, GAAG TpocEevKaipeivy Taig ék= kKAnovaotikaic ypeiatc, "H rrev0éo0w ovv rovTo pi TrolEiv, 7) Kabapeis0w, Ovdelg yap Ovvatat Oval Kvpioig dovdAEvey, Kata THY Kuprakijy. rapakéAevowy, KANQN IIB’. Oixétac sic KAijpov TmpoyelpicecOar avev Tig THY dOeoToTHV ovyyveuncg obk émitpéTouev, ETL AUT TOY KEKTNUEVWY* OLKWY yap avatpotiy TO ToLovTOv épyagetat, Hi dé more nai d&Loc pavein 6 oikéTnG TpOG VELpoToviay BaOuod, otog Kai 6 TuéTEpOS ’Ovijowoc epavn, Kai ovyxwpioovolty oi dOeondTal, Kai é&dEv- fepwoovay, Kat Tov olkov éSarooTEiAwol, yivéobw, KANQN IID”. "Exioxotoc, i) mpecBuTEpoc, i) Olakovoc oTpateia ovyoAdcwr, Kai BovAdwevocg aupoTtepa Karéyelv, ‘Pwwatkiy apxyiyv Kai tepa- TLKIY OLoiKnoLY, Kaatpeiobw, Ta yap Kaioapoc, Kaioapt, Kai Ta TOV OEov TH OED. KANQN IIA’, "Oo tec UBpicer BactaAga, 7) apyovtTa Tapa TO dikaLoy Tipw- / 4 a \ ’ ‘ XX vA 5 ’ » piav TivvvTw, Kat ei pév KAnptKoc, KaatpeicOw* ei 62 Aaikoc, apopiséo0u, KANQN TIE’. "Eotw tyiv mdor KkAnpixoig Kat Aaikoic BiBAia oE&Bdojua kal ayia’ Tie pev Wadadc Avabijxnc, Mwvoéwe mévte, Téveoce, "Egodoc, Aevitixov, ’ApiOuoi, Aevtepovoptov, “Injood viod Navi, CALLED APOSTOLICAL. 107 CANON LXXxX. It is not right that one who has come over from heathen- ism, or from a dishonorable course of life, should immediately be made a Bishop ; for it is unjust that he who has not yet given proof of himself, should be the teacher of others, unless this should happen of Divine grace. CANON LXXXI. We have said that a Bishop or Presbyter ought not to let himself down to public business, but should occupy himself with-the affairs of the Church. Let such, therefore, either be persuaded not to do so, or let them be deposed ; for no man can serve two masters, as the Lorp hath taught. CANON LXXXII. We do not permit slaves to be promoted to the Clergy without the consent of their masters, so as to trouble their owners. For such a course would bring households into con- fusion. But if at any time a servant should appear worthy of ordination, as did our Onesimus, and if the master should agree and manumit him, and dismiss him from his house, let it be done. CANON LXXXIII. Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, serving in the army and desiring to retain both the Roman command and the priestly ministry, shall be deposed ; for the things which are Ceesav’s, belong to Czesar ; and the things which are Gon’s, to Gop. CANON LXXXIV. If any one shall wrongfully treat the Emperor or a Magis- trate with insolence, he shall pay the penalty, and if he be a Clergyman, he shall be deposed. If he be a layman, let him be suspended. CANON LXXXV. Let these books be accounted holy and venerable by you all, Clergy and laity, namely, Of the Old Testament : Five of Moses ; Genesis, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers, Deuteronomy ; One of Joshua, the son of 108 CANONS iv, Kpitdv, &v, ‘Povd, &v. Baotdedyv, técoapa. Tapade- Tonévwv tig BiBAov THY tuEepOv, Ovo. "“EKadpd, Ovo. ’Kofnp, év, MakkaBaiwr, tpia, “1oB, Ev. Ladrnpiov, év, Lodowdyr- soc tpia, Mapouuia, "ExxAnjovaoric, Aiowa Aiowatwv. Ipopy- sav, dexadvo. *Hoaiov, év. *Inpnutov, Ev, “TeGexuqa, &v. “Ev Aavina. "Ekwbev d2 byiv tpootoropeiobw pavOdvey buoy Tov¢ véove THY dogiav Tod noAvpabovc Lipdy. ‘Huétepa dé, TobT’ éort, tie Kawvijg AvaOjnnc, Ebayyédia téooapa, MatOatov, Mapkov, Aoved, “Iwavvov, aviaov éniotodai dekatecoapec, Uétpov éxiatodai Ovo, "lwdvvov, tpeic. “lakwBov, pia, "lovda, pia, KAnjevtocg émtotoAai dvo. Kai ai dvatayai tpiv toic émtoKo- moc Ov &uod KAnjwevtoc év bk7@ BiBAlog mpoortedwrnwévat, ac ov xpi) Onuocevery eri Tavtwr, dua Ta ev abratc fvoTiKa, Kai ai Upaserg judy tév ’AtootOAwy, CALLED APOSTOLICAL. 109 Nun ; One of Judges ; One of Ruth ; Four of Kings ; Two of [Paralipomena, that is of] the Book of Days Omitted ; Two of Esdras ; One of Esther ; Three of Maccabees ; One of Job; One, The Psalter ; Three of Solomon, Proverbs, Ecclesiastes, The Song of Songs ; Twelve of the Prophets, One of Isaiah, One of Jeremiah, One of Ezekiel, One of Daniel. Besides these, let it be understood that your children ought to learn the Wisdom of the most learned Sirach. [The Books] of our own, that is, of the New Testament : Four Gospels; of Matthew, Mark, Luke, John; Fourteen Epistles of Paul; Two Epistles of Peter; Three of John ; One of James ; One of Jude ; Two Epistles of Clement ; and the Constitutions addressed in eight books by me Clement to you Bishops (which books are not to be published to all, on account of the mystical things contained therein). And the Acts of us Apostles. q Ae rar ten 4 54 by V4 aoe fall) # 4 2 ) . te yore ah ba } ‘« rH i ' j t "7 ces Mf * . rr ee 1a. wi ie i es TET he ee A ‘ P \ a 7 im ’ 7 Mae nae a . ‘ * Pe i { ive Ait y Dae af av oa8 hs i ae ene | le Males wa 4p PLS ( at arte ale. | svaetap nite, ines id a air ) . ‘ iii pl pe i ; ' 7 shy ; Py ' be nae 4 a , ; A Vee! ey ( , Bide ct ‘ i pee Le Jord t) i a ‘ efignn ety yee i ANTS. Sh Aaa Nga Oh Ce 1 yy «hk fai olts Sra) pei Satan aan d banded heuln dns «rag LO nee ee ‘ } ar t 4 mt ; ‘ woo nr - ’ i hes he ' a A uh , cin ; AG ig ie i | ry L My 14 i, Wty 1 ’ + ‘4 . iy! Q Piper toe | i)" , ' y § pa i} ys A ae es! r » A , t BAL ae Ca. “H hi Vy P ~ ee = ; . ' 7 ) a ' ' 7 : 7 \ ‘ ‘ > te i FIRST GENERAL COUNCIL. 2 YNOATKH LIT TOA: 'H dylia Kat peyddAn ovvodoc tH dyia Kal peydAy OE0D yapite ’AAeEavdpéwv éxkAnoia, Kat toig Kata THY AlyvuTTor, kat IlevtatodAcv, kal AlBdnv, Kat toig Kata THY dT’ ovpa- vov, ayarnroig dadedpoic, KAhpotc te Kai Aavic dpI0d6eoLc, oF év Nekaia odvodov ovyKpotyoavtes éxioxorot év Kupia yaipecy. "EnElan TiH¢ ToD Xpiotob ydpitog Kai Tov OeodtAeatdtov BactAéwe Kwvotavtivov ovvayayovto¢g judc é« Oladépwv éap- ~ x , e 4 x e , , b] 7 KLOV Kat TOAEWY, 7 WEyYdAH Kal ayia ovvodoc év Nikaia ovy- KpoTyOeioa ta Tept THC EkKANHOLaOTLKIIG TioTEWo JLEiAndEV, a Tiva avaykaiov uiv epdvn anootadjvat Tap’ juov tpo¢G bude Ova ypaypdtwv, iva eidéva Eyoite, Tiva pév exivhjOn Kat e&n- pape ? ? S A 6 4 O& fp) c, my Str? % (a) Tao0n, Tiva O& dose Kai ExpaTvVON, IIpétov piv ovv andvrwy é&nrdoOn Ta Kata THY doé- Bevav kat rapavouiav ’Apetov Kai tév obv atTd ent Ta- povoia tov Oeopidsordtov iypov Baotdéwo Kwvotavrivov: Kal Tanpol édokav avabenatioOijvat avtov, Kati THY aoe/i) abrov ddgav, kal ra phuata, Kal Ta votuata avTod Ta BAdodnua, vic tkéypnto, BAacpnudy tov Tov vidv Oeod, Aéyov && ovk bvTwv eivat, Kat Tplv yevynOjvar ph eivat, kal qv more Ore ovK Vv, Kal abtegovordTnTe Kakiacg Kal apetig OektiKOv TOV vidv Tod OEod* A€yovToc, Kal KTioma* TabTa Tmadvta avebeudticev 4 ayia obvodoc, obdé boov akod- a Tie aoeBovc dbenc, Kal Tij¢ amovoiac, Kal TOV (Aao- ~yewov pnudrwv advtod dvacyouévy nal Ta péev Kat’ Exetvov olov téhove tetbynne, TdévTwWC 7 aknKOaTe, 7) aKotboedbe, iva pi Odewpev ereuBaiverv avdpt Ov oikeiav apaptiay aga Tanixeipa Kojuoauévw, Tooovtov d& toxyvoev avtov aoéBea, oN OPO ae Pe: To the Church of Alexandria, by the grace of Gop, Holy and Great ; and to our well-beloved brethren, the orthodox Clergy and Laity throughout Egypt, and Pentapolis, and Ly- bia, and every nation under heaven; the Holy and Great Synod, the Bishops assembled at Niczea, wish health in the Lorp. Forasmucu as the Great and Holy Synod, which was as- sembled at Niczea through the grace of Curist and our most religious Sovereign, Constantine, who brought us together from our several Provinces and Cities, has considered matters which concern the Faith of the Church, it seemed to us to be necessary that certain things should be communicated from us to you in writing, so that you might have the means of knowing what has been mooted and investigated, and also what has been decreed and confirmed. First of all, then, in presence of our most religious Soy- ereign, Constantine, investigation was made of matters con- cerning the impiety and transgression of Arius and his ad- herents ; and it was unanimously decreed that he and his impious opinion should be anathematized, together with the blasphemous words and speculations in which he indulged, blaspheming the Son of Gop, and saying that He is from things that are not, and that before He was begotten He was not, and that there was a time when He was not, and that the Son of Gop is by His free will capable of Vice and Virtue ; saying also that Hr is a creature. All these things the Holy Synod has anathematized, not even enduring to hear his im- pious doctrine and madness and blasphemous words. And of the charges against him and of the results they had, ye have either already heard or will hear the particulars, lest we should seem to be oppressing a man who has in fact received a fitting recompense for his own sin. So far indeed has his 114 SYNODICAL LETTER. Oc Kal TapaTOAéoat Oewrdy tov dd Mapyapikijc, kal Le- kodvdov tov ard IroAeuaidog: TOV yap adtav KdKetvor odv Toic dAAog TETVYHKAOLY. "AAX’ érretd) 1) TOV Oeov Yaplc Tie pév KaKodosiag ékel- vnc Kat BAaodnulac, Kal TOY TpOOWTwWY THY TOAUHOadYTwWY Oidaraciy Kal dlaipeow Toijoacbar tov elpnvevouévov dvwOev Aaov, AEevOépwoe tiv Aiyvntov, édeimeto O& 70 Kata THY mpotétetav MedAnriov Kat THY dn’ avtov yvetpotovnbévtwr * Kal Tept tovTov Tov pépove a edoke TH ovvdedw, éudarvi- Couev div ayanntol ddeApot. "Edokev ovv MedAgrtiov pév, diAavOpwr6tepov Kivyfeiong tig ovvddov, Kata yap Tov aKpiph Adyov otdeudc ovyyvounc dakiog qv, pévery &v TH av7ov mO6Ael, Kai pndeniav é&ovolav eye, pte VElpoto- vetv, pute vempicerv, pute yelpoOereiv, pte év yopa, pnte év mode érépa gaivecbat tavtTng Tij¢ Tpopdoewc Evexa* ytddov d& 7d Ovoua Tie Tite KEKTHOOaL* Todc dé um’ avtov Kataotabévtac, pvotikwrépa yelpotovia BEeBawwOév- Tac, KolvwvnOivat int tovtotc: éh’ © TE ExELY péeY avTOvG Tiy Tiyinv, Kat Aettoupyetv, dSevtépove dé eivar é&&dravTo¢ TavTWY TOY Ev ExdoTH Tapolkia Kal exKAnoia eSeTacoméevwr, TOV UTO TOV TYU@TATOY Kal ovAAELTOYpyoY uav ~AAéEaY. Opov mpokexerptowévwrv. ‘Q¢ Tovroig wey pundeutav é&Fovoiav eivat Todv¢ apéoKovtac avToic TpoyerpivecOa, 7) broBdAdEew ovouata, i) OAwe Troveiv Te Ywpic yvouns TOV Tig KaBoALKIC Kat anooroAtKic éxkAnotac émtoxdnmwv TOV bd ’AA&EaVdOpov TeAovvTwY, TOY OoLwwTaToVv ovdAdEetTOVpybv Huar. Tovco dé yapitt Ocod Kat edyaic byetépac ev pundevt oxiowate evpe- Bévtac, aAdAad akndAtddrove tv TH KaBoALKi Kat arrooTOALKi EkkAnoia dvtac, éfovoiav eye Kat mpoyerpicecBa, Kal ove- pata émudAgyecOa tov dkiwy Tod KAnpov, Kat bAwo TdavTa Toletv Kat Kata vouov Kat Oeopov Tov éxKkAnovaotiKOY. Ei d€ TLva ovuBaivy dvaratoac0a THY év TH EKKANOlAa, THV- Kavta TpooavaBaivery eic tiv TYyLiVY TOU TETEAEYTHKOTOC TOC apte tpoAnpbévtac, p6vov ei aktot gaivowwto, Kai 6 Aad aipotto, avveTupnpigovtoc avtT@, Kat émioppayigovtog Tov THC ’AAskavdpetac émeoxdrov. Tovto d& toig pév adAdoig anaot ovvexwpfiOn* ent d& tov MeAntiov mpoomrov obKéte Ta avta tdoke, dia THY avéxabev aditod azasiay, Kal dia NICAA. 115 impiety prevailed, that he has even destroyed Theonas of Marmarica and Secundus of Ptolemais ; for they also have received the same sentence as the rest. But when the grace of Gop had delivered Egypt from that heresy and blasphemy, and from the persons who have dared to make disturbance and division among a people heretofore at peace, there remained the matter of the insolence of Mele- tius and those who have been ordained by him ; and concern- ing this part of our work we now, beloved brethren, proceed to inform you of the decrees of the Synod. The Holy Synod, then, being disposed to deal gently with Meletius, (for in strict justice he deserved no leniency), decreed that he should re- main in his own City, but have no authority either to make appointments, or to administer affairs, or to ordain ; and that he should not appear in any other City or District for this purpose, but should enjoy the bare title of his rank ; but that those who have been placed by him, after they have been con- firmed by a more sacred appointment, shall on these condi- tions be admitted to communion : that they shal! both have their rank and the right to officiate, but that they shail be altogether the inferiors of all those who are enrolled in any Church or Parish, and have been appoimted by our most honourable colleague, Alexander. So that these men are to have no authority to make appointments of persons who may be pleasing to them, nor to suggest names, nor to do anything whatever, without the consent of the Bishops of the Catholic and Apostolic Church, who are serving under our most holy colleague, Alexander ; while those who, by the grace of Gop and through your prayers, have been found in no schism, but on the contrary are without spot in the Catholic and Apostolic Church, are to have authority to make appointments and nominations of worthy persons among the Clergy, and in short to do all things according to the law and ordinance of the Church. But, if it happen that any of the Clergy who are now in the Church should die, then those who have been lately received are to succeed to the office of the deceased ; always provided that they shall appear to be worthy, and that the people elect them, and that the Bishop of Alexandria shall concur in the election and ratify it. This concession has been made to all the rest ; but, on account of his disorderly conduct from the first and the rashness and precipitation of 116 SYNODICAL LETTER. +d mpdyepov Kal mpotetéc Tie yvounc, iva pydepia eovoia }) av0evtia abtd dobein, avOpdrm dvvapévy Tddiy Tag avTac atagiacg éurojoat. Taitdé éote ta eéaipera Kat dvadépovta AiyinTH Kal TH aywwrdty “Adekavdpéwv ExxaAnoia. Ei dé te dAdo a ékavo- viody 7 edoypaticOn ovutapé6vtog Tob Kupiov Kal TULLO- ~dtov ovAdAettoupyod Kat adeAgod iudv ’AAesdvdpov, avTo¢ map@y aKkpiBéotEepov avoioet Tavita TpoG bude, ate dyn Kal Kbplog Kal KOLVWYOG TOY yeEyEVNEVWVY TLYXaVOY, Evayyedrcoucda d& budcg Kat tmept tij¢ cvppwviac rod dyiov mdoxya, 6Tt dwerépatc evyaic KatwpOoOn Kal TovTO TO [éEpoOC, ote mdvrac Tove é&v TH e&Wa ddEAmors, TOvG pETA TAY lovdaiwy TO mpdTEepov ToLotvTac, ovudSvwo ‘Pwwatoig Kal ipiv, Kal maow Ttoig && apxatov peO’ ipav dtAdcoovor Tod nioya, &k Tov detpo dyev TY adbTiy ayvotatyy EopTiy Tov Taoxya. Xaipovtes ovv ént toic KatopO@puact, Kal emt TH Kova ciphvy kal ovudwvia, Kat ent T@ aoav aipeoty exkorijvat, d7ro0déeac0e piv pera peifovog TyLig¢ Kai TAElovog aydry¢ soy ovaAdertovpyov Hudv, dudv d& éniokotov ’AAEEaVdpor, roy eddpdvavta ido ti abvtobv Tapovoia, Kat ev TavTy Ty jAtkia tooovtov mévov brootdyta iTép Tov elpnvaY ye- vécOa rapa te buiv Kat mdowv, Evyeobe dé kai Tept Tua andvTwy, iva Ta Kadwc bye ddgavta, TavTa BEBaa péVOL, Kat’ evdokiav yeyernuéva, wo TOTEvOMEV, Tapa TOV TaVvTO- Kpdtopoc OEov, Kat Tov jLovoyevov’¢ viov avTod TOD KUpLoVv jpuav “Inoo’ Xpiorov, wal tod ‘Aylov Ilvevyatoc, @ 4 ddsa elc Tovc aidvac, "Apjy. NICAHA. 1 his character, the same decree was not made concerning Mele- tius himself, but that, inasmuch as he is a man capable of committing again the same disorders, no authority nor privi- lege should be conceded to him. These are the particulars, which are of special interest to Egypt and to the most holy Church of Constantinople ; but if in the presence of our most honoured lord, our colleague and brother Alexander, anything else has been enacted by Canon or other decree, he will himself convey it to you in ereater detail, he having been both a guide and fellow-worker in what has been done. We further proclaim to you the good news of the agree- ment concerning the holy Easter, that this particular also has through your prayers been rightly settled; so that all our brethren in the East who formerly followed the custom of the Jews are henceforth to celebrate the said most sacred feast of Easter at the same time with the Romans and yourselves and all those who have observed Easter from the beginning. Wherefore, rejoicing in these wholesome results, and in our common peace and harmony, and in the cutting off of every heresy, receive ye with the greater honour and with in- creased love, our colleague, your Bishop, Alexander, who has gladdened us by his presence, and who at so great an age has undergone so great fatigue, that peace might be established among you and all of us. Pray ye also for us all, that the things which have been deemed advisable may stand fast ; for they have been done, as we believe, to the well-pleasing of Almighty Gop and of his only Begotten Soy, our Lorp Jesus Curist, and of the Hoty Guosr; to whom be glory for ever. Amen, SYMBOLUM NICHNUM, AD EXEMPLAR QUOD EXTAT IN ACTIS CHALCEDONENSIS CONCILIL Ilvotetouev eic Eva Oedv, Wazvépa, tavtoKpatopa, TmavTwv OpadTwv TE Kal dopdtwr ToLNnTHY * Kai ei¢ Eva Kipiov Incovv Xpiorov, Tov Yidy tov Oeod, yev- vnbévra &k TOD ILatpoc, wovoyery, TovTéoTLv EK Tij¢ oboiag Tov Ilatpéc¢* Oedv &k OE0d, POG EK POTOCG, Oedyv aAnOLVdY EK OEod aAnOivod, yevundévra, ov Toinévta, OmootoLov 7@ Tlazpi> du’ ob va TdvrTa tyéveto, TdTE EV TO OVpaVG Kal Ta év TH yq° TOV Ou’ judc TodS avOpaOToOVE, Kai OLa THY uEeTEpav owTNplav KaTEA- Odvra, kal oapkwbévra, Kai évavOpwrihoavta, Tabdvra, Kat ava- TdvTa TH TILTH Nuepa, avedOdvra -ei¢ Tove obpavove, Kat TaALY EpYouevov Kpivar COvrac Kat vexpove. Kai eic 70 Ivevua 76 “Aytov. Tod¢ d& Aéyovtag* iy Tote Ste ovK iV, Kal Tpiv yevynOij- vat ovk av, Kal Ore E obk bvtwy éyévero, ij €& ETEpag br00Td- dewe 7 ovolac pdoKovtac Eivat, 7) TPETTOY, 1] GZAoLWTOY TOY Tiov Tov O¢0d, TovTove dvabendtiser | KaDOALKT Kal aTrOoTOALKI EKKANOLA. THE NICENE CREED AS CONTAINED IN THE ACTS OF THE COUNCIL OF (5) Ashanti De Oi gl OO Ginke We believe in one Gop, the Faruer, Almighty, Maker of all things visible and invisible : And in one Lorp Jesus Curist, the Son of Gop, Begotten of the Farner, Only Begctten, that is, of the substance of the Faruer ; Gov of Gop, Light of Light, Very Gop of Very Gop, Begotten, not made, Being of one substance with tic Farner; By Whom all things were made, both those in heaven and those in earth ; Who, for us men and for our salvation, came down, And was incarnate, and was made Man, Suffered, And rose again the third day, Ascended into heaven, And cometh again to judge the quick and the dead: And in the Hoty Gaosr. But them that say that there was a time when He was not ; and that He was not before He was begotten ; end that He was made of things which are not; or who say that He is of another substance or essence ; or that the Son of Gop is subject to conversion or mutation ; these the Catholic and Apostolic Church anathematizes. CANONES NICANI: ‘CONCILIT UNIVERSALIS. A.D. 825. KANQN A’, Ei tic tv véow ind iatpov éyepovpy7i0n, 7 bm Bap- Bdpwv &e7uj9n, obtog pevétw Ev TO KANpw. Hi d& tg byeat- vw EavTov eséTEwe, TovTOV Kal éV 7 KAHpw ée&eTaAG6- evov, metavabat mpoojKer* Kal Ek Tov dEvpo, pndéva TOV TOLOVTWY Ypivat TpodyecOat, “oTtep dE TOovTO TpddTAOY, Ort TEept Tav éemitndEevdvTwY 70 Tpdypa, Kal TOAWOYTWY éavtove éxtéuvery eipytat ovtwo, et tiveg t76 PBapBd- pov, 7) deoTroTaév evvovyicOjoay, evpiokotvTo O& dAAwe aéLOL, Tov¢ toLvotroveg cig KApov Tpooterat 6 Kavov. KANQN B’. ’"Ererdy «TroAAa, frow bd dvadyKng, 7 dAdwo éretyo- pévov TOV avOpwoTwr, eyévero Tapa Tov Kavéva TOV ék- KAnalaoTiKoOYv, Wate avOpwTove azd eOviKOD Biov apzi Tpod- eAO6vtacg 7 Tlorer, Kat ev dAlyw yYpdvw KatnynOévrac, ev0d¢ ent TO mvevwatixov Aovtpdy dyewv, kal dua TO Bar- TLa0ijvat mpoodyev sic emtoKoTyV, 7) ei¢ TpeoBvTéplov, KaAwe édokev Eyewv, Tov Aottov pundiv TowovtTo yivecOar* Kai yap Kat ypovov dct 7H KatTnyovpévw, Kal peTa TO PBarTLOLMA, dokiuaciag zAeiovoc. Ladic yap TO aroorToAtKov ypaduma, TO déyov: pi) vedputov, iva ph Tvpwbeicg eic Kpina eu- Téoy, Kat mayida rTov dtaBdAov. Ei d&, mpoidvto¢ tov xpo- vov, wWoyiKkdv Te dudptnua eipeOein TEepl TO TpOoWTOY, Kat éhéyyoito bd Oto, 7 TpLdV japTé&pwv, TEeTavaIw 6 ToLOdTOG Tov KAnjpov. ‘'O d& Tapa TattTa TOLdY, wo dTEvavTia TH jueyaay ovved@ Opacvv6uevoc, advtog¢ Kivdvvevoet TEpt TOV KATPOV, CAEN-OWN. Sy (OW NLG, An A, CANON I. If any [Clergyman] has been subjected by physicians to a surgical operation, or if he has been castrated by barbarians, let him remain among the Clergy ; but, if any one in sound health has castrated himself, it behoves that such an one, if [already] enrolled amung the Clergy, should cease [from his ministry], and that from henceforth no such person should be promoted. But, as it is evident that this is said of those who wilfully do the thing and presume to castrate themselves, so if any have been made eunuchs by barbarians, or [being slaves] by their masters, and should otherwise be found worthy, such men the Canon admits to the Clergy. CANON II. Forasmuch as, either from necessity, or through the urgency of individuals, many things have been done contrary to the Canon of the Church, so that men just converted from heathen- ism to the Faith, and who have been instructed but a little while, are straightway brought to the spiritual laver, and as soon as they have been baptized, are advanced to the Episco- pate or the Presbyterate, it has seemed right to us that for the time to come no such thing shall be done. For to the Cate- chumen himself there is need of [more] time and of a fuller trial after Baptism. For the apostolical saying is clear, “ Not a novice ; lest, being lifted up with pride, he fall into con- demnation and the snare of the devil.” But if, after the lapse of time, any sensual sin should be found out about the person, and he should be convicted by two or three witnesses, let him be deposed from the Clergy. And whosoever shall transgress these [enactments] will imperil his own clerical position, as a person who presumes to disobey the Great Synod. 122 CANONS Ke AINSZIN A ’"Annyo 006A i Gh sv00 ire eTTLOKO Annyopevoe KaloAov 1 peyaAn ovvodoc, jujte éemLoKOTTH, wijte TpeoBvtépw, pute Otakovw, fuyjte GAwc Tivt TOY év [7H] KAnpw, eSeivat ovvetcanrov eye, TAY el fi) apa pnTépa, 7] ddezoiyv, 7) Osiav, 7) a ova mpoowna Tadoav wropiav dta- COTE ee CU taal) I Pp TEPEVYEV, KANQN A’, ’Exioxotov mpoorjket puddtota pév v0 TavTwY THV év TH ; , , , 3 ‘ 5 ” x ~ ei x évapyia KaSiorac0a* ei O& Ovoyeptc ein TO ToLovTO, 1] Ota as 4 9 4 si pas oS ~ e ~ ae Les = oe ~ KaTenelyovoav avaykyy, 7 Ola jijkoc O00v, é& atavtoc TpeEtc éml TO avTd ovvayouévovce, ovpwpipwv ylvouévwov Kai Tov an6vTwy, Kat ovvTibewévwv did ypappaTwv, TOTE THY YeELpo- roviav Toetobar* TO O& Ktpog THY ylvouevwr OidocBat Kal’ éxaoThy étapylav TO pytpoTrodAiry. KANQN E’, Ilept TOv dkowwwvijtwv yevouevwr, elte THv ev TO KANpO, elte TOV EV Aaik® Taypatl, ITO TOV Kal’ ExaotHY éerapyiav ETLOKOTWV, KpATELTW 1) YVOLIN, KaTa TOV Kavova TOV dLayo- pevovta, tor¢ to’ éEtépwv dro0BAnOévtac, bp éErépwr py , Dh a . . , x” , mpocicoOm. ‘KéerageoOw 02, jun yukpowrvyia 7) dtAoveckia, - q Tive tToLavTy andia Tov emtoKOTOV, dmooVVayWyoL ‘yeye- vnvra. “Iva ovy Tovto tiv mpérovaay &&éraow AapBdvor, > ~ »” ” ce e Ane cd seen 3 id 4 2 kad@c &yev edogev, eEkaotov éviavtTov, Kal’ éExaoTnv éeTap- viav Ol¢ to® étove ovvddovg yivecOar: iva Kowh TavTwv TOV ETLoKOTWY Tig éEmapyiag éml TO ad7d ovvayonévwv, TA Tolavta CntHuara etcetatnrat, Kal ottw¢e of duwodoyovuévw Ss ’ TpOokeKpovKoTEeG TH eTLOKOTW, KATA ACyoVv akoLvWYyTOL Tapa maow elvat ddswot, péxpig av TO Kolva TOV éETLOKOTWY Od tiv dtAavOpwrorépay = btép av7dv exOéoOat »>ijpor, Ab 6& ovvodor ywwécOwoar, pia piv po tij¢ Teooapakoorijc, iva maon¢e jukporuyiag avatpovuévyc, TO depov Kabapov mpoodépyta TO Oed* dOevtépa dz, Tmepl Tov Tod jeTOT@poOV Kalpov, OF NICAA. 123 CANON IIL. The Great Synod has stringently forbidden any Bishop, Presbyter, Deacon, or any one of the Clergy whatever, to have any woman dwelling with him, except only a mother, or a sister, or an aunt, or such persons only as are beyond all suspicion. CANON IV. It is by all means proper that a Bishop should be ap- pointed by all the Bishops in the Province; but should this be difficult, either on account of urgent necessity or because of distance, three at least should meet together, and the suffrages being taken, those of the absent [Bishops] also being com- municated in writing, then the ordination should be made. But in every Province the ratification of what is done should be left to the Metropohian. CANON V. Concerning those, whether of the Clergy or of the laity, who have been excommunicated by the Bishops in the several Provinces, let the provision of that Canon prevail which pro- vides that persons who have been cast out by one Bishop are not to be readmitted by another. Nevertheless, inquiry shouid be made whether they have been excommunicated through captiousness, or contentiousness, oz any such like ungracious disposition in the Bishop. And, that this matter may have due investigation, it is decreed that in every Province Synods shall be held twice every year ; in order that, all the Bishops of the Province being assembled together, such questions may by them be thoroughly examined ; that so those who have confessedly offended against their Bishop, may be seen to be for just cause excommunicated by all, until it shall seem fit to the common assembly of the Bishopsto pronounce a milder sentence upon them. And let these Synods be held, the one before Lent, (that the pure Gift may be offered to Gop after all bitterness has been put away) ; and let the second be held about Autumn. 124 CANONS KANQN ¢’, Ta apyaia On Kkpateitw, Ta év Aiyin7w, Kat ArBiq kal Ilevramdaet, wore tov év ’Adekavdpeia énioxotov mav- Tw TOUTWY EvELY THY esovolay: éETeldh Kal TH bv [7H] ‘Poy emtoKdTm@ tTovTO obvyDEéo eoTLV. ‘Owoiwce dé Kal Kata 7Hv “Avrioyerav, Kal év taic dAdag émapylaic, Ta TpEO- Beta owecOar Taig éekKAnoiatc. Kadddov d0& mpddndrov éxetvo* O7t el Tig Ywpic yvroung Tov pNtpoTOAiToV yévotTo émlokoT0c, TOY ToOLOVTOY 1 pEyYadAn obvodeg Wploe fur) eiv eivat érioxontov. “Hav pévtot TH Kowa mdvtwv wide, EevAbyw ovoy, Kal Kata Kavova éxKAnotaoTiKOY, Ovo0, 7 TpEiC Ou’ oiKkelav dlAovetkiav avTlAgywol, KpaTEiT® TOY TAELO- vav Wipos, KANQN Z’. ’ x a , s , e) , % Ered) ovvij0eva KeKpatnke, Kal tapddoowg apyaia, @oTE tov év Aidia émioxotov tiysdoba, eyétw THY akodAovbiav t ? 7 THC TULAG’ TH uNtpoT6AE owouévov Tov oikEiov a&i@patoc. KANQN H’. Tlept THv dvopagévtwy piv éavtov¢ Ka@apov¢ more, Tpocepyouévwvy O& TH KaDOALKT Kai amooTOALK éKKAnoia, édoge tH ayia Kal peyadAy ovvddw, ote xelpoOeTovpé- voug avTodc, péverv ovtTwo &v TO KAjpw. Ipod mdvTwv dé TovTO OmodAoyjoa avtovs eyypddw¢o TpooiKE, Ott ovr- Ojoovra Kai akodovOjoovot Toi¢g Tij¢ KADOALKijG Kat anooTo- Akio exkAnolag ddywac.: tovtéott, Kal dvydpoig Kowvwretr, Kal tolc tv TO Olwypn@ TapareTmTwKéav, &b’ wv Kat xXpbvocg TétakTal, Kal Kaipt¢ @pioTtar: WoTE avTot¢ aKkodAovleiv Ev maot toic Odyuact ric KaOodAuKhg éxnaAnoiac. "“EvOa pév ovv mdvrec, elite &v Ko@patc, elite év méAgorv, avTol povot evpiaKkovto xeipotovnbévrec, ol ebptokduevor EV TH KATPY, éoovrae év 7H abt@ oyfpatt. Ei d& rod Tij¢ KadodAcKie éxkAnoiac éxtoKdrov, 1 mTmpeoBvtépov Ovtoc, mTpocépyovTat Tivec, Tpodndov, we 6 pev émiakotog Tig exKkAnoiacg eet TO déiwua tod émtokémov' 6 J& dvOMacopEevog Tapa Tog Reyouévore Kadapoic énioxotoc, THY Tov mpeoBuTépov TiunY OF NICAZA, 125 CANON VI. Let the ancient customs prevail in Egypt, Lybia, and Pentapolis; so that the Bishop of Alexandria have jurisdiction in all these Provinces, since the like is customary for the Bishop of Rome also. Likewise in Antioch and the other Provinces, let the Churches retain their privileges. And this is to be uni- versally understood, that, if any one be made Bishop without the consent of the Metropolitan, the Great Synod has declared that such a man ought not to be a Bishop. If, however, two or three Bishops shall from natural love of contradiction, op- pose the common suffrage of the rest, it being favourable, and according to the Canon of the Church, then let the choice of the majority prevail. CANON VIL. Since a custom and an ancient tradition have prevailed that the Bishop of Ailia [7. e., Jerusalem] should be honoured, let him, saving its due dignity to the Metropolis [7. e., Czesa- rea], have the second place of honour [in the Province]. CANON VIII. Concerning those who call themselves Cathari, if they come over to the Catholic and Apostolic Church, the Great and Holy Synod decrees that they who are ordained shall con- tinue as they are, in the Clergy. But it is before all things necessary that they should profess in writing that they will observe and follow the decrees of the Catholic and Apostolic Church ; in particular that they will communicate with per- sons who have been twice married, and with those who having lapsed in persecution have had a period [of penance] laid upon them, and a time [of restoration] fixed ; and in general that they will follow the decrees of the Catholic Church. Wheresoever, then, whether in villages or in Cities, all of the ordained are found to be of these only, let them remain in the Clergy, and in the sume rank in which they are found. But if they come over where there is a Presbyter or Bishop of the Catholic Church, it is manifest that the Bishop of the Church must have the Bishop’s dignity ; and he who is named Bishop by those who are called Cathari shall have the rank of Pres- 126 CANONS wr e — aN d > ” , =~. 2 a ei ~ ~ eger* Any ei jin) apa Ookoin TO ETLOKOTM, TIC TLIC TO > 4 ) x ae ’ > = ~~ tes ~ b] - Ovowatoc avTov petéyerv. Ei d& tovTO avT@ pn apécKot, 7 4 or “ cee 3 a J » ~we émlvonoet TOTOV 7] YWpETLoKOTIOV, 1} TpEaBvTEepov, vTEp TOV > ~ nA o ~ ¥ iva XN ? ~ af 4 év T@® KkAjpw OAwe doxsiv eivacs iva py év TH TOAE dvO Cad ETLOKOTOL WOLY, KANQN 0. wy 3 e 7 ia x cf Et teveg dveteraoTw¢g mponyOnscav tpeoBvTEpol, 1) avaKpt- VOWEVOL WMOACyHTAV Ta GpuapTiuaTa avToic, Kai, OuoAoynoav- TwY avTOV, Tapa Kavova KivovpEevor ol dvOpwTot, TOIG TOLOv- e Telc yeipa émiteOeixact, Tovtove 6 Kavav ob TpooleTar* TO > yap avertiAnntov éKxdrKet 1) KaDoALKT EKKANOLA, KANON I¢ . 0 os , _™ = te ST ” Osot mpoeyepicOjoav THY TapaTETTWKOTWY, KAT’ ayvolay, 3 x a ~ 4 ~ b] 4 Kal TpOELOOTWY THY TPOYELPLGaUEVWY, TOVTO OV TPOKpLVEL TO Kavove TO EkKAQOLATTLUKa* yvoobErvtec yap, KaDalpodyTat, KANON IA‘ 5 ~ / ‘ 3 4 N > 3 Ilept tév tapaBdvTwy ywpi¢ avayKnc, 1) Kwpic adat- péoewc bTAapYOvTwr, 7 Ywpig KLVdvVOV, 7] TLVOG TOLOVTOV, O yéyovev éni tice tupavvidog Aiviov, édog ti ovvéd@, e & 5 , a , rd s > > Kai avastoe ijoav dtidavOpwriac, buwc xypnotevcadbat sic av- va 3 s a s y 9 rd Tove. “Ooot ovv yryciwr petapérAovta, Tpla ETH EV akpowpe= vol¢ Tolnoovoltv, of mtoTOi, Kal émTa ern UnoTECOvYTAL* Otw b2 é&tn xXwplc Tpoopopac Kotvwyyjcovot TH Aaw TaV TPOGEVKOV. KANON IB’ rs ‘ ~ s Ol dt mpookAnbévtes piv bd Tie ydpltoc, Kat THY TpW- ryv opujnv evodekanevor, kal ato0éuevor tac Cwvac, peta OF | pen SaPEVOL, Kh a b rae C, Yel ~ 5 ~ ~ i/ - . Tavita éni tov oixeton éuerov avadpapovTec, WG KUVEC, WC tivac kal apyvpia mpotoOal, Kai Bevedtkiowg KatopOacar TO avaotparevoac—a: ovrot d&ka ern droTinTéTWOAaY, peETA OF NICAA. 127 byter, unless it shail seem fit to the Bishop to admit him to partake in the honour of the episcopal name. Or, if this should not be satisfactory, then shall the Bishop provide for him a place as Chorepiscopus, or Presbyter, in order that he may be evidently seen to be of the Clergy, and that there may not be two Bishops in the City. CANON IX. If any Presbyters have been advanced without examina- tion, or if upon examination they have made confession of crime, and men acting in violation of the Canon have laid hands upon them, notwithstanding their confession, these men the Canon does not admit ; for the Catholic Church justifies that [only] which is blameless. CANON X. Tf any who have lapsed have been ordained through the ignorance, or even with the previous knowledge, of the ordain- ers, this. shall not prejudice the Canon of the Church ; for when they are discovered they shall be deposed. CANON XI. Concerning those who have fallen without compulsion, without the spoiling of their property, without [personal] danger, or the like, as happened during the tyranny of Lici- nius, the Synod declares that, though they have deserved no clemency, they shall be dealt with mercifully. As many for- mer communicants, therefore, as shall heartily repent, shall pass three years among the hearers; for seven years they shall be prostrators; and for two years they shall communicate with the people in prayers [7. e, as co-standers], but without [being admitted to] the Oblation. CANON XII. As many as had been called by grace, and had at first dis- played their zeal, but who, having cast aside their military girdles, afterwards returned, like dogs, to their own vomit, (so that some spent money and by means of gifts regained their military stations); let these, after they have passed the 128 CANONS » TOV Tij¢ TpleTOvC akpodoews ypdvov, ’E@’ drao dé tovtorc, mpoonuer ekeracerv THY Tpoaipenyv Kal Td eldoc THe perarotac, "Ooo piv yap P68, kai daKpvot, Kai UToLOVy), Kat dyaboep- ylac, THY eEmatpopiy épyw, Kai ob oymuatt, énideixvevtat, ovTo TANpwcarTEes TOY YpdvoY TdY MpLousvor THC akpoacewc, ElkOTWG TOY EDYGY KOLYWYHGOVOL, ETA TOD éekeivar TO emt OKOT® Kat dtAavOpwrotEepdv tLe TEpl adtev PBovdevoacba., “Ooo. 62 adtapopwsg aveyKav, Kai 7d oyipa rod eiovévar eic THY ExKAnoiay apketv Eavtoig iyyjoavto mpd¢ tiv émorpodyr, cy va £5 aTavtTo¢ TANpovTwoaY TdY Ypdvor, KANQN IT, Tlept dé taév éefodevovtwr, 6 tahatoe Kal Kavovikde vomoc gvAaxOyoetat Kai viv, date, et tie eEodEvo1, Tob TeAevTaiov PED , : y Ne 45, ey ; Pent, Kal avayKatotatov epodiov iy anootepeioba, Ei d& amoyvwao- Oelc, Kal Kolvwviag TrY@V, TdAtw év Ttoic Gow éeé&eTaobi, ETA TOV KOLYWVODITWY THC Edvy7¢G jdvyg ~oTwW. Kafddov O& Kat mEpt mavtdoc ovTLVvocotY &XodevorvToc, aitovyvToc tov p : ; peTacyeiv evyaplotiac, 6 émioKkomo¢ fuera OoKkywaciac peTa- O.d67W Ti¢ mpoomopac. / KANON IA’, a S / » ~ e ¢ Tlept TOY KaTnyovmevwv, Kai TapaTtecdvTwy, edoke TH ayia uA ~ > ~ ° ‘ .J 4 kal peydAy ovvdds, WoTe, TpIOVY ETOV aVTOVE aKpowpmEVOLE ~ SS ~ iA WOVvOY, META TAVTA EvYETBaL PETA THY KAaTHYOLMEVWY, KANQN IE’. Aid tov ToAdY Tdpayov, Kal TAC oTdGELG TAG yLvoLEvac, tdoke Tavtdmact reptapeOijvar tiv ovv7jOecav, TV Tapa TOV dnoorodtkov Kavova ebpeOeioav ev TLoL Mépeolv, WOTE GTO TO- Rewc ele TOA pu petaBaiverr, pte éemioKoror, jute TpecBv- TEpov, pte diaxovov, Ei dé tig, pera TOV TiC ore ny peydanc avvedov 6pov, ToovT@ Tivi éenexyetpjoeer, 7 emLdoty ‘Lavrov mpdynate TowotTw, dKvpwOjoeTa &E dnavrTog TO KaTa- oKevaoua, Kal drokatactabijceral Th eExKAnoia, ev q 6 érioKo- Toc, 7) 6 mpeoBdTepog eyetpotov7On. OF NICHA. 129 space of three years as hearers, be for ten years prostrators. But in all these cases it is necessary to examine well into the purpose and appearance of repentance. For as many as give evidence of their conversion by deeds, and not pretence, by fearfulness, and tears, and perseverance, and good works, when they have fulfilled their appointed time as hearers, may properly communicate in prayers [7. e., as co-standers] ; and after that the Bishop may determine yet more favourably con- cerning them. But those who take [the matter] with indiffer- ence, and who think the form of entering the Church is suffi- cient for their conversion, must fulfil the whole time. CANON XIII. Concerning the departing, the ancient canonical law is still to be maintained ; to wit, that, if any man be at the point of death, he must not be deprived of ihe last most indispen- sable provision for the way. But, if any one should be restored to health again who has received the Communion when his life was despaired of, let him remain among those who com- municate in prayers only [7. e., as co-standers]. But in gen- eral, and in the case of any dying person whatsoever asking to receive the Eucharist, let the Bishop, after examination made, impart to him of the Oblation. CANON XIV. Concerning Catechumens who have lapsed, the Holy and Great Synod has decreed that, after they have passed three years only as hearers, they shall pray with the [other] Catechumens. CANON XV. On account of the great disturbance and discords that oc- cur, it is decreed that the custom prevailing in certain places, contrary to the [{Apostolical] Canon, must by all means be done away; so that neither Bishop, Presbyter, nor Deacon shall pass from City to City. And if any one, after this decree of the Holy and Great Synod, shall attempt any such thing, or continue in any such course, his proceedings shall be ut- terly void, and he shall be restored to the Church in which he was ordained Bishop or Presbyter. 130 CANONS KANQN Ie’, "Ooor pipokivdtvac, jujte Tov P6Bov Tov OEodt mpd dpOad- wav EyovTEc, Te TOV EKKAHOLaGTLKOY Kavova eiddTEC, avaYw- pjoova. THC iWiag &kKAnoiac, TpeaBUTEpot 7 OLdKoVOL, 1) GAWS év TO Kavove éSeraGouevot, ovTor ovdapa¢ extol dpetAovory eivat év étépa exkAnoias dAda nadoav avtoig avdyKyyv éEmdyeo- dar xpi, avaorpéderv eicg tag éavtTOv mapoikiacg’ 7, EeTpe- vovTac, akolvwrytouvg Eeivat mpoojKet. Ei d& kat ToApnoesé Tic thaptdoa Tov TO ETEpw dDLadépovta, Kal YVELpOTOVIoaL ty 7TH abtov éxkAnotia, wi ovyKkatatiOewévov Tov idiov éEmtoKO- Tov, ob avexOpnoev 6 év TO Kavove eLetagowevoc, akvpocg EoTW 7) KElpoTovia, KANON IZ’, Ered) ToAAOL €v Th Kavdve ekeracouevor, THY TAEovesiar, Kal TV aloypoKképdetav OimKovTec, EmeAadOovTO Tov OEiov ypap- yatog AéyovTog* TO apytplov avTtov ovK EdwKeV Ent TOKW* Kal OavelGovrec, ékaTooTtag amattovoiv* édikaiwoev i) ayia Kal peydan otvodoc, we et Tice etpeOein peta TOV bpov TovTOY TéKove AauBdvwv, ek pEeTayElpioewco, 1 GAAWC jETEPYOmEVOS TO Tpayya, 1 iulodiag admaiTOv, 7) OAwe ETEpov TL ETLVOwY aicypov Képdove Evexa, kabaipeOjoetat Tov KAfpov, Kat dA- LOzpLog Tov KaVvdvo¢g EoTal. KANGN TE; "HAdev eic tiv dylav Kai peydAnv odvodov, Ort Ev Ttot Témoic Kal TréAEoL, TOIG TpEecBuTépolg THY Ebyaplotiay oi dtd- Kovo. Owdacv* STEP ovTE 6 KaVaVY, OVTE H OVvVTDELA TaApE- OwKe, TodG FEovotav pi exovTac Tpoodéperv, Toig Tpooépovat , . ~ ~ r ~ cal ~ nN ? , ” ” Owbvat TO Gua TOV Xptorov. Kaketvo 0& éyvwpioOn, ore dn Tivic TOV Olakdvwv Kal mpd THY ETLOKOTWY Ti¢ EbyapLoTiacg azrovra. Tatra ovv rdvra mepinpeio0w, Kat tupevétwoarv ot didéxovot toi¢g Wiore pétpotc, eldérEc, Ort, Tod pév eEmLoKOTOV ¢ 7 +e a ~ / a 2 / / vummpéeTat eiol, THY OE TpEcBUTEpwY EAdTTOVG. AauBavéTwoaV O& Kata THY Tak Tv ebyaptotiay pETa TOvG TpEDBYTEPOLE, i] Tov émvoxoTov petadidé6vTo¢ avToic, 7) Tov TpEeoBvTépov" "AAAa und? KabijcOa tv péow TAV TpEcBvTépwv EEoTW TOIC OF NICAA. 131 CANON XVI. Neither Presbyters, nor Deacons, nor any others enrolled among the Clergy, who, not having the fear of Gop before their eyes, nor regarding the Canon of the Church, shall reck- lessly remove from their own Church, ought by any means to be received by another Church ; but every constraint should be applied to restore them to their own Parishes ; and, if they will not go, they must be suspended from their ministry. And if any [Bishop] shall dare surreptitiously. to take and in his own Church ordain a man belonging to another, without the consent of his own proper Bishop, from whom he has seceded, let the ordination be void. CANON XVII. Forasmuch as many enrolled among the Clergy, following covetousness and lust of gain, have forgotten the divine Scrip- ture, which says, “He gave not his money upon usury,” and in lending money ask the hundredth of the sum [as monthly interest], the Holy and Great Synod thinks it just that if after this decree any one be found to receive usury, whether he ac- complish it by secret transaction or otherwise, as by demand- ing the whole and one half [in kind], or by using any other contrivance whatever for filthy lucre’s sake, he shall be de- posed from the Clergy and [his name] erased from the list. CANON XVIII. It has come to the knowledge of the Holy and Great Synod that, in some Districts and Cities, the Deacons administer the Eucharist to the Presbyters, whereas neither Canon nor cus- tom permits that they who have no right to offer should ad- minister the Body of Cunisr to them that do offer [It]. And this also has been made known, that certain Deacons now receive the Eucharist even before their Bishops. Let all such practices be utterly done away ; and let the Deacons remain within their own bounds, knowing that they are the ministers of the Bishop and the inferiors of the Presbyters. Let them receive the Eucharist according to their order, after the Pres- byters ; and let either the Bishop or the Presbyter administer 132 CANONS dlakovoig* Tapa Kavova yap, Kat Tapa Tasty &sTi TO yevope- vov, Hi d& Tug py OsAor rreBapyelvy Kat peta TovTOVE ToOvC Upove, TETAvOOW Tij¢ dlaKoviac. KANQN Io’, Iepi tov MavdAcavisivtwy, sita mpoopvyévtwv Ti KaodALKy ékkAqoia, bpog exteOertar dvaBanTtigecbar aitov¢e eSatavrToc. Ki dé teveg TQ TapeAnAvOote ypovw, tv TO KANpwW &EQTAGOn- Gav, el WEVv apeTTOL Kal aveTiAnnToL paveiev, avaBanTLOOEr- ae G aay AR fs coh tae TEC, KELpoTOVvEicPwoav wuTd Tov Tio KAaDOALKHCG EKKAHOLAG éTI- oxorov, Hi d& 1 avdKplowg aveTitndEeiove abtovs evpioKot, Kabaipeiobar abtov¢ Tpoorjker, ‘Qoavtwo d& Kal TEP TAY dvakovico@v, Kai bAwco Tept TOV ev TO KATpwW* éeSeTaComé- ? ' r S . aaa ’ s > , ‘ vov 6 avtoo¢ tiT0¢ TapapvAayOjoeta. 'Epviobnuev dé T@Y OLakovicd@y TOV Ev Ta OYHpwaTe ELeTadDELloGy, ere finde xelpodeciav Tiva éxovowy, wote &&dnavtoc év Toi¢g Aaixoicg avtac eer acedbat. KANON, “K" "Eerdn tivécg slow tv TH Kuptaxy yoru KAlvovtTec, Kal év Taig THC TEVTHKOOTHG Huspatc: drép Tov Tdvta év Tdoy Tap- olkia boiwg Tapapvadrrecda, Eot@tacg %doke TH ayia ovvddw Tac evyag adrodlo6vat TH O&O. * Others read ev t» caver, on the Clergy List. There is no difference in the sense ; the reference being merely to the customary enrolment of the dvaxovecoai on the roll of persons specially recognized by the Church. OF NICAA. 135 to them. Furthermore, let not the Deacons sit among the Presbyters, for that is contrary to Canon and order. And if, after this decree, any one shall refuse to obey, let him be de- posed from the Diaconate. CANON XIX. Concerning the Paulianists who have returned to the Catholic Church, it has been decreed that they must by all means be rebaptized ; and if any of them who in past time have been numbered among their Clergy should be found blameless and without reproach, let them be rebaptized and ordained by the Bishop of the Catholic Church ; but if the examination should discover them to be unfit, they ought to be deposed. Likewise in the case of their Deaconesses, and generally in the case of those who have been enrolled among their Clergy, let the same form be observed. And we have considered the Deaconesses who have assumed the habit [of their order], but these, since they have no imposition of hands, are to be numbered cnly among the laity. CANON XX. Forasmuch as there are certain persons who kneel on the Lorv’s Day and in the days of Pentecost, therefore, to the intent that all things may be uniformly observed in every Parish, it seems good to the Holy Synod that, at these times, all should offer up their prayers standing. SECOND GENERAL COUNCIL. CONSTANTINOPLE. SYMBOLUM CONSTANTINOPOL. AD EXEMPLAR, QUOD EXTAT IN ACTIS CLA ECEDONENS Is CONC MAT Ilvotevouev sig Eva Oeov, Uarépa, tavtoxpdropa, moinriy ovpavod Kai yij¢, OpaTwY TE TaVTWY Kai aopaéTwr - Kai cic Eva Kiptov “Ijoodv Xpiotov, tov Yidv tot Cod tov fovoyevi, tov é« tov Tlatpo¢ yevrnfévta mpd TavTwY THY UWVOV, PHC Ek PwT0¢, OLov aAnOLVOY eK OE0d GANnMVOd, yevv7n- Gevta, ov monfévra, dwoovotov 7H Hatpi* dv ob ta TavTa éyé- veTo* TOV OL’ Tudc TOdG GVOPwWTOVE, Kai Ola THY TuETEpAY OwWr7- piav, KateAOovra ék TOV otpavOr, Kai capkwbevTa &x Ivetuatoc ‘Aytov kai Mapiacg tij¢ tap0évov, Kai, EvavOpwrjoavta, oravpo- dévta te iTrip jyuav ent Tovtiov MWAdtov, kal tabdvta, Kat Tagervta, Kal avaotavrTa Ti TpiTy Huepa KATA TAC ypaddc, Kai aveAovra Eig Tove otpavode, Kai KabeCopevov ex dev TOD Ilatpic, kal mdAwv épyouevoy pera dogic¢ Kpivae CovtTa¢g Kal vekpove * ov Tic Bactheiac obk otat TEAC * Kai eig 70 Hvetpa 70 “Aytov, 70 Kipiov, cat Td Cworotdy* TO &« TOU Ilatpoc éxropevduevoy * TO adv Tlatpt kai Tid ovp- TpOoKVVOvLEVOY Kal ovvdDsagouEVvoY * 70 AaAtoav dla TOV Tpo- OnTaV * Hic piav dyiav KaOoAniy Kai amootoduKny éeKKkAnoiar, ‘Opodoyotpmev Ev Bantioua Eig apeoty duapTidy* TpocdoKapev GvaoTaoLV VEKPOY, Kal Gwijv Tod MEAAOVTOC aldvoc. ~AuHy. THE CONSTANTINOPOLITAN CREED. AS CONTAINED IN THE ACTS OF THE COUNCIL On CHALOEDON, We believe in one Gop, the Farurr, Almighty, Maker of heaven and earth, and of all things visible and invisible : And in one Lorp Jesus Curist, the only begotten Son of Gop, Begotten of the Farner before all worlds, Light of Light, Very Gop of Very Gop, Begotten, not made, Being of one substance with the Farner ; By Whom all things were made ; Who, for us men and for our salvation, came down from heaven, And was incarnate of the Hoty Guosr and Mary the Virgin, And was made Man, And was crucified for us under Pontius Pilate, And suffered, And was buried, And the third day rose again according to the Scriptures, And ascended into heaven, And sitteth on the right hand of the Farner, And cometh again with glory to judge the quick and the dead ; Of Whose Kingdom there shall be no end: And in the Hoty Guosr, the Lorp, and the Giver of life ; Who proceedeth from the Farner; Who with the Faruer and the Son is together worshipped and glorified ; Who spake by the prophets : [And] in One, Holy, Catholic, and Apostolic Church. We acknowledge one Baptism for the remission of sins: We look for the resurrection of the dead, And the life of the world to come. Amen. CANONES CONCILII CONSTANTINOPOLITANI GENERALIS. A.D. 381. Epistola Synodi ad Theodosium Magnum. TS eboeBeotatw Bactkei Ocodociw 7 ayia cbvodog Tov éxiaKOTMV TOV éK dLagd= pov éxapyov cuvehbivtov bY Kuwvotavtivourésen > bs \ (ea ~ =e TS SS 3 (a , = Apxy7] bev uty Tov TpOg THY OV evoeBetav ypaujatoc, evyaptotia mpoc Tov Ody tov davadeifavta Tij¢ tweTépac evosBelac 77v Bactdeiav, imi Koy TOV exKAnoiwy eipnvy Kal zie bylobe miotews otyptyud" azodidvtes d& TO Oew tiv OhEelAopévgy evyaptotiav, avaykaiwc Kal Ta yeyevneva KaTa THY dylav ovvodov mpog T7v anv EbogBetav avadEepowev* kai Ort ovvedOovtec cic TV KwvotarvtivotvTodw Kata TO ypaua The onc evoeBelac, TpOtov piv avevewodueOa tiv Tpd¢ aAdn- Aove dudvoav*s erecta O% Kal ovytouove bpove e&ehwvyjacaper, THY Te TOV TaTépwv TioTLY TOV év Nikaia kvpwoavTec, Kal Tac Kar’ atic éexpvetcac aipsoere avabeuartioavtec, Lpdc¢ dé Tovtolc, Kal brép tie ebtakiag THY ekKAnowdy pPyTodv¢e Kavovac Gpicapev* dep anavrTa THOOE TuaY TH ypaypate breTdsaper, AchueOa toivev tijc once eboeBeliac ETtKUYpwOAVal THE ovVddOv TY Wibov ix’ @orep Tole Tic KAhdews Ypdupact Tijv exnAn- siav TETILUNKAC, OUTW Kal TOY OosdVTWY ExLodpuytoyc TO TEAOC. 'O d& Kipioc ornpiéy cov tijv BactdAeiav év eipjvy Kal dikao~ ovry, Kal TapaTéinpy yeveaic yevreOv, kal TpooOein TH errvyeto Kpatet Kal ric Bactreiac Tie étovpaviov tiv anébdAavoly, "Eppwpuévov oe, kai tv mdor Toi¢ Kadoic SOvanpérovta 6 OEd¢ yapioutto Ti oikovpévy, evyaic THY dyiwv, Tov wc aAnOas evaeBéaratov Kal Oeodrrgotatov Bactréa, CANONS OF CONSTANTINOPLE. Letter of the Synod to the Emperor Theodosius the Great. To the most religious Emperor Theodosius, the Holy Synod of Bishops assembled in Constantinople out of different Provinces We begin our letter to your Piety with thanks to Gop, who has established the empire of your Piety for the common peace of the Churches and for the support of the true Faith. And, having rendered due thanks unto Gop, it is meet that we should lay before your Piety the things which have been done in the Holy Synod. When, then, we had assembled in Constantinople, according to the letter of your Piety, we first of all renewed our unity of heart each with the other, and then we pronounced some concise definitions, ratifying the Faith of the Nicene Fathers, and anathematizing the heresies which have sprung up, contrary thereto. Besides these things, we also framed certain Canons for the better ordering of the Churches, all which we have subjoined to this our letter. Wherefore we beseech your Piety that the decree of the Synod may be ratified, and that, as you have honoured the Church by your letter of citation, so you should set, your seal to the conclusion of what has been decreed. May the Lorn esta- blish your empire in peace and righteousness, and prolong it from generation to generx‘ion; and may He add unto your earthly power fruition of the heavenly kingdom also. May Gop shew favour to the world, by granting to the prayers of his saints that you may prosper and be eminent in all good things as a most truly pious and religious Emperor. 140 CANONS Tade Gpioav of év Kwvotavtivovrdde xapitt OEod ovved- Obvrec ériokoTor ék dtadopwrv éenapylav Kata KAjoW Tov Eboe- Beotdtov BactAswc Oeodosiov, KANQN A’, M7) aOereioOar tHv TloTLy TOV Tlatépwv TOY Tplakodiwy dexaokT@, TOV év Neikaia tij¢ BiOvviac ovvea@ovtwv* aArdrc wévery exeivnv Kvpiav, Kal ava0epatioOijvat maoav alpecty * kat idtkdo THY TOV Ebvowavev, eitovy Evdogiavav, nai Thy Tov ‘Hpystapsiwv, eitrovy Ivevpatoudywv, Kal THY TOV LaBeAdavev, Kai tiv tTHv MapkeAdavGv, kai tiv TOV dw- TELVLAV@Y, Kal THY TOV ’ATOAALVapLOTOY. KANQN B’. =i e x , 2 a ~ ¢ , > 7 Tove izép dtoiknow éemioxdTovg Taic btEpoptorg éexkAnoiarc pn emeévar, pend? ovyxéetv tac éknAnotac’ dAAa Kata Tove Kavovac, Tov pév ’AdeSavdpelac éetioxonov, ta ev AlybT7w ovov oikovoueiv* Tove d& The ’Avatodic émtoxotovc, 77v "AvatoAny povnv dLotkeiv: vdatTouévav THV ev ToC Ka- s ~ S , nQ/ ~ 9 a ’ ok te voot Toig Kata Nixaav mpeoBeiwy TH ’AvTLOYéEwv eEKKAHSiA Kat Tove THe “Aotavic dvoiKkjcewo bmLoKOTOVC, Ta KATA TIV "Actavay jovov dloiketv? Kai todvg¢ tHe Uovtixjc, Ta Tij¢ Ilovtinije pévov: kai tobvc Tie Oparijc, Ta TiC OpaKtKijg jo- vov oikovoueiv, ‘“AkAnjrove d& é&mloKkdtovc brép AtoiKnaLy ur) b 7 SHEN, Wi A Lay ? 4 ? ‘) émiBaivery ert xelpotovia, i} Tlotv dAAatc oiKovojiiate EKKAN- olvaotiKkaic, PvdAattousvov d& Tod Tpoyeypaypéevov TEpl TOV OLoiknoEwy Kavovoc, evidniov wo Ta Kal? Exdorny érapyiar n Tie étapyiac obvodog OtoiKkjoet, Kata Ta tv Nekaia wpl- ouéva, Tac d& &v toic BapBaptkotc eOvect Tod Oeod EKKAn- aiac, oikovoueto0at yp Kata Tv Kpatioacav ovv7/Oelav THY TATEPWY, KANON I. ‘ , r 4 9 / »” BS Tov pév trot KwvotavtivovtdAeme etiokoTOV EXYELY TA ~ ~ ~ x ~ t 4 ’ , \ \ mpeoBeta Tie Tye peta TOV THC ‘Pano exioxoTov, dla TO eivaa avTnyv véav ‘Pony, OF CONSTANTINOPLE. 141 The Bishops out of different Provinces assembled by the grace of Gop in Constantinople, on the summons of the most religious Emperor Theodosius, have decreed as follows : CANON IL. The Faith of the Three Hundred and Highteen Fathers as- sembled at Niczea in Bithynia shall not be set aside, but shall stand fast. And every heresy shall be anathematized, parti- cularly that of the Eunomians or Eudoxians, and that of the Semi-Arians or Pneumatomachi, and that of the Sabellians, and that of the Marcellians, and that of the Photinians, and that of the Apollinarians. CANON IL. The Bishops of a Diocese are not to invade Churches lying outside of their bounds, nor bring confusion on the Churches; but let the Bishop of Alexandria, according to the Canons, alone administer the affairs of Kgypt ; and let the Bishops of the East manage the Kast only, saving the privileges of the Church in Antioch, which are mentioned in the Canons of Nicwa ; and let the Bishops of the Asian Diocese administer the Asian affairs only ; and the Pontic Bishops only Pontic matters ; and the Thracian Bishops only Thracian affairs. And let not Bishops go beyond their Diocese for ordination or any other ecclesiastical administration, unless they be in- vited. And the aforesaid Canon concerning Dioceses being observed, it is evident that the Synod of every Province will administer the affairs of that particular Province as was de- creed at Niczea. But the Churches of Gop in heathen nations must be governed according to the custom which has prevailed among their forefathers. CANON IIL The Bishop of Constantinople shall have the privilege of rank next after the Bishop of Rome ; because Constantinople is New Rome. 142 CANONS KANQN A’ Ilepi Magiuvov rob Kkvvkod, Kal tie Kat’ abtov atatiac THE év KwvoravtivovTéAe yevouévnc, WoTe pte Tov Md ov étioxonov 4 yevéoOa, 7 Eival, pte Tod¢e Tap’ advTov xElpotovnbévtac, év olwdAmoTe Babua KAnpov' mavTwv Kal tov mept abtov, Kal TOv tap’ advtod yevowévwy dKvpw- Oév7wr. KANQN E’, Ilepi tov tomov Tov duTiKdy, Kai Todg¢ év ’Avtioyeia aTedecaueOa, tTovg¢ piav Guwodoyotvrac Ilatpo¢ Kat Yiov kal ‘Ayiov Ilvetuatog OeoTnTa, KEAN GIN sc7- "Ered §=ToAAcL §=Ttiy ékKAnotaottKiY evdtatiav ovyyeiv Kat avatpémev PovdAduevor, ptAéxOpwco Kal ovKodaytiKdc¢ aitiag Tlvag KaTa THY oikOvONODYTWY TaG kKKAnoiacg dp- foddswv = émioKdT@v ovuTAdooovay, ovdév etepov 7% vpat- vey Tac TOV Lepéwy UTOAHWelc, Kal Tapayac TOV eipnvev- 6vTwv Aadv KatacKkevdsery emuyeipovvTec> Ttotvrov Evexev mpece TH ayia ovvddw Tév év KwvortarvtivovtdAe cvv- OpaovtTwy éttoxdTwv, jun) avEeseTdoTwo TpociecMat Tove KaT- nyOpove, pndé maow enitpétervy tag KaTnyoptac TroteioBat KaTa TOV oikovowovyTMY Tac EKKAnoiac, pNnds fuY wdvTac oy s > ‘9 , , ’ , cy , ~ 9 amoKAciew, "AA et pév Tic oixeiav Tivad péuryev, Todt éoriv, ldwwrikny, eénaydyo. 7TH émtoKdT@, Wo TAEOVEKTI- etc, 7) dAdo te Tapa Td Oikatov Tap’ avbtod TETOVOGC, emt TOv ToLovTwv KaTHyopLav fur eSeTdsecBat, pte Tpda- wTov TOV KaTHyOpov, pnTE THY OpnoKetav. Xp} yap ravi TpéT™W, TOTE ovveldd¢ Tov émtoKOTOV EAE‘OEpOY eEival, Kat =A 10. ~ 6 Ré ; ca LG ” i: 6 4 a rs) 7 Tov adiceiobar Aéyovta, otag av y OpnoKeiac, TOV StKkaiwv Tuy ave Ei d& éxxaAnovaoriekov ein TO émibepdmevor TUYXKGVELY, L O€ EKKAN 7 Gh TLPEpO! bykAnua TH émuoKkdTm, TOTE OoKipdceoOat ypi) THY KaTNyo- pouvrTwy Ta Tpdcwra* tva Tp@Tov pmév aipetinoic ph esp KaTnyopiag Kata TOV dpfoddswv eémiokdtwy brip exKdAn- OLMOTLK@Y Tpayyatwy TroletcAat. Aipetixodve dé Aé€youer, Tovg TE TmMdaAat Tio exxAnoiag atoKnpvyBévtac, Kat Tod¢ weta TavtTa bd hudy avabeuaTio0évtacs mpdc¢ dé TovTaLC, OF CONSTANTINOPLE. 143 CANON IV. Concerning Maximus the Cynic and the disorder which has existed in Constantinople on his account, it is decreed that Maximus is not now and never was a Bishop ; that those who have been ordained by him are in no rank whatever of the Clergy ; and all which has been done by him, or concern- ing him, has been declared to be of no effect. CANON V. In regard to the book cf the Western [ Bishops], we receive those in Antioch also who confess the one Deity of Faruesr, Son, and Hoty Guosr. CANON VI. Forasmuch as many persons, wishing to confuse and over- turn the wholesome order of the Church, do contentiously and slanderously fabricate charges against the orthodox Bishops who have the administration of the Churches, intending nothing else than to stain the reputation of the Priests and raise up disturbances amongst the peaceful laity ; therefore it seemed right to the Holy Synod of Bishops assembled to- gether in Constantinople, not to admit accusers without ex- amination; and neither to allow all persons whatsoever to bring accusations against the rulers of the Church, nor, on the other hand, to exclude all. If then, any one shall bring a private complaint against the Bishop, that is, one relating to his own affairs, as, for example, that he has been defrauded, or other- wise unjustly treated by him, in such accusations no examina- tion shall be made, either of the person or of the religion of the accuser ; for it is by all means necessary that the con- science of the Bishop should be free, and that he who says he has been wronged should meet with righteous judgment, of whatever faith he be. But if the charge alleged against the Bishop be that of some ecclesiastical offence, then it is neces- sary to regard the persons of the prosecutors ; that, in the first place, heretics may not be suffered to bring accusations touching Church affairs against orthodox Bishops. And by heretics we mean both those who were aforetime cast out and those whom we ourselves have since anathematized, and also 144 CANONS kat Tote THY TloTLYy pév Tiv byt TpooToLovuévove duodo= yelv, atooxyicavracg dé, Kal avrTlovydyovta¢g Toi¢c KavoviKotc quay entoxonote, "Emetta 0&, Kai et tiveg rev and THC éxkAnoiag émt aitlai¢ Tlol Tpokateyvwouévor elev Kal amTo- BeBAnuévor, 1 akowwavyto, eite and KAfpov, elite amd Aaixod tdypatoc, pund& tobTog éekeivat Katnyopeiv émtoKd- mov, mplv dv 70 oikeiov éyxAnua mpdtepov arodvowrTat. ‘Opoiwe d& Kat rove bd Katnyopiay mporaBotcav dyTac, ju) «mpdrepov sivae dextode eig émioxéTmov. KaTnyopiav, Etépwv KANpLKOV, Tply av AOdove ~avtode TOV énayOévTwV abtoig anodeizwow e&yKkAnudzwv. Ei pév toe tivi¢g pute alpetikol, pute aKolvevyToe elev, pute KatEyvwonévol, 7) TpokaTnyopnuévoe ert Tlot TAnumedAjuac, A€yourv O& Eve TIVa eEXKAHOLAOTIKIY KaTa TOU EnLOKOTOV KaTHyOpiav, Tov- Toug Kedever 1) ayia obvodoc, mpw@Tov pév emt THY THE évapyiac mdvtwv éniokdtwv evioracOa tag Katnyopiac, Kal tm’ abtéyv édéyyerv Ta bykaAnwata tov év aitiate ttolv émioxdTov* ef O& ovuBain advvatijoat Tove EeTapylwrac Tpd¢ O6pOworv TOV Enidepoévwvy LyKAnudTwv TH éTtoKdTW, TOTE avrov¢ Tpoclévat peigovt ovvddw@, THY TIE OLolKhoEwC EkEl- vnc eémloxoTwr, dep Tig aitiag tTavTNHG OoVvyKadoupévwr: Kat py mpdtepov éviotacOat tiv Katnyopiav, mpiv 7H éey- ypdo~wg avtod¢ tov toov adtotc éritiyjoacBar Kivdv- vov, eimep ev TH TOV Tpayydtwy ékeTdoeL ovKOpay- Tovvre¢ TOV KaTHyopotmevoyv EtioKoTOV EAeyxOelev, Hi dé Tle KaTappovijoag TOV Kava Ta TpodnAwhévta dedoyuérvwr, ToAujoetev 7) BaolAtkacg EevoyA€eiv akoac, 7) KooWKaY apyov- Twv diKaoTHpLa, 7) olkovuEviKiY ovvodoy TapdooELY, TavTac atysdsac Ttode THC dLolKfioEwo ETtOKOTOVC, TOY ToOLOVTOV TO Tapdnav sic Katnyopiav ju) eivat OextOv, we KabvBpi- cavta tovc Kkavévac, Kal THY EkKANoLaoTLKHY AvENVdpEvov evtaciav, KANON 2, Tove mposriOeuévove 7H dpOodokia, Kai tH pepidt THY owcvoutvov, amd alpetindv, deyoueOa Kata tiv vTOoTETAy- pévny akodoviiav Kai ovviOriav. "Apecavodc pév, kat Ma- Kedoviavovc, kal LaBBatiavovc, Kat Navatiavovs, Tove Aé- yovrag éavtods Kadapod¢s kai ’Aptotepodc, Kat tovg Teooa- OF CONSTANTINOPLE. 145 those professing to hold the true faith who have separated from our canonical Bishops, and set up conventicles in opposi- tion [to them]. Moreover, if there be any who have been condemned for faults and cast out of the Church, or excom- municated, whether from the Clergy or the laity, neither shall it be lawful for these to bring an accusation against the Bishop, until they have cleared away the charge against themselves. In like manner, persons who are under previous accusations are not to be permitted to bring charges against a Bishop or any other Clergyman, until they shall have proved their own innocence of the accusation brought against them. But if any, being neither heretics, nor excommunicate, nor con- demned, nor under previous accusation for alleged faults, should declare that they have any ecclesiastical charge against a Bishop, the Holy Synod bids them first to lay their charges before all the Bishops of the Province, and before them to prove the accusations, whatsoever they may be, which they have brought against the Bishop. And if it should come to pass that the Provincials should be unable rightly to settle the charges brought against the Bishop, then the parties must be- take themseives to a greater Synod of the Bishops of that Diocese called together for this purpose ; and they shall not produce their allegations before they have proposed an equal penalty to be exacted from themselves, if, in the course of the examination, they shall be proved to have siandered the ac- cused Bishop. And if any cne, despising what has been de- creed concerning these things, shall presume to annoy the ears of the Emperor, or the courts of temporal judges, or, dishonouring all the Bishops of his Province, shall dare to trouble an Gicumenical Synod, such a one shall by no means be admitted as an accuser; forasmuch as he has cast con- tempt upon the Canons, and brought reproach upon the order of the Church. CANON VII. Those of the heretics who come over to orthodoxy, and the part of them that are saved, we receive according to the following customary order: Arians, and Macedonians, and Sabbatians, and Novatians, who call themselves Cathari or Aristeri, and Quarto-decimans or Tetradites, and Apolina- 146 CANONS peokaloekatitac, eitovy Tetpaditac, Kat *AtoAALvapiorac, deyoueOa diddvTag ALBEAAOVC, Kal advabeuaticovtag mTdoav aipeov, py dpovovoav, wo dpovet 4 ayia Tov OEod KeaOo- Akh) Kal amooToAtKi ekKAnoia* Kal oppaytcouévove, ijrot xplowévove, TPOTOV TH ayiw pipwW, TO TE pETwWTOY, Kal TOdC dpOaApovtc, kal tac pivacg Kai 70 ovoma, Kal Ta WTa* Kal odpayigovreg avtovc, Aéyowev* Lppayic dwpeéc Ilvedparoc ‘Ayiov. Etvoutavodg pévtot tov¢ eig piav Katddvowv Bar- tiGoévove, Kat Movraviotag tob¢ évtavOa Aeyouévovg Ppv- yac, Kat LaBedAravovc, tod¢ vioratopiav diddoKovtac, Kal étepd tTiva yadeTa TolovvTac, Kai Tag dAAacg Tdoag aipe- cee: (emer) TOAAOL iow évTavOa, padsoTa ol and TiC Tadatev yopac bpucpevor)* mdvtac tovg an’ avtT@v Gédov- tac mpootibecba 7H dpO0d0kia, wo “EAAnvac dexouebas Kat THY TpoTnv Tuepav Trovovpev adrov¢e Xpioteavovc, tiv dé devrépav Katyxyoupévoves elta tH Tpizy esopKigowev avtove, peta TOD gu@voay Tpitoy eic TO TpdowTOV, Kal Eig TA WTA, Kal obtw KaTHYovuEY aVTOVG, Kal ToLOdWEY Ypovicery Eig THY EKKAN- Giav, Kai Gkpodo0a THY ypapay, Kat TOTE avTOdS BanTicomer. OF CONSTANTINOPLE. 147 rians, we receive, upon their giving a written renunciation and anathematizing every heresy which is not likeminded with the Holy, Catholic, and Apostolic Church of Gop. Thereupon, they are first sealed or anointed with the holy oil upon the forehead, the eyes, the nostrils, the mouth, and the ears ; and when we seal them, we say, “The Seal of the gift of the Hoty Guosr.” Eunomians, who are baptized with only one immersion, and Montanists, who are here called Phrygians, and Sabellians, who teach the identity of Faruxr and Son, and do sundry other mischievous things, and [the partisans of] all other heresies—for there are many such here, particularly among those who come from the country of the Galatians :— all these, when they desire to come over to orthodoxy, we receive as heathen. The first day we make them Christians ; the second, Catechumens ; on the third, we exorcise them by blowing thrice in their face and ears ; and then we instruct them and oblige them to spend some time in the Church, and to hear the Scriptures ; and then we baptize them. Tega ARSED s aN oF arbnined Bee ‘orate % way Fes a ie The We altos f meee Ry hla Bet AONE US GH Reais if Wigs | May oi Pt: duirs ain Bene ae BSc LAREN RS i ae gua ee Bia Be Bev a cate i ey et), mt site arenas s i, a hip MEA a ee AP erga ry dd perry elise ie Cea ¥ se if fete, meee Po ea ie RSS AOR) tae aya mds Mgt Oy, A A MP Oka Baie ay a he , iP AIG hea ele bain Pie ty UFO a, ray ihe Cg irene eet TOUR RWS. Ob05 i iar yeti is tires Gi RAS . e shih ae) ‘hel ar oi ad ed Nae ce if (ie UT idee fired THUR DV GENERAL. COUNCEYD Ee bts ES. bb, Si C AN ON Eas CONCILIT EPHESINI GENERALIS. A.D. 431. Epistola Synodica. ‘H dyéa Kal oixovpertKa ovvodoc 7 év “Edéow ovyxpotnbeioa ék Oeoriopmatoc TOV evoeBeoTdTwY BaotAéwv (Impp. Theodosii et Valentiniani), toi¢ Ka0’ Exdozny énapxiay Te Kai TOALY, ELOKO- TOLC, TpEGBUTEpOLC, DLtakOvoltc, Kal TavTl TO Aa. SvvayOévtwov yudv Kata TO evoeBEc ypdupa ev 7H ’Edeciwv untporoael, aréotynody tive &F av, dvTeg Tov apLOwoy TpLd- KovTa juKp@ Tpdc, ESapyov Tij¢ éavToV aTootaciag éaynKoTEC tov tie “Avtioyéwv éxioxotov “lwdvenv: ov Kal Ta dvouaTa gore tavta. Tp@to¢g ovto¢ “lwdvyn¢g 0 ’AvTioyelag Tij¢ Lupiac, Kat “Iwdvync Aapaokod, ’AAgSavdpoc ’ATapeiac, ’AAéEavdpog ‘TeparéAewc, ‘Ipéptog Nexowndeiac, PpitrAde "Hpaxdsiac, ‘BAAd- dtoc Tapsov, Magtmives ’AvacdpBov, Oeddwpog MapkravovT6Aewe, Ilétpoc Tpaiavovrésewc, IabAog "Euionc, IoAvypéviec ‘Hpa- KAelwt@v TOAEwC, ELOtprog Tvdvwy, Medétio¢ Neokatoapelac, Oeodwpytoc Kipov, ’Anpiyytoc Kadaynddvoc, Makdpiog Aaodi- Keiac THC peydAnc, Zeove "KoBovvto¢, Ladovorvog KwpvKov Kudcktac, ‘Hotyto¢ KaoraBdance Kidkiac, Ovadevtivog MovtdAo- BAdknc, Evotrdb.o¢ Uapvacod, Pidittmog Oeodocravav, Aavina re, kai Aektavoc, "lovdravécg Te, Kal Kvptadog, OAvuTLb¢ Te, Kat Avoyévnc, Uoarde, Oeopdvncg PrAadeAgetac, Tpaiavog Avyotorne, Aiphdog Eipnvovrésewc, Movoatoc "Apddov, ‘EAAdOiog Urode- waidoc* of Twvec Tie ExKAnovasteKHS KoLvMviac W|dELLaY EVOVTEC dderav Oc bE abbevtiac iepatiKic, ei¢ TO Sbvacbai TLvac EK Tav- rnc BAdnrev 7} Opereiv, dua TO Kat Tivag Ev adrzoic elvat Kaby- pnuévouc, Tpd TavTwv piv 7a Neotopiov kat ta KedAgotiov opo- vrata eripepopevoe oahéotata aTrede(xOnaar, &x Tov un EAECBaL peQ’ judy Neotopiov Kkataynpioacbat * ove TLvac OéypaTte KOLVa 4) dyia ovvodoc maong wiv éexkAnovaaTiKTC KoLVwviac aAdorpiovg éroinoe, Taoav O& abtav évépyevay tepatiKnyy Tepetre, Ov 7¢ 7)00- vavro BAaTTEW i) wHEAEIY TLVAG, CANONS OF EPHESUS. Encyclical Letter of the Synod. The Holy and Cicumenical Synod, gathered together in Ephesus by the decree of our most religious Emperors, to the Bishops, Presbyters, Deacons, and all the people in every Province and City : When we had assembled, according to the religious decree [of the Emperors], in the Metropolis of Ephesus, certain per- sons, a little more than thirty in number, withdrew from amonest us, having for the leader of their schism John, Bishop of Antioch. Their names are as follows: first, the said John of Antioch in Syria, John of Damascus, Alexander of Apamea, Alexander of Hierapolis, Himerius of Nicomedia, Fritilas of Heraclea, Helladius of Tarsus, Maximin of Anazarbus, Theo- dore of Marcianopolis, Peter of Trajanopolis, Paul of Emissa, Polychronius of Heracleopolis, Kuthyrius of Tyana, Melctius of Neoczsarea, Theodoret of Cyrus, Apringius of Chalcedon, Macarius of Laodicea Magna, Zosys of Esbus, Sallust of Corycus in Cilicia, Hesychius of Castabala in Cilicia, Valentine of Mutloblaca, Eustathius of Parnassus, Philip of Theodosia, and Daniel, and Dexianus, and Julian, and Cyril, and Olym- pius, and Diogenes, Polius, Theophanes of Philadelphia, Trajan of Augusta, Aurelius of Irenopolis, Myszeus of Aradus, Helladius of Ptolemais. These men, having no privilege of ecclesiastical communion on the ground of a priestly author- ity, by which they could injure or benefit any persons ; since some of them had already been deposed; and since, from their refusing to join in our decree against Nestorius, it was manifestly evident to all men that they were all promot- ing the opinions of Nestorius and Celestius ; the Holy Synod, by one common decree, deposed them from all ecclesiastical communion, and deprived them of all their priestly power by which they might injure or profit any persons. 152 CANONS KANQN A’, . ON: we, ~ . \ 3 s ~ (Lae / Erewdy expijy Kai tovc atodenpOEvtag Tij¢ aylac ovvodov, ‘ 4 ‘ v2 nt ¢ a b] , nv > kai welvavtag KaTad YXwpav 7 TOALY, did TLva aitiav, 7) éK- * ‘ ” x‘ ‘ > ~ ~~ b] ° ~ KANTLAOTLKY, 7] OWMATLKTV, [Ll] Gyvojoat ta év av7T TeTUTW- péva, yvopigoued 7H vueTepa ayloTyTt Kal ayany, OTL TEP, ” ns ~ ; , > ee ~ Bay ~ el TLE TpOTOAiTHAC Tig éTapxYiac, anooTaTHoaG Ti¢ dytac Kai oikouperiKij¢g ovvodov, mpooeleTo TH Tij¢ aTooTaclacg avvEdpiw, i] eta TOvTO TpooTEOEin, 7) Ta Kedeotiov éppovnoer, ij ppo- VHOEL, OVTOC KaTa TOV THC ketapyiac émoKdTwWY dvaTpaT- Teodai TL ovdaues dvvaTal, TaonG éEkKANHoLaOTLKiGC KOLVwWviac “J me, ” e ‘ ~ 4 +) 4 ‘ ’ 4 evtev0ev dn b70 THC ovvddov EKBEBAnuEVvoc, Kai avEvépynTog trapywv, "AAAd Kai abtoig Ttoic tic éemapyiacg éntoxdratc, kal ToIg TEplE ntpoToAitac, Tog Ta TiC bpAo0do0sia¢g dpovor- o.v, bToKEloeTa Bic TO TaYTH Kai TOv BaOuod Tic enLoKOTIIC EKBANORVa. KANON B’, Ei 0& tivec tmrapyiOtat étioxoror aTedeipOnoav Ttij¢ dytac ovv0dov, Kal Ti atooTacia TpocEeTeOnsay, i) TpooTeOijvat TeE- pabeiev, 7) Kat broypadwavtec 7H Neortopiov Kabaipéoer, éra- Avdpounoav mpdc TO Ti aTOoTAasiac ovvédpLov* TOVTOVE TAaYTN Kata TO Odgav TH dyia ovvddw dAdAotpiovg Eivat THC tepwov- vnc, Kal Tov BaOwovd exminrecy. KANQN I”, Ei dé tiveg [kat] Tév ev Exdory TO6AEL, 7) YOpA KANpLKDY, ind Neotopiov, kai tOv odv ait OVTWY, TIG LEepwovvng EKw= ACOnoav Sta TO 6pOd¢ gpovetv, EdiKatwoapev Kai TOvTOVE TOV idvov admoAaBeiv BaOuov, Koide d2 rove tH 6p00d0e@ Kat OiKOVILEVLK) =GVVOOW oVvudpovOdYTaG KANpLKOvC, KEAEvOMEV TOIC anooraThsaolv, 7) dprorapévore EmLoKoTroLc, MINS Awe bTroKELGOaL, Kata jndeva TpoToV. KANQN A’, Ei 0 tivec amootatyoaev TOV KANpLKOY, Kai TOAUHoaLEY jj Kaz’ idiav 7) Snuwooia, ta Neoropiov, 7) Ta KeAeotiov dpovn- oa, Kai TovTove Elva KaOypnyévovc, bnO Tig ayiag avvodov OedLKaiWT at, OF EPHESUS. 153 CANON I. Whereas it is needful that they who were detained from the Holy Synod and remained in their own district or City, for any reason, ecclesiastical or personal, should not be igno- rant of the matters which were therein decreed; we, therefore, notify your holiness and love that, if any Metropolitan of a Province, forsaking the Holy and Cicumenical Synod,: has joined the assembly of the schismatics, or shall join the same hereafter ; or, if he has adopted, or shall hereafter adopt, the doctrines of Celestius, he has no power im any way to do any- thing in opposition to the Bishops of the Province, since he is already deprived by the Holy Synod, and cast out of all eccle- siastical communion ; but he shall himself be subject in all things to the Bishops of the Province and neighbouring or- thodox Metropolitans, and shall be degraded from his epis- copal rank. CANON II. If any provincial Bishops have forsaken the Holy Synod and joined, or attempted to join, the schism; or if, after sub- scribing the deposition of Nestorius, they have backslidden into the schismatical assembly ; these men, according to the decree of the Holy Synod, are to be deposed from the Priest- hood and degraded from their rank. CANON III. If any of the Clergy in any district or City have been in- hibited by Nestorius or his followers from the exercise of the Priesthood, on account of orthodoxy, we have declared it just that these should be restored to their proper rank. And we utterly forbid all the Clergy who adhere to the Orthodox and Cicumenical Synod in any way to submit to the Bishops who have separated or shall hereafter separate. CANON IV. If any of the Clergy should fall away, and publicly or privately presume to maintain the doctrines of Nestorius or Celestius, it is declared just by the Holy Synod that these also should be deposed. 154 CANONS KANON E’, “Ooo d& emi atotolg mpageor KatEKpiOnoav Und Tig dyia¢g ovrddov, 7) UTO TOV OiKELWY ETLOKETWY, Kal TOVTOLG AKAVOVIOTWS, KaTa THY &v Gracy adLapopiay avtov, 6 Neoroptoc, Kai of Ta abrod dpovotvrec, arodotvat émeipabnoay, 7) TElpabetev KoLvw= 4 “ > 3 7 7 ‘ 4 7} ‘ Fr ~ viar, 7) BaOov, avomedrTove elvat, Kat pEvelY OVdEY TTTOV KADT~ prievove édtKatwoaper, KANN”, ‘Opoiwe J& Kai et Tevec BovAnOeiev, Ta Trepi ExdoTOV TETPaypLéva év Th ayia ovvedw, TH év "Edéow, oiwmdytote TpoOT@ Tapa- cahevelv, i] Gyia ovvodocg wploev, si piev EmrioKOTOL Elev, 7) KAnptKol, TOU Ooikeiov TavTEAWG anoTinTELy Babuov* ei dé Aaixol, GKOLVwVITOVE UTapXELY, Avahaiia tij¢ adtij¢ dyiag ovvédov, éxpwrnbeioa eta TO avayvwobivat THY eGo TOV TplLakoolwY OéKa Kal OKTA AYiwV Kal pakapiwov Hatépwv, tov év Nikaia, Kat 70 dvoceBic obp- Bodov 76 br6 Geodwpov tov Moroveotiag TAadbeY, Kat b7O Xapiciov mpeoBvutépov PidadeAdiacg endobév TH avTq Kata ’Ede- gov ayia ovv0dw. KANON Z’, Tovtwv dvayvwolévtwy, Gptoev 4 ayia ovvodoc, éré- pav riot pndevi ekeivat mpodépev, ijyovv ovyypapev 7 ovvTiéva, Tapa tiv optobeicay Tapa THY adyiwy Tlaté- wv, Tov tv TH Nixaéwv ovvaybévtwy Té6Aa, ovv ‘Ayiw p 7 i] 7 2) + Ilvevpare. Todr d& toAudvtac i) ovv7iévat miotiy Erépav, tyouv Tpo- 2 Koicerv, 1) Tpopéepetv Toig OéAovaty éErtoT pepe Eig ETLyVWOLY THC 24 , N 9% FTN Ae reac o ~ ” Boo ie $7 adngetiac, 7) && “EAAnviopod, 7) && “lovdatiopod, iyovv &5 aipeoews et ~ , > s , \ > . 34 olacdnnorowy* TovTouc, ei piv elev EtioKoToL 7) KAnpLKOL, GAAoO- s . ~ ~ =~ > tplove eivat Tove EntoKkoToue THe émtoKoTijc, Kal TOVE KANpLKOUE TOD KAnjpov* ei O& Aaikoi elev, dvabeuaTicedBat, Kara tov toov 62 tponov, ei dwpabeiév Tivec, cite EmioKxorrot, yy 5 s ” - i] ~ ” , a ‘ 7 elte kKAnpteol, ite Aaikol, 7) dpovovvtec, 7) OidaoKovTEG Ta EV Th mpokouoOeion &KxOéoe Tapa Xapioiov tov mpeoBuTéEpov, OF EPHESUS. 155 CANON V. If any have been condemned for evil practices by the Holy Synod, or by their own Bishops ; and if, with his usual arrogance, Nestorius (or his followers) has attempted, or shall hereafter attempt, uncanonically to restore such per- sons to communion and to their former rank, we have de- clared that they shall not be profited thereby, but shall re- main deposed nevertheless. ~~ CANON VI. Likewise, if any should in any way attempt to set aside the orders in each case made by the Holy Synod at Ephesus, the Holy Synod decrees that, if they be Bishops or Clergymen, they shall absolutely forfeit their rank ; and, if laymen, that they shall be excommunicated. The Decree of the same Holy Synod, pronounced after hearing the Exposition [of the Faith] by the Three Hundred and Eighteen holy and blessed Fathers in the city of Nicea, and the impious Formula composed by Theodore of Mopsuestia, and given to the same Holy Synod at Ephesus by the Pres- byter Charisius, of Philadelphia : CANON VIL. These things having been read, the Holy Synod decrees that it is unlawful for any man to bring forward, or to write, or to compose a different Faith than that established by the holy and blessed Fathers assembled, with the Hoty Guost, in Nicza. But those who shall dare to compose a different Faith, or to produce or offer [any other] to persons desiring to turn to the acknowledgment of the truth, whether from Heathenism or from Judaism, or from any heresy whatsoever, shall be de- posed, if they be Bishops or Clergymen; Bishops from the Episcopate and Clereymen from the Clergy ; and if they be laymen, they shall be anathematized. And in like manner, if any, whether Bishops, Clergymen, or laymen, should be discovered to hold or teach the doctrines contained in the Exposition produced by the Presbyter Chari- 156 CANONS mepl TiC evavOpwrijcews Tov povoyevoi¢ Yiot rod Oe0b, qyovvy Ta juwapad Kai OLteotpaueva tod Neoropiov déypara, a@ Kal vroTEeTaKTaL, bTOKEioOWoay TH aTOopdoe Tij¢ dyiac Tav- THC Kat oikovmEriKijc ovvodov' ote OnAovért, TOV piv éenti- oxoTov, amadrdotpiovabat Tij¢ énmtoKoTiic, Kal eivat KaOnpn- pévov* Tov O& KANpLKOY, Omoiwo exTimtEeLy Tov KAipov: ei 3 - 7s ” ir 3 , db: Aaikog TLC ein, Kal ovTOG avabeuaTiCéoOw, KaOd TpoEipnTat. Lijpoc tij¢ avtic ayiacg ovvddov, éxpwvnPetoa Ex mpoceded- Va 35 ht % Syria ” b r2 9 Ni éuBeBnkac, eta &k TOAATC dyav anpaypoovync aTeELpHKoC THY avtioracy TOV éerevnveypévorv abT@ dpovTidwr, Kal- mep Olakpovecbat Tag Tapa THv éetidvowévwv av7@ dvogn- uiacg Ovvduevoc, Tapatioewc, ovK towev brw@C, TpocEKduLoE BiBiiov. "Eder yap, oo danas éyneyetptopévov lepatenyy dpovrida, ctab7y¢ HyeoOat pez’ etpwotiag mvevjatiKic, Kat , , , ~ , s t ~ ‘ ” oiov avranodtec0at toic évoic, Kat idpdra Tov Enptobor eOedovtt tbroueivar. "Eredyn d& datas odAty@pwo éxovTa 4 - t ‘ ~ nN I~ J ‘A ~ nmapédevtev éavtov, TovTo Tabav && aTpaypoovvyncg paddor, Eel’ & iin K OF THE HOLY AND GQ2CUMENICAL THIRD COUNCIL TO THE ILLUSTRIOUS COUNCIL IN PAMPHYLIA RESPECTING EU- STATHIUS WHO HAD BEEN THEIR METROPOLITAN. Forasmuch as the divinely inspired Scripture says, “Do all things with advice,” it is especially their duty who have had the priestly ministry allotted to them to examine with all diligence whatever matters are to be transacted. Tor to those who will so spend their lives, it comes to pass both that they are established in [the enjoyment of] an honest hope con- cerning what belongs to them, and that they are borne along, as by a favouring breeze, in things that they desire: so that, in truth, the saymg [of the Scripture] has much reason [to commend it]. But there are times when bitter and intoler- able grief swoops down upon the mind, and has the effect of cruelly beclouding it, so as to carry it away from the pursuit of what is needful, and persuade it to consider that to be of service which is in its [very] nature mischievous. Something of this kind we have seen endured by that most excellent and most religious Bishop Eustathius. For it is in evidence that he has been ordained canonically ; but having been much disturbed, as he declares, by certain parties, and having entered upon circumstances he had not foreseen, therefore, though fully able to repel the slanders of his persecutors, he nevertheless, through an extraordinary inexperience of affairs, declined to battle with the difficulties which beset him, and in some way that we know not set forth an act of resignation. Yet it behoved him, when he had been once entrusted with the priestly care, to cling to it with spiritual energy, and, as it were, to strip himself to strive against the troubles and gladly to endure the sweat for which he had bargained. But inasmuch as he proved himself to be deficient in prac- tical capacity, having met with this misfortune rather from 162 EPISTLE TO THE COUNCIL b) 3} Okvov Kal pabvutac, Keyeipotdvnkey avaykaiwg 1 bpe- TEpa OeooéBera tov evAaBéotatov Kat OeooeBéEctatov ddéEA- gov judy Kat ovverioxotov OEeddwpov, dpovtiobvta TH¢ ek- kKAnoiac: ob yap 7v aKddAovOov yxnpevelv avTiv, Kal ému- ordrov diya dtatedsiv tod Lwripoc 7a Totwya, ’EKred7) dé mpooiAbe KAaiwv, ob TEpt Tic TOAEwc, obdE TIC Ek- KAnsiag pidovernOv 7H juvnuoverdévte OeooeBeoratw éemt- oxoTmw Oc0d@pw, keaitOv dé Téwo THY Tov ETLOKdTOU Ty, Kal KAfjow, GuvnAyioapev dravteg TH TpEoBvTY, kal Kotvov eivat Aoytoduevor TO attov dDdKkpvov, éomedv- douev pabciv, ei Ka0aipeowy evvouov bromenévnkevy 6 pvqto- vevOelc, 9 your émi trot TOY adronwy EAndeyeTar Tapa TWwv KatadAvapyodvrwy abtov tig broAjpewc. Kal on éudOouev TenpaxyOar piv tovovtov ovdév, yevéoOar dé pad- Rov 7@ pvnwovevOévte avtt e&yKkAjuatog THY Tapaityowy. "ONev obd& TH tuetépa OcooeBeia eueuaueOa, xerpotov7- odon dsdvtwo sig tov abtod TOTOv TOY jeYNovErOErT ebiaBéoratov érickotov Oeddwpov. "Ered b& tH ampay- poctvy tov avdpi¢ ov odddpa giAoverceivy aKkdAovOov, eEdet dé paAdov edeijoar tmpeoBitnv, &w Kal TOAEwo Tio évey- Kovonc avTov, Kal mTatp~wv évdiartnudtwv év paKpoic obtw yeyovora xpdvowc, edixatdoanev, Kal wpicapev, dixa ‘ ndone dvrtdoyiac, tyerv abtbv 76 TE Tig EntoKor7¢g dvopa, kal Thy Ty, Kal THY KoLwwriar, OtTwW pév TOL, WoTE uh xeiporovety adtov, pre py exkAnotav KatadaBovTa iepoupyeiv t& idiac avOevtiacs add’ 1} apa ovpTapaday- Bavéouevov, eltovy énetperdusvov, ei Tbyol, Tapa ddeA- god, Kal ovverioKoTov, Kata Oidbecwv, Kal adydnny Ti év Xpis7e. Ei dé te Bovdaetonobe ypnotdtepoy én’ adiT@ i) viv, } ele TO peta TadTa, dpéoer Kal TOTO TY ayia ovv00w, Ch Paw Pay TEA: 163 inexperience than from eswardice and sloth, your holiness has of necessity ordained our most excellent and most reli- gious brother and fellow-Bishop, Theodore, as the overseer of the Church ; for it was not reasonable that it should re- main in widowhood, and that the Saviour’s sheep should pass their time without a shepherd. But when he came to us weeping, not contending with the aforenamed most religious Bishop Theodore for his See or Church, but in the meantime seeking only for his rank and title as a Bishop, we all suffered with the old man in his grief, and considering his weeping as our own, we hastened to discover whether the aforenamed [Eustathius] had been subjected to a legal deposition, or whether, forsooth, he had been convicted on any of the ab- surd charges alleged by certain parties who had poured forth idle gossip against his reputation. And indeed we learned that nothing of such a kind had taken place, but rather that his resignation had been counted against the said Eustathius instead of a [regular] indictment. Wherefore, we did by no means blame your holiness for being compelled to ordain into his place the aforenamed most excellent Bishop Theodcre, But forasmuch as it was not seemly to contend much against the unpractical character of the man, while it was rather ne- cessary to have pity on the elder who, at so advanced an age, was now so far away from the city which had given him birth, and from the dwelling-places of his fathers, we have judi- cially pronounced and decreed without any opposition, that he shall have both the name, and the rank, and the Communion of the Episcopate. On this condition, however, only, that he shall not ordain, and that he shall not take and minister to a Church of his own individual authority ; but that [he shall do so only] if taken as an assistant, or when appointed, if it should so chance, by a brother and fellow-Bishop, in accord- ance with the ordinance and the love which is in Curist. IH, however, ye shall determine anything more favourable towards him either now or hereafter, this also will be pleasing to the Holy Synod. areas : “aaa A siesieat eerie ape et cig Sesto gir ms fir Casas ee ao ibe et ky feos: Se oe sacs a Tat ise yor ar ak . oa " “* ay, of =? mu Par GL! fren Bol eg aoa ; ier ee ea oe Pee se > Ath iets Uivy Aa aoe. eae ets wt) ep. ene oy, ice whe So: - 4 . aM ean ie 23 yi : 4 ayn pom, a ; ar i! d + a Py + Fre ke, ah . . ie tLe . ; = ee ¥ Ses, Str a a eee, oe ee Pe ater ies eee a, 4 f ‘ute ny x , mek 2 7) Pitre a? / 4 tS 2 MLE es 20,4 i Md ~~ ¢ if ~- 3 yi et ae 2 2, yy 2 wat ny! : ' > 7” > ¥ . ° , hy M, typ 7. f a bs “ ie ty yy y * 4 rine . . ao ae ph Ths | Pe hint, Sebe > PS ges | ah che 7 Yar < i Wa iad Scartiae ee: Ny cree She 5 aa * z ‘ as Jeet in ah Ci bec a = a ie at rat bl * si 544 . 1 4 i . « . ‘ ply Y Pol ae 2.2 may x, A 4 a ra t : Tees ) oa. Pp fe oe b ? A ¥ ® i * ip f sh Sate te at he f i ‘ 7 = => i b 3 - ie « t PB : Mate 5 ao fAeeL Is "35 « spis i? * bd 4 * * ane a eT ikl ts eg SO weit tf iG ¥ L oot! fos Liar y i ve ae Pte. de La 4 « GU Oates fa LEN es ee eS ID ay: ERA ‘ee . s ¥ . i" Sa) ay ¢ t oat faa , > as M eG ‘oa Pa | j h > | £ Ni) ie ARE oe Lv cl bs A ¥ 4 : ALY vin 4 A fa Reet, Gas ere j te hn as Ae TOR, cart t B wee oy Se eye oe ae i Tate Ye ei) ve OR A > On ae f u , , ' } ; Le ee irs FOURTH GENERAL COUNCIL. CHALCEDON. DEFINITIO FIDEI APUD CONCILIUM CO BAO ON TUNE ‘HATIA kal peydan Kat olkorvpercnn avvodoc, 7) Kata OE0d yapiv Kat Ooroma TOV EevoEBEoTaTWY Kal dtAoYpioTwWY TUGY Baotdewv Mapkiavod Kai Otadevtiavod AvyovoTwv, ovvayOeioa év TH Kadynoovewy, pntpoToAee tij¢ Bulvvdy énapyiac, év TO paptupio tig aylacg Kai KaAdALvixov paptvpoc Ev@nuiac, Gptoe Ta VTOTETAYPEVA, ‘O KYPIOS qudév Kai owrijp “Inoot¢ Xpioro¢ rtij¢ miotews THY yvoow Ttoig pabntaic BeBarwv, édn* iphvgv thy euqv apinue bpiv, sipjyynv tiv euiy Oidaue bpivs ote pndéva TpdC tov TAnotov diapwreiv ev Toig¢ ddypace Tie ebseBeiac, GAW érionc amaot TO THC aAnDeiag enieikvvebat Kipvypa, ’EreLd7 d& ov Tavera Oia TOV EavTod Ciaviwy 6 Tovnpd¢e Toi¢ THC evoeBeiuc Emipvowevocg oTrépwact, Kai TL KaLYOV KaTa TiC aAn- Oeiac e@evpiokwy dei, Ola TOvTO ovvVAjOwco 6 AeonoTHG Tpovood- pevoc TOD avOpwrivov yévouc, TOV EvoEBi TODTOV Kai TLOTOTA- Tov mpoc CijAov dvéotnoe BactAga, Kat Tove anavTayi TAC iepwovvnc mpoc éavtdov dpynyoug ovvekddscev’ WoTe, TIC yapito¢ Tov TaVvTWY Tov OEeoTdTOV Xpiotovd éevepyovorc, macav piv Tov wevdove THY Tov Xpiotov TpoBaTwY arrooEi- sacha Avpnv, ToIG O& TiC aAnOeiag adziy Katattaivey BAa- aotnuacv, “O 67 Kal TeTOLHKaLEV, KOLVY Widw Ta THE TAAYNC anedacavtes Ooypata, tiv O& atAaviy TOV Tlatépwv avavew- Oamevol TiOTLVY, TO THY TpltaKociwy OEeKaoKT® GvuBoAoV ToIC mao Knpvgavrec, Kai we oixeiovge Tove TOTO TO ovVOELA TiC evoeBeiac desauévove matépac eérvypayaevor. Oimtep eioliv of peta TavTa &v TH pmeydAy KwvotavtivovTdAe avvedOovrec pv’ Kal avtol THY adbtiy ertodpaytodmevoe Tiotiv, ‘Opigowev Toi- THE DEFINITION OF FAITH, AGREED UPON AT THE COUNCIL ON HRI: thicket, Cs DOF Nis The Holy, Great, and Cicumenical Synod, assembled, by the grace of Gop and the command of our most Christian and religious Emperors, Marcian and Valentine, at Chalcedon, the Metropolis of the Bithynian Province, in the Martyry of the holy and victorious Martyr Euphemia, has decreed as fol- lows : Our Lorp Jesus Curist, when strengthening the know- ledge of the Faith in his disciples, to the end that no one might disagree with his neighbour concerning the doctrines of the Faith, and that the proclamation of the Truth might be set forth equally to all men, said, “ My peace I leave with you, my peace I give unto you.” But, since the evil one does not desist from sowing tares among the seeds of godliness, but ever invents some new device against the Truth; therefore the Lorp, providing, as he ever does, for the human race, has raised up this pious, faithful, and zealous Sovereign, and has called together unto him from all parts the Chief Rulers of the Priesthood ; so that, the grace of Curisr our common Lorp inspiring us, we may cast off every plague of falsehood from the sheep of Cunist, and feed them with the tender leaves of truth. And this have we done with one unanimous consent, driving away erroneous doctrines and renewing the un- erring Faith of the Fathers, publishing to all men the Formula of the Three Hundred and Highteen, and to their number add- ing, as their peers, the Fathers who have received the same summary of religion. Such are the One Hundred and Fifty holy Fathers who afterwards assembled in the ereat City of 168 THE DEE ENE ELON, (ORS vAR IE vuv, Ti Tasty Kai TovEg TEpl Tij¢ MloTEws dnavtac zUTOUC pvaAattovTes Kai etc TH¢ Kat’ "Edeoov mada yeyevnuevns dylag ovvodov, ie iyeuoveg of dyl@Taroe THY pvijunv Kedeori- voc 0 Tig ‘Pwuatvv, Kai Kuptddog 6 tijg "Adegavdpéwy, étvy- yavov, TpodauTev péev Tij¢ opOij¢ Kai duwuhiTov TioTEWC THY &KOeotv TOV TL! Gyiwy Kai wakapiwy TaTépwv TAY Ev Necafa él Tod evoeBovo pvijunc Kwvotavtivoy tod yevousvov Baotkéwe ovvayOévtwr* Kpateiv O02 Kal Ta Tapa TAY pv! ayiwv ratépwv év Kwvoravrivovrodet opio0vta, Tpog avaipeoy pe TOY TOTE HvEetody aip‘cewr, BEeBaiwouvy dé Tie adbthg KafoAL- KC Kal aTOOTOALKTC TudY TioTEWS* TIISTEYOMEN «&, 7. A. "Hpket piv ov eic tvtedq tio evoeBetac éeniyvwotv te Kal BeBalwotv TO copov Kai owTHpiov TovTO Tic Oeiac yapiTog ovuBodov: trepi te yap tov Ilatpoc Kai tov Yiovd Kai Tob dyiov IUvetpatoc éxduddoxes TO TéeAetov, Kal TOD Kupfov thy évavOpannaw toic maTOo dexousverg Tapiotnowv, "AAA? émet- On7zep ol The dAnOeiac aOereiv . EneyepovvTEes TO KApvypa, Ola TOY oiketwv aipsoewv Tao KEvodwviag areTeKov, ol wiv TO The Ov judo tod Kuptov oikovoutag pveTipiov Tra- papdeipery ToAuavTec, Kal tiv OsoroKov él Tij¢ tapBEevov dwvijvy anapvotvuevor* of d& ovyyvoLv Kat Kpdowv eicayov- Tec, Kai jiiav eivat vow Tij¢ Gapkog Kat Tig CEoTHTOG avojtwc dvatAdrtovrec, Kai maInrivy tov povoyevov¢ tiv Oeiav piow 7h ovyxvoee Tepatevouevor* dia TOvTO Taoav avtoic amoKkAeioa Kata’ TH aAnIelag pnyavay Bovdaowévy i Tapovca viv attn ayia peyadn kai oikovperiKn ovvo- doc, TO Tov KyovyHwato¢ avwHev doddrevtov éKdiaoKovaa, Gpise Tponyovpévwc, TOY Tplakosiwy dekaokKT@ Gayiwy Ta- Téepwv THY Tot péverv amapsyyeipnrov. Kat dia pév rove 7 Uvevuate tH ‘Aylw payouévouc, tiv Xpovowg VoTe- pov mapa Tov etl Tie BactAevovonc mOAewe §=avvEedABovTwv txatov TevtiKkovta dywwv matépwv epi THg¢ Tob Tvevparoc ovaiac Tapado0eicay diWacKadiay Kupot* iv eKxetvor ToI¢ nao éyvepicav, ovK &¢ TL Aé€itov Toi¢ mpoAaBovoLy etre OF CHALICED ON. 169 Constantinople and ratified the same Faith.’ Moreover, ob- serving the order and every form relating to the Faith, which was observed by the Holy Synod formerly held in Kphesus, of which Celestine of Rome and Cyril of Alexandria, of holy memery, were the leaders, we do declare that the exposition of the right and blameless Faith made by the Vhree Hun- dred and Highteen holy and blessed Fathers, assembled at Nicea in the reign of Constantine of pious memory, shall be preeminent: and that those things shall be of force also, which were decreed by the One Hundred and Fifty holy Fathers at Constantinople, for the uprooting of the here- sies which had then sprung up, and for the confirmation of the same our Catholic and Apostolic Faith. WE BELIEVE, &e. This wise and Salutary Formula of Divine grace sufficed for the perfect acknowledgment and confirmation of religion ; for it teaches the perfect [docirine] concerning Farxer, Sov, and Hotry Guosr, and seis forth the Incarnition of the Lorp to them that faithfully receive it. But, forasmuch as persons undertaking to make void the preaching cf the truth have through their individual heresies given rise to empty babblings; some of them daring to corrupt the mystery of the Lorn’s in- carnation for us and refusing [to use] the name Theotocos in reference to the Virgin, while others, bringing in [the idea of] a confusion and mixture, and idly conceiving that the nature of the flesh and of the Godhead is all one, subtilly maintain that the divine Nature of the Only Begotten is, by mixture, capable of suffering ; therefore this present Holy, Great, and Cicumenical Synod, teaching the unaltered truth of the Gos- vel, which has been held from the beginning, and desiring to exclude every device against the Truth, has at the very outset decreed that the Faith of the Three Hundred and Eighteen Fathers shall not be tampered with. And, on account of them that contend against the Hoty Guosr, it confirms the doctrine afterwards delivered concerning the substance of the Sprare by the One Hundred and Fifty holy Fathers who assembled in the imperial City; which doctrine they declared unto all men, not as though they were introducing anything that had been lacking in their predecessors, but in order to explvin through 170 THE DEP NIT LON “OF SeAb rH x adyourec, aAAad THY TEpi Tov ‘Ayliov Ilvevuatoc abtav év- volav KaTa TOV TY abtov dEeoToTEiav GOeTEIV TELPWILEVWY ypadikaic paptupiag tpavwoavrec. Ata O& Tove TO Tie oikovoniag Tapaddeipery emiyetpovdvTacg pvotipiov, Kat wtaov GvOpwnov Eivat TOV éEK THE dyiag TEXOEvTa Mapiac ava- O0w¢ Anpwiotvtac, Tac TOD pakapiov KuptAdov, Tov Tij¢ "AdcEavdpéwv exKkAnotag yevouévov Trousvoc, ovvodiKcacg ént- otoAdg mpo¢ Neotoptov kai mpdc .tove Tie davaTodie, dpuodiove ovaacg édégato, ei¢ éAeyyov piv tij¢ Neoropiov ppsvoBaaBeiac, épunvetav d& tav év evoeBet CijAw TOD ow- THpiov avuBdorAov robovyTdéy tiv evvotavs aic Kai THY eTLOTOAIY TOU Tic weyioTns Kai TpEoBvTépac ‘Puno mpoéd- pov TOD pakaptwrdtov Kal GdywwrTéToVv apyleTLoKOTOV A€govroc, TiVv ypadeioav spoc Tov ev dyiowe apyteTtickoTov Piaviavov én’ avaipsoe tij¢ Ebtvyot¢ Kakovoiac, ate on TH Tov peydAov étpov bwodoyia ovpBaivovoayv, Kai Kowviv TWA OTIANY UTapxovoay Kata TAY KaKodosovvTwWY, EikébTwC ovvipoce Tpoe THY TOV dp90ddSwov doyudtwv BeBaiworr. Toig te yap ei¢ vidv dvada 7d Ti¢ oikovouiac dvacrav ETLYELPOVOL [VOTH PLOY, TapataTTETaL* Kal Todo TaOnTiY TOD povoyevod¢ A€yery ToAuayTac THY OsdryTAa, Tod THY lepdv amwbeitat ovaddyov* Kai toig emi tov dvo dvaewv Tov Xptotod Kpaiowv, i) ovyxvoww éxtivoota.v avOioratat* Kal Tove ovpaviov, ij Etépag Tivog trapyEty ovoiag THY FE TudY Ano- Oeioav abite Tod SovAov popdijy tapataiovtac ezehaiver* Kal Tovg dvo wiv mpd Tie évdcewo voetg TOD Kupiov pvOer- ovtac, piav d& pera tiv Evwoww dvaTAdtTovTac dvabepa- Tiger’ EmomEvoL ToivuY Toic dyiowg TaTpdowv, fva Kal TOV ad- TOV GuoAoyovpmev Yiov tov Kiptov jay "Insodv Xptotov, Kar ouupavac dnavreg &diOdoKomer, TEAELOY TOV avToY ev OEdTNTL, Téxevov TOV avTov év avOpwrdtyTL, OEdv aAnOdc, Kai avOpw- tov adnddc, Tov abtov &k woyii¢ AoytKij¢ Kal odparoc, b.0- ovotsv TO Matpt kata tiv OedtyTa, Kai Spoovoov Tov adbrov qiiv Kata Tiv avOpwrétnta, Kata TadvTa bmoLov Tuiv, Ywple aquaptiag* pd aiwvov piv ex tod Ilatpd¢ yevvnfévta Kata THY OsotyTa, ex’ goyatwv d& THY HuepSv Tv abrov Sv iyudc kat Old THY iyuetspav owrnpiav && Mapiac tite mapOévou Tie OeoToKov Kata THY dvOpwrdrynTa, &va Kai rov abtov Xptoroy, Yiov, Kuptov, povoyeri), tv dvo ddvaeow aovvyitwc, aTpénTwC, GOLULpETWC, AXwploTHS yvuptouEevov* otdauod Tie TOV b= OF CHALCEDON. at written documents their faith concerning the Hoty Guosr against those who were seeking to destroy His Sovereignty. And, on account of those who have taken in hand to corrupt the mystery of the Incarnation and who shamelessly pretend that He Who was born of the holy Mary was mere man, it re- ceives the synodical letters of the Blessed Cyril, former Pastor of the Church of Alexandria, addressed to Nestorius and the Easterns, judging them suitable for the refutation of the frenzied folly of Nestorius, and for the instruction of those who long with holy ardour for a knowledge of the saving Formula. And, for the confirmation of the orthodox doctrines, it has rightly added to these the letter of the President of the ereater and older Rome, the most blessed and holy Archbishop Leo, which was addressed to the saintly Archbishop Flavian for the removal of the false doctrines of Eutyches, judging them to be agreeable to the confession of the great Peter, and as it were a common pillar against misbelievers. For it op- poses those who would rend the mystery of the Incarnation into a Duad of Sons; it repels from the assembly of the Saints those who dare to say that the Godhead of the Oaly Begotten is capable of suffering; it resists those who imagine [that there is] a mixture or confusion of the natures of Curisr ; it drives away those who fancy the form of a servant which was taken by him of us is of an heavenly or some other substance; and if anathematizes those who talk of two natures of our Lorp before the union, conceiving that after the union there was only one. We, therefore, following the holy Fathers, con- fess one and the same Son, our Lorp Jesus Curist ; and we do with one voice teach that He is perfect in Godhead and that He is perfect in Manhood, being truly Gop and truly Man ; that He is of a reasonable soul and body, consubstantial with the Farner as touching the Godhead, and consubstantial with us as touching His manhood, being in all things like us, sin except ; that, as touching His Godhead, He was begotten of the Faruer before the worlds; and, as touching His man- hood, that in the last days He was for us [men] and for our salvation born of Mary, the Virgin Theotocos, being one and the same Curist, Son, Lorp, Only Begotten, acknowledged to be in two natures, without confusion, change, division, separation ; the distinction of natures being by no means , 172 THE DEBEINTTION -OF pEAT iE cewy dtadopaic avypnuevng dia THY Evwowv, owgonévng d& paA- Aov rig idtornto¢ Ekatépac pvoewc, Kai eic Ev TpdowTOV Kal piavy brOoTacLy ovVTpEXOvanC, ovK sic OVO TpdowTa peEpt6- pevov 7 Otatpovuevov, aAd’ Eva Kai Tov adtov Tidy kat wovoyeri], Oedv Adyov, Kvpiov "Inootv Xpior6v: Kabarep dvw- fev of mpodijrat Tepi adbtov, Kai abtoc tude 6 Kiptoc ‘Inoovc Xpiotoc é&eTaidevoe, Kal TO THY TaTépwv ipiv Tapadé- dwKe obuBoAor, Tovtwy toivuv peta muéong mavtayobev axpiBeiag TE Kal Emedeiacg Tap’ Huov OlatvTMBEVTWY, WpLOEV 7) Gyla Kai oikovpE= vukn obvodoc, érépav riot pndevi eeivar mpodépe, iyovv ovyypagev, 7) ovvtTiéva, 7 poveiv, 7 OwdaoKery éErépove, Todc d& ToAuavTag 7 ovvTiOévat TioTW EtEpav, Tyovv TpOKO- ise, 7) dudaoKelv, 7) Tapadiovat ErEpov ovuBoAov Toi¢ EOEAOU- ow éencotpépev sic eriyvworv dAnbetag && “EAAnviopod, 7) b& ‘lovdaiopod, ijyovy && aipécewc olacdnmotovv, TovTovc, ef pev elev éttlokoTol 7) KAnptKkol, aAAoTpiovge Elva Tov¢o éEnLOKOTOUG tie émokorijc, Kat Tov¢ KAnpiKodc TOD KAnpov* Ei 62 jovd- Govrec i) Aaixoi eiev, avabewaticecbat adbtovc, META 0é tiv avayvwo.v Tob bpov mavTec of evAaBéotaToL émlaxoTot &BOnoayv* abty 7 TloTI¢ TOY TaTépwy, Oi pnTpoTO- Aira dpte broypaapwor' TapovTwv abt@v apYovTwv, apt. bTo- ypdpwors Ta Kaddc opiobévta irépPeow jun OeEqTat. ATH q ToTig TOY aTooTOAwY, TavTy TavTeg oToLYoDEY* maVTEC OUTW Ppovoduer, OF CHALCEDON. 173 destroyed by their union ; but rather, the distinction of each nature being preserved, and concurring in one Person and one Existence; not in somewhat that is parted or divided into two persons; but in one and the same and Only-Begotien Son, Gop the Worp, the Lorp Jzsus Cuntst, as the Prophets have from the beginning testified concerning Him, and our Lorp Jesus Cunisr Himself has taught us, and the Creed of the Fathers has delivered to us. These things, then, having been expressed by us with all possivle precision and carefulness, the Holy and Gicumenica Synod decrees that it is not lawful for any man to propose, or compile, or compose, or hold, or teach to others, any different Faith. But those who presume to compose a different Faith, or to propagate, or teach, or deliver a different Formula to persons desirous of turning to the acknowledgment of the Truth from heathenism, or Judaism, or any heresy whatsoever, if they be Bishops or Clergymen, shall be deposed, Bishops from the Episcopate, and Clergymen from the Clergy; and, if they be Monks or laymen, they shall be anathematized. Now, after the reading of the Definition, all the most religious Bishops cried out : This is the Faith of the Fathers: let the Metropolitans forthwith subscribe it: let them forth- with, in the presence of the rulers, subscribe it : let that which has been well defined have no delay: this is the Faith of the Apostles: by this we all stand : thus we all believe. CANONES CHALCEDONENSIS CONCILIT GENERALIS. A. D, 451. Kavovec tov é$akooiwv tprdkovra dyiwv Ka pakapiov mat&pwv Tov bv Xadkn- dove ovveA bovTov. KANQN A’, Tod¢ mapa THv dyiwy natépwr Kal’ Exdotnv obvodoyv aypt Tov viv éxteOévtac Kavovac Kpareiv EdLKGLMOaLEY, KANQN B’. Et tic émloxotroc, émt xphuaot velpoToviav motjoatto, Kat el¢ Tpdolw Kataydyot THY aTpaTov xaply, Kal YELpoTOVicoL Ert xpHuaow ErioxoToy, 7) YwpEeTioKoTOV, 7) TpedBuTEpovc, 7) dLa- KOvove, 7 ETEpOV TLVa THY ev TO KARPwW KaTNpPLOUNLEVwY, 7 mpoBdAAoto ext vphwaoty oikovouov, 1) EKdLKOV, 7) Tapawovd- piov, 7) bAwe Tiva Tod Kavdvoc, dv’ aioypoKépderav oixeiar, 6 TodTO émuyelpyoac, EAeyyOeic, KivdvvevéTw TrEpt TOV oiKeiov Babwdr:* Kat O KElpoTovovmEvoc, wndev eK Tie Kat’ EuTOpiav Wpedciabw vElpotoviac, 7 TpOBoAc* dAN Lotw aAAdTploe Tij¢ asiac, 7) TOD ppovtioparoc, obTEp ett Yphuaow éervyev. Ei dé Tie Kat peot- TevwY avein Toic ovTWE aioypoig Kat AOEuitoLG Arpad, Kal ovroc, el sev KANpLKoG ein, TOD oiKkelov ExTUTMTETW BaDWov* Ei OF Aaikoc, 7) wovdgwv, avabenwaticéadw. KANQN I, "HAdev eic tHv dyiav otvodov, btt TOY év TO KATPw KaTelideypevav tivéec, dv’ aioypoKépdetav, aAAoTtpiwy KT HUd- Twv yivovtat jucOwral, Kal mpdywata KoopiKd épyoAaBovor, TG pev tov Oeod AgtTovpyiag Katappadvuodvvtec, Tove dé TOV KOoWLKaY brotTpéyovTEe¢ olKoveG, Kal ovoldY YEIpLojodsG CANONS OF CHALCEDON. CANON I. We have judged it right that the Canons of the Holy Fathers made in every Synod even until now should remain in force. CANON II. If any Bishop should ordain for money, and put to sale a grace which cannot be sold, and for money ordain a Bishop, or Chorepiscopus, or Presbyters, or Deacons, or any other of those who are counted among the Clergy ; or if through lust of gain he should nominate for money a Steward, or Advocate, or Bailiff, or any one whatever who is on the roll of the Church, let him who is convicted of this forfeit his own rank ; and let him who is ordained be nothing profited by the pur- chased ordination or promotion; but let him be removed from the charge or dignity he has obtained for money. And if any one should be found negotiating such shameful and unlawful transactions, let him also, if he is a Clergyman, be deposed from his rank, and if he is a Jayman or Monk, let him be anathematized. CANON III. It has come to [the knowledge of] the Holy Synod that certain of those who are enrolled among the Clergy have, through lust of gain, become hirers of other men’s possessions, and make contracts pertaining to secular affairs, lightly es- teeming the service of Gop, and that others slip into the houses of secular persons, whose property they undertake through 176 CANONS avadexouevor Ota didapyvpiay. "Qpioce Toivey i) dyia Kat weydan abvodoc, pndéva tov Aottod, ui EnioKoTOY, jun KA- pikov, [Ly jeovdgovta, 7 pucbovcbar KTHWoTa, 7 TpaywaTwY itemouyelv Eavtov Koojukaicg OlouKnaeor* TAY ei pyTOv éK vOuwY Kadolto ei¢ a@nAtkKwv anapaitnrov énitpoTiyv: | O Tie méAewo EtioKkoT0G ExKAnoLaoTIKM@Y erITpEeror dpovTigey TpayuadTwv, 7) OpPpavev, 7 YXNp@v atpovontwv, kat TwV TMpPooWTWY TOV [léALOTAa THC EKKANOLAOTLKAG Seoévwv GBon- Oziac, Ora Tov PdBov tov Ocov. Ei dé Tig apaBaivwv TU Wplonéva Tov AotTOD EmLYELphaoL, 6 ToLOvTOG éEKKAHOLaGTI- Koig vToKEloOw ETLTLLLOLC. KANON A’, Oi adanO@co Kat elAtKpivao TOY jovijpn petLovTEec Pior, Tie Tmpoonxovons asvovc0woav tying. ~Kmerdy O& Tiveg TA Lovayltn@ Kexpnuévol Tpooxnwatl, Ta¢ Te EkKANoiag Kai Ta TOAtTLKa §=OLlaTapdoooveL TpdywaTa, TEptidvTEG adLapdpwo ev Taic méAeotv, OV pv aAdAad Kal jovactipia séavtoig ovv- tatav émirndetbovrec, Edoke, pundéva psy pundapovd oixodopeiy, unde ovvictav povasripioyv, 1) EvKTApLov olKov, Tapa yvauny Tov THe TOAewe émtondtov' TovG dé Kal’ ExdoTHY TOALY, Kal yY@par, pmovdsovtac, vroreTdyOar TH emioKOTH, Kal THY jovyiav donagecbal, Kai TpooexeLy ovn TH vyoTela, Kal TI TpOoEvYH, EV Ol¢ TOTOLC aTETaSUYTO TpOOKAapTEPOvYTEG* [ijTE 62 &xkAnovaoreKoic, mite Biwrikol¢ TapevoyAciv Tpaypaolv, 7 émicomvwvely, KaTaAyiTavovTac Ta ita LovaoTipla, ei [ijTOTE dpa énitpareiev “Oia xpsiav avayKaiav b7d Tod Tij¢ TOAEWC imionorov* pundéva d& Tmpoadived0ar év toic jovaornpiote dov- Aov éni TH povdoa, Tapa yvounv tod idiov deonoTov* Tov 62 mapaBaivovta Todtov juav Tov Spov, Hpioapev aKkoLveynToY eival, iva py TO Ovowa Tod Ocod BAaodnujta. Tov pév Toe éniokotov Tie TOAEwC, YP) THY Oéovoav Tpovolay TroLetoOat TOV LOVATTNPLWY, KANON E!, Tlept tv petaBavdvtwv and mé6AEwo Eig TOALY ETLOKOTWY, i) kAnptnesy, &dok tobe Tept TobTwY TEDEVTAG Kavdvac Tapa TOY dyiwyv ratépwv Exe Thy ioxdr. OF CHALCEDON. 177 covetousness to manage. Wherefore the Great and Holy Synod decrees that henceforth no Bishop, Clergyman, nor Monk shall hire possessions, or engage in business, or occupy himself in worldly engagements, except he shall be called by the law to the unavoidable guardianship of minors; or the Bishop of the City shall commit to him the care of ecclesias- tical business, or of unprovided orphans or widows and of persons who stand especially in need of the Church’s help, through the fear of Gop. And if any one shall hereafter transeress these decrees, he shall be subjected to ecclesiastical penalties. CANON IV. Let those who truly and sincerely enter the monastic life, be counted worthy of becoming honour ; but, forasmuch as certain persons using the pretext of monasticism bring con- fusion both upon the Church and into political affairs by going about promiscuously in the Cities, seeking only to establish Monasteries for themselves; therefore it is decreed that no Monk shall live anywhere, nor establish a Monastery or an Oratory contrary to the will of the Bishop of the City ; and that the Monks in every City and district shall be subject to the Bishop, and embrace a quiet course of life, and give themselves only to fasting and prayer, remaining permanently in the places where they have been settled ; and they shall meddle neither in ecclesiastical nor in secular affairs, nor leave their own Monasteries to take part in such ; unless, indeed, they should at any time through urgent necessity be appointed thereto by the Bishop of the City. And no slave shall be re- ceived into any Monastery to become a Monk against the will of his master. And if any one shall transgress this our jude- ment, we have decreed that he shall be excommunicated, that the name of Gop be not blasphemed. But the Bishop of the City must make the needful provision for the Monasteries. CANON V. Concerning Bishops or Clergymen who go about from City to City, it is decreed that the Canons enacted by the Holy Fathers shall still retain their force. 178 CANONS KANQN ¢’. Mydéva atroAcAvuevacg YetpoToveicOat, ATE TpEDBUTEpOY, [ATE Oidkovov, pinTe OAWC TVG TOV Ev 7H EKKANOLaDTLK® TdypaTe° ei uy idiK@C ev EkKAnoia TOAEwWC, 7] KOUNC, 7 papTYplw, 7 wovaoTyplw, O KXEelpoTovotpEevog éEmuKNpvTTOLTO. Todc dé amo- AbTWC YELPOTOVOLLEVOLC, Wploev ayia obvodoc, akvpov éeyewv THY TowavTHY NElpobeciav, Kat fundapov divacbat évepyetv ép’ UBpEet TOV VELpoTOVioarTos. KANON Z’, Tove dma& év KkdAipw tetaypéevove 7) Kai povacrTac, wpl- OApeEv § funjTe éml otpateiav, mate ent asiav Koomijy ep- yeoOar* 7, TOdTO TOAWOVTAC, Kal py pEeTamEAOvUEVOYE WOT " émtoTpsyar él tTodTo, 0 dua Oedv mpoTEepov EtdAovto, avabe- paricecbar, y) KANQN H’, Oi KAnpikol TOV TTwXElwWY, Kal fLovaoTNpiWY, Kal papTupir, ind tH eovoiay Tov év ExdoTy TOAEL EmLOKOTWY, KaTa THY T@Vv aylwv Tatépwv tapddociv, dtapevéerwoav’ Kal pn Kata abv0ddeiav ddyvidtwoav tod idiov éxvoxd7ov. Ol 62 ToAU@vTeEs avatpéney THY ToLavTHY Otatizwotv, Ka’ olovd7jTOTE TpOTOY, kai py brotattéuevor TO Wiw evtoKdTH, el MEY Elev KANpLKOL, toic TOV Kavévwv broKelcOwoav éEmiTYyLloLG’ el OE povdcorTec, i) Aaikol, oTWOUaV GKOLYaVITOL. KANQN 0’. Ef tic KAnpixd¢ mpdc KAnpiKOY Tpdywa Exel, pH eyka- tadyimavéto TOV olKeiov éenioxovov, Kal éml KoowKa OvKa- aTipia ph KataTpEexéTo, GAAG TpOTEpov THY DT6DEOLY yuLVa- Cétw Tapa TO Idiw éintoxdrw, 7 yovdv, yveuy avdtod Tov émiokoTov, Tap’ ol¢ adv aupotepa ta peépn PBovAwvTal, Ta tice odikne ovykpotetoOw* ei dé TIC Tapa TavTa ToLTOOL, KaVvOVLKoIc = éeTLTLioie §=dTrOKEL GOW. Ei 6& Kat KkAnpiKoc¢ mpayua &yet mpoc Tov idiov, 7) Kal mpoG ETEpov exioKkoTOV map TH ovvedw Trij¢ imapyiacg OuagéoOw, Ei dé mpo¢g tov Tie avTig enapyiag jijtporoaizay, ériaKotoc, 7 KAnpLKOS, OF CHALCEDON. 179 CANON VI. Neither Presbyter, Deacon, nor any of the ecclesiastical order shall be ordained without a charge, nor unless the per- son ordained is particularly appointed to a Church in a City or village, or to a Martyry, or to a Monastery. And if any shall be ordained without a charge, the Holy Synod decrees, to the reproach of the ordainer, that such an ordination shall be inoperative, and shall nowhere have effect. CANON VIL. We have decreed that those who have once been enrolled among the Clergy, or have been made Monks, shall accept neither a military charge nor any secular dignity; and if they shall presume to do so and not repent in such wise as to turn again to that which they had first chosen for the love of Gop, they shall be anathematized. CANON VII. Let the Clergy of the poor-houses, Monasteries, and Mar- tyries in every City remain under the authority of the Bishops, according to the tradition of the holy Fathers; and let no one arrogantly cast off the rule of his own Bishop ; and if any shall contravene this Canon in any way whatever, and will not be subject to their own Bishop, if they be Clergy, let them be subjected to canonical penalties, and if they be Monks or lay- men, let them be excommunicated. CANON IX. If any Clergyman have a complaint against another Clergy- man, he shall not forsake his Bishop and run to secular courts ; but let him first try the suit before his own Bishop, or let the matter at issue be submitted to any persons whom parties shall, with the Bishop’s consent, select. And if any one shall contravene these decrees, let him be subjected to canonical penalties. And if a Clergyman have a complaint against his own or any other Bishop, let it be decided by the Synod of the Province. And if a Bishop or Clergyman should have a difference with the Metropolitan of the Province, let 180 CANONS augioBnroin, KaTadapBavétw tov *apyov tij¢ dtockjoewc, 7 Tov tie Buotdevovone KwvortavtivovmdAewc Opovov, Kab ém’ av7@ OLlKaceobw. KANON I’, My) é&eivae KAnpixdv év dbo TOAEWY KaTa TavTOV KaTa- héyeoOar éxkAnoia, &v Te THY apynVv Eexelpotov7Oyn, Kat év 1 mpocépvyev, wo pcigove On0ev, dia Oosng KeEvijg ént- Ovuiav, Tove d& ye TovTo moLovYTaC aToKabioTacIa TH idia éxkAnoia, tv q && apxije eyeppotov7Ojoav, Kat eket jedvov Aeitoupyeiv. Ki pév toe in Teo pusteTéOn && addAnc sic GAdAnv exkAnoiav, pndiv Toig Tig TpoTépac EkKAHoiac, irToL tov br abtiy paptupiov, 7 mrwyelwr, 1 sevodoyeiwy ért- Kolvavetvy Tpdypacwv. Tovo¢ 0& ye ToAu@vTac, jeETa TOV épov Tie peydAnc Kat oikovpertKig tavtn¢ ovvddov, TparTELv TL TOV viv annyopevpévwv, Wploev ayia ovvodog EKTiT- Tey Tov idiov BaOwov. KANQN IA’, Ildvtac tobe mévytacg Kal deomévove émtxovpiac, peta Sokyasiag énLotoAiowe, eitovy eipyveKoig eKkkAnotaoTLKoIg [6- voc, Odeverv wpicamev, Kal wy ovortatiKoi¢: Ola TO TaG ovotatikac émloTOAaG TpooiKELy Toi¢ ovaoly ev vmoAWer wdvoe TapéyecOat TpoowroLe. KAN GN. AB) "HAOev tic jude, @o Tiveg Tapa Tove eKkkAnoLaoTLKOdC Decove mpoodpamovtec Ovvacreiatc, Ola TpaywaTiKOy TY lav étapyiav eic Sto Katétemov, we éx Tobtov dbo pyTpoTOAiTaG elvat év TH abt énapyta, “Qpioe tolvvyv q ayia odvvodoe, Tov Aoitod uNndév. ToLOdTO TOAnaoOaL Tapa énLOKdTOv" ere, Tov ToLOdTO ETLYELpODYTA exTintELY Tov idiov BaPwod. “Ooat df 0n TOAELC Ola ypayudrorv BaclAKGv TO TIC pHTpOTOAEwWC eviyunfynoav dvéuatt, povnc antodavétwoay Tij¢ Tic, Kal @ Thy ekKrnoiav avrg Ovoikdv éxioxotoc, AnAovott owComévwv TH Kar’ GAnOeav pntpoTdAEt TOV oikElwy OiKaiwyY, OF CHALCEDON. 181 him have recourse to the Exarch of the Diocese, or to the throne of the Imperial City of Constantinople, and there let it be decided. CANON X. Tt shall not be lawful for a Clergyman to be at the same time enrolled in two Churches, that is, in the Church in which he was at first ordained, and in another to which, because it is greater, he has removed from lust of empty honour. And those who do so shall be returned to their own Church in which they were originally ordained, and there only shall they minister. But if any one has heretofore been [law- fully] transferred from one Church to another, he shall not intermeddle with the affairs of his former Church, nor with the Martyries, Almshouses, and Houses of Refuge belonging to it. And if, after the decree of this Great and Cicumenical Synod, any shall dare to do any of the things now forbidden, the Synod decrees that he shall be degraded from his rank. CANON XL We have decreed that the poor and [other] persons need- ing assistance shall travel, after examination, with letters merely pacifical from the Church, and not with letters com- mendatory, inasmuch as letters commendatory ought to be given only to persons who are liable to question. CANON XII. lt has come to our knowledge that certain persons, con- trary to the laws of the Church, having had recourse to secular powers, have by means of imperial rescripts divided one Pro- vince into two, so that there are consequently two Metropoli- tans in one Province ; therefore the Holy Synod decrees that for the future no such thing shall be attempted by a Bishop, and that whoever shall undertake it shall be degraded from his rank. But the Cities which have already been honored by . means of imperial letters with the name of Metropolis, and Bishops in charge of them, shall take the title only, all metro- politan rights being preserved to the true Metropolis. 182 CANONS KANQN IT”. Eévove KAnptkov¢ Kai avayvwotac év éErépa TOA diva ~ / ae) Sine: ’ , , ~ OVOTATLKOY ypaypaTwv Tov iiov EmLoKOTOV, UndbAWS ndamOd Aettoupyeir. KANQN IA’. "Ered «=&v Teo = erapyiaig: §=ouvKEeywpnTat Tog ava- yvootaic, Kal wadAraic, yapmeiv, wpioev ayia avvodoc, pn e&ivai = tiuve =abvTév Etepodogov = yvvaika = Aas Baverv. Tovc d& dn ek TowovTov yayov tradoTtoLjoavTac, piv ép0acav Panticat ta && atbtov TeyOévtTa Tapa Toc aipeTikoic, Tpooayervy atta Ti Kolvwvia tic KaBodLKiC EkkAnjolac’ ju Bantioavtac o&, pu) SbvacBae Ett BaTrTicev abTa Tapa TOG aipETLKOtC, pTE WHY oVVaTTELY TPG YyaLov aipeTiKe, 7) “lovdatw, 7) “EAAnu, et pu apa éerxayyéAdoito jeTa- TiBec0at sic Tiv 6pAdd0k0v TioTLY TO OvYATTOMEVOY TPOOWTOY TO 6pO0d6sw, Ei dé tig TodTov tov bpov TapaBain Tie ayiac ovvddov, Kavovik® vTOKEGOW ETLTUWLiC. KANQN IE’. Atakovov ui) xelpotovetobat =yvvaika mpd etOV TEO- capakovTa, Kai TavTyVv eT’ akpiBovc doKuaotac. Ei dé ye dekapévn tiv yelpobeciav, Kai ypovoey tiva Tapa- peivaoa TH AEetTovpyia, éavT7v émidG yayw, DBpicoaca Tv Tov Or0d yapiv, 4 ToLlavTH avabepaTigéoOw jeTa Tod abTH ovvapbevroc. KANON I¢’. Tlap0évov avabeioay éavtjv TO SeotoTy O&G, Woavtwc JF Kal pmovdcovtuc, wh ekeivar yapw Tpooomidreiv, Hi dé ye etpe- feiev TovTo ToLodyTEc, ~oTwoav akowwerytol. ‘Qpioauev dé ” Ss > , ~ year] ’ ~ / \ éyerv tiv abvbevtiav tij¢ én’ avtoic gtAavOpwriag TOY KaTa TOTOV étioKoTOY. KANQN IZ). Tac Kal? éxdotny émapyiav aypoikiKde Tapolkiac 7) &yYXW=- plove, pévetv atapacadevtove Tapa Toig Katéyovoltv advTac OF CHALCEDON. 183 CANON XIII. Clergymen and Readers visiting another City without let- ters commendatory from their own Bishop, are absolutely prohibited from officiating. CANON XIV. Since in certain Provinces it is permitted to the Readers and Singers to marry, the Holy Synod decrees that it shall not be lawful for any of them to take a wife that is heterodox. But those who have already begotten children of such a mar- riage, if they have already had their children baptized among the heretics, must bring them into the communion of the Catholic Church ; but if they have not had them baptized, they may not hereafter baptize them among heretics, nor give them in marriage to a heretic, or a Jew, or a heathen, unless the person marrying the orthodox child shall promise to come over to the orthodox Faith. And if any one shall transgress this decree of the Holy Synod, let him be subjected to canon- ical punishment. CANON XV. A woman shall not be ordained Deaconess under forty years of age, and then only after searching examination. And if, after she has been ordained and has continued for a time to minister, she shall despise the grace of Gop, and give herself in marriage, she and her husband shall be anathe- matized. CANON XVI. It is unlawful for a Virgin who has dedicated herself to the service of Gop, and likewise for Monks, to marry ; and if they are found to have done this, let them be excommunicated, But we deeree that in every place the Bishop shall have the power of indulgence towards them. CANON XVIL. Outlying or rural Parishes shall in every Province remain to the Bishops who now have jurisdiction over them, particularly 184 CANONS émuoKoTrolr, «Kal piddtora ei TplakovTaeTi xpovoy czavTac apiaotw¢ dtakatéyovtes @kovounoav, Ei 0& évt0¢ TOV Tpidxovra éT@v ‘yeyévytat Tic, i yévorto Tepl atTov _— aupoBiznoc, é&eivat toig Aéyovow idtxeiobat, TEpi Tov= TWY Kivelv Tapa TH ovvddw Tic émapyiac, Ei dé tec ~ adikoitTo Tapa Tov idiov pntpoToAitov, Tapa 7H é&apxw ‘ , ~ va “ ~ r / Tie dtouknoewc, 7) TH Kwvortavtivovrdsews Opovw dtka- 6£00w, Kaba rposipnra. Ei d& Kat sic ek BaordrKne We / 2 ae / ht 4 a — ~ égovaiac éxaivicbn TodAtc, 17) avOtc Katvicbein, Toi¢ ToAtTI- Koi¢ Kal Onootowg TUTOLC, Kai THY EKKANOLAOTLKMY Trapol= Klav 7 Taig akoAovOEiTH, KANQN IH’, To tij¢ ovvepociac 7) patpiag éyKkAnua, Kai mapa Tov ew VOUWY TAVTN KEKWAVTAL, TOAAG On PaAAOV ev TH TO’ OEOd ExkAnoia TovTO yiveoBat arayopevery mpoojKer. Et tivec Tol- vUV KAnpLKoL, 7) wovacovTec Ebpsfeiev ovvoLYipEvoL, 7) patpla- Govtec, 7} KaTaoKevacg TupEevovTec emLOKOTOLC, 7) GVvyKAnpLKOiC EKTITTETWOAY TaVYTH TOV oiKkeiov Balwov. KANQN Joe’, "HAdev eic Ta¢ TjpeTepac axoac, oc év taic énapyiac ai KEKaVOVLOMEvaL OvVvOdOL TOV ETLOKOTWY Od ylvovTal, Kat &K TOUTOV TOAAG TapapEdsital THY OLlopIwoEwWC JEopévwr eEKKAN- olacTLK@Y Tpaypnatwrv, “Qpioe Toivev 7 ayia ovvodoc, KaTa Tove TOV dyiwv Ilatépwv Kavovac, dig tov éviavTod emi TO avTo ovuTpexew Kal? Exaornv énapyiav Tove éntoKorovc, évOa dv 6 Tie pntpoTOAEwe érioKxottoc SoKywaoy, Kat StopOovy Exaora Ti dvakuntovta. Tovco d& pu ovrlovtag émioKoTtouc, EVvdn- wovvrac taic éavt@v TOAEoL, Kai TaiTa ev vyela OLdyovTac, kal Taon¢ aTapalTiTOV Kal dvayKaiag doxoAiag bvta¢g édev~ Bépove, adeAdiKag éenitAnTTEdOat, KANON K’. 9 KAnptxong sic éxkAnoiav teAovvtac, Kabac ibn apt- ‘ 9- ww 9 ” s o ’ oayev, pu esetvat sic dAAng TOAEWG TaTTEDAaL = EKKAN- ciav' Gadd orépyev exeivyv tv q Aettovpyeiv && ap- xig ewiOnoav, éxtd¢ eEkeivwr, oltivec atoAéoavTEeg Ta¢ OF CHALCEDON. 185 if the Bishops have peaceably and continuously governed them for the space of thirty years. But if within thirty years there has been, or shall be, any dispute concerning them, it is lawful for those who hold themselves aggrieved to bring their cause before the Synod of the Province. And if any one be wronged by his Metropolitan, let the matter be decided by the Exarch of the Diocese or by the throne of Constantinople, as has been before said. Andif any City has been, or shall! hereafter be; newly erected by imperial authority, let the arrangement of ecclesiastical Parishes follow the political and municipal forms. CANON XVIII. The crime of conspiracy or banding together is utterly prohibited even by the secular law, and much more ought it to be forbidden in the Church of God. Therefore, if any, whether ) y> Clergymen or Monks, should be detected in conspiring or banding together, or hatching plots against their Bishops or :=) 5 ? StI 5 fellow-clergy, they shall by all means be deposed from their own rank. CANON XIX. Whereas it has come to our ears that in the Provinces the Canonical Synods of Bishops are not held, and that on this account many ecclesiastical matters which need regulation are neglected ; therefore, according to the Canons of the holy Fathers, the Holy Synod decrees that the Bishops of every Province shall twice in the year assemble together where the Bishop of the Metropolis shall approve, and shall then settle whatever matters may have arisen. And Bishops, who do not attend, but remain in their own Cities, though they are in good health and free from any unavoidable and necessary business, shall receive a brotherly admonition. CANON XX. Tt shall not be lawful, as has been aforesaid, for Clergymen officiating in one Church to be appointed to the Church of an- other City, but they shall cleave to that in which they were first thought worthy to minister ; those, however, being ex- 186 CANONS oikeiac Tatpidac amd avdayKnc, sic GAAnv éxKAnciav per= qWAGov, Ki df tic érioxomog peta Tov pov Totitor, G@Akw@ émloKOT™@ TpoojKovta dékoito KAnpikdv, edokev akoww@rvntoy eivat Kat Tov dexOevta, Kati Tov dekape- vov, wo av 6 jeraotac KAnpikdo ele tiv idiav éma- vEAOn ExKANTIar, KANQN KA’, KAnpixove, 7) Aaixodc, Katnyopodvtac émtoxérwy, 7} KAn- piuRGV’, aTA@e Kai adoKyiaotwo fun ~— TpoadéveoOae ic KaTnyopiav, e jun mpoTepov eéeradOein aitév % dt76- Ane, KANON KB’, M7 ékeivar KAnpikoig peta Oavatov tod idiov éntoxdzov, oe \ Lg — ee oo - Ss is * ~ OiapTacey 7a Olabépovta aitd Tpdyuwata, KalOc Kai Totc Tada Kavoow* annyopevtar* 7) Tove TodTO ToLOdYTAaC, KLVdV- vevety Trepl Tove idlove BaOwove. KANON KIY. 7 5 “A ’ Ny = pays , e , HAGev sig ta¢ akoac Tij¢ dyiac ovvddov, WE KAnpLKoi TLVEC Kai povacovtec, pundév eykeyetptonsvoe bud tod idiov ém- oxoTov, éoTe O° UTE Kal GkoLYMVNTOL yEvouenot Tap’ av-= Tod, KaTaAauBavovtes Tijv Bacidevovoay KwvoravtiwovrodA, by Pale si N ’ 9) ies Ee, e* Pe. ’ poe I éme TOAD év ait dtatpiBovor, Tapaydc éewrovodyrec, kai OopvBovdvteg tiv ekKAnovaoTiKRY = KaTdoTaOLY, dva- Tpémovat Te olKovg TWoY. “Qpitoe Toivuy 7 dyia oivo- doc, Tovg ToLovTove brompvijoKecOar piv TpOTEpov dia TOd Exdikov Ti¢ KaTd KwvoravtiwovroA dywrdrne enkAnoiac ent TO &&eADeiv tie Baotdevovonc TéAewe* ei J& ToI¢ adrtoic TMpayuacy eriévoev avaoyvvTodvTec, Kal aKkovtac adtodc Oia tod abtod exdixov exBaAAccOat, Kal tobe IWiove Kata- AauBavety Torove. * The common reading, followed by the Greeks, is kat rots TrapadauBavovow, & phrase which is exceedingly obscure, and variously interpreted. I have therefore pre- ferred in this instance to leave the text of the Syntagma and follow that of Beveridge which gives a clear sense, and is not without authority of MSS. OF CHALCEDON. 187 cepted, who have been driven by necessity from their cwn country, and have therefore taken refuge in another Church. And if, after this decree, any Bishop shall receive a Clergyman belonging to another Bishop, it is decreed that both the receiver and the received shall be suspended until such time as the Clergyman who has removed shall have returned to his own Church. CANON XXI. Clergymen and laymen bringing charges against Bishops and Clergymen are not to be received loosely and without examination, as accusers, but their own character shall first be investigated. CANON XXII. It is not lawful for Clergymen, after the death of their Bishop, to seize what belongs to him, as has been forbidden even by the ancient Canons ; and those who do so shall be in danger of degradation from their own rank. CANON XXIII. It has come to the hearing of the Holy Synod tuat certain Clergymen and Monks, having no authority from their own Bishop, and perhaps, indeed, under sentence of excommuni- cation by him, betake themselves to the imperial City of Con- stantinople, and remain there for a long time, raising dis- turbances and troubling the ecclesiastical state, and turning men’s houses upside down. Therefore the Holy Synod de- crees that such persons be first notified by the Advocate of the most holy Church of Constantinople to depart from the imperial City ; and if they shall shamelessly continue in the same practices, that they shall be expelled by the same Advocate even against their will, and [so] return to their own places. 188 CANONS KANQN KA’, = e ees ‘ ne = pee} ¢ > 4 Ta amas kaiepwhevta jovacripla, KaTa yvounv eTtoKo- Tov, pisvelv ei¢ 70 dunvEeKtg¢ provaoTipla, Kal Ta avijKOVTA avtoi¢ Tpadywata pvaAartecOa, Kai jpinkéte yivecOar TavTa KOOWKa KaTAaywWylu4* TovC O> OVyYwWpotVYTAaG TOTO yivecbaL, broKeloOat TOig EK TOV KaVvOVvwY ETULTYLLOLC. KANQN KE’, "Ered Tép TivEC TOV [LNTpOTOALTOY, WC TEplNYHOnUEV, GuE- El) TED S [7 po QV, WO TEPLNXNONMEY, alt Aovar TOV eyKEXELPLOMEVYWY advToIG TOILViwY, Kal avaBaddovTat x ‘ ~ 3 a 5 ” - AMS e yf. / . aS TaCG YElpoToviagc TOY ETLOKOTWY* Edo0ke TH Ayla ovvddw, EVTOG TpLaVv pyVvav yivecBal Tac YElpoToviag TOV éETLOKOTOW, el pN- TOTE apa anapaitntoc avayKy TapacKevdoot eTiTabijvar TOV Tij¢ avaBoAjce xpovov, Ei 62 wi tovTo Toijoot, bToKEtoOat abtov éxKAnotaoriKoic émetysiowc. Tyv psy tot mpdcodov tHe ynpsvovonc &KkkAnsiac, OWaYv Tapa TH oikOVvO"w TiC avTiG eEK- kAnoiag pvAattecba. KANQN ic, ’"Errerd) 6év teow Ex Anotacc, wo TepinynOnuev, diya olkovouwv of énioxomoe Ta ExkKANOLaOTLKa YyeELpicovot mpadyuwata, tdofe mdoav éxKAqziavy éniokorov éyovoar, Kal oikovojov éyev &k Tov idiov KArpov, oikovopovvTa Ta ékKANOLaOTLKG «KaTad §=yvounv tov idiov émtoKoTrov’ Gore fq) apaptvpov etvat tiv olKovomiay Tig éxKAn- giac,’ Kal te TovTov oKoptigecba: ta avTii¢ mTpdadypara, kai AowWopiav «ti igpwovvn §=mpootpiBecbars ei 08 pq TOUTO TOLHOOL, UTOKELCOaL avTOV ToIC Oeiote KavoOLY, KANON KZ’, Tove apnagovracg yvvainag én’ dvoéuate ovvotkeciov, 7) ovp- MpatTovtac, 7) ovvalpouévovce Tol¢ apTragovaty, Wplioev 7 ayia ovvodoc, ei mev KAnpiKoi eiev, éxrintery Tod idiov BaOuov: ei 62 Aaixol, avabenatigecOat. OF CHALCEDON. 189 CANON XXIV. Monasteries, which have once been consecrated with the consent of the Bishop, shall remain Monasteries for ever, and the property belonging to them shall be preserved, and they shall never again become secular dwellings. And they who shall permit this to be done shall be subjected to ecclesiastical penalties. CANON XXvV. Forasmuch as certain of the Metropolitans, as we have heard, neglect the flocks committed to them, and delay the ordinations of the Bishops, the Holy Synod decrees that the ordinations of the Bishops shall take place within three months, unless an inevitable necessity should some time re- quire the term of delay to be prolonged. And if the [Metro- politan] shall not do this, he shall be liable to ecclesiastical penalties. And the income of the widowed Church shall be kept safe by the Steward of the same Church. CANON XXVI. Forasmuch as we have heard that in certain Churches the Bishops manage the Church business without Stewards, it is decreed that every Church having a Bishop shall have also a Steward among its own Clergy, who shall manage the Church business under the sanction of his own Bishop ; that so the administration of the Church may not be without a witness ; and that thus the goods of the Church may not be squan- dered, nor reproach be brought upon the Priesthood ; and if [the Bishop] will not do this, he shall be subjected to the Divine Canons. CANON XXVILI. The Holy Synod decrees that those who forcibly carry off women, [even] under pretence of marriage, and the aiders or abettors of such ravishers, shall be degraded, if Clergymen, and if laymen, anathematized. 190 CANONS FHOOS rij¢ attic dyiag ovvédov, éxpwrvnfeioa ydpiy TOV mpeoBelwv tod Opdvov tie dywwrdty¢ eKk 7) ~ THTOC, Kal EBéAOLEY TAEOV TL dLddvaL, 7 GadpalpEety, En’ avTOIC elvat THY &Eovoiar, KANON I”. Todc detyovtac Kat ovdAdAndbévtac, 7 id oikeiwy Tapa- do0évrac, 7) dAdwo ta brdpyovta adaipebEvtac, 7 wvT0- peivavracg Bacdvovc, 7 sig Seopwrhpiov éuBAnBévtac, Bowvtdc te, Ort elot Xpsoriavol, kat teproyobévtac, 7 TL sig Ta¢ xeipag mpoc Biav tuBadAdvtwy TOV BLagopévwvy 7 Bpaud TL Tpoe avdyKnv dekapévove, buodoyotvrac dé dL6Aov OTL clot Xptotiavol, Kai 7d mévP0¢ Tov ovuBdvTo¢ del émt- OELKVUMLEVOLG TH Tdon KaTaOTOA Kal TH OXHWaTL, Kal TH Tov Biov tamewédrntl, TobTove, wc &£w duaptiuato¢g dvtac, CANONS sO ANGCY RA: CANON I. It is decreed that Presbyters who have offered sacrifices and afterwards returned to the conflict, not with hypocrisy, but in sincerity, may retain the honour of their chair; provided they had not used management, arrangement, or persuasion, so as to appear to be subjected to the torture, when it was [in fact] applied only in-seeming and pretence. Nevertheless it is not lawful for them to make the Oblation, nor to preach, nor to serve in any ministry whatever of the priestly offices. CANON IL. It is likewise decreed that Deacons who have sacrificed and afterwards resumed the conflict, shall abstain from every sacred ministry, neither bringing in the bread and the cup, nor making proclamations ; yet they may enjoy their other honours. Nevertheless, if any of the Bishops shall observe in them distress of mind and meek humiliation, it shall be lawful to the Bishops to grant more indulgence, or [if otherwise] to take away (what has been granted]. CANON III. Those who have fled and been apprehended, or have been betrayed by their servants; or otherwise, those who have been despoiled of their goods, or have endured tortures, or have been imprisoned and abused, declaring themselves to be Christians ; or who have been forced to receive something which their persecutors violently thrust into their hands, or meat [offered to idols], continually professing that they were Christians ; and who, by their whole apparel, and demeanour, and humility of life, always give evidence of grief at what has happened ; these persons, inasmuch as they are free from sin 200 CANONS THS KoLvwviag ju) KwAtEecOaL* el J& Kal EkwdAtOnoav br Tivoc, TEploootépac akpiBeiac Evexev, 7 Kal TIVwY ayvola, ? 4 ~ ~ ‘ [! / 9 7 ~ , ~ EvOvg mpoodeyOyvat. Tovto dé oOmoiwo Ent TE THY EK TOD KAnpov Kal TOV dAAwy Aaikov. TUpoosentdoOn d& kaetvo, ei OvvavTat Kat Aaixol, TH abt avdyKy bromEecbvTEc, Tpod- a} 2 ashes 1 es) cS, a . 2 e “ e yeoOa sic tasty: édogev ovv Kal tovTove, wo pndev Tuap- THKOTAC, el Kal % TpodaBovoa stpioxotto 6p0% Tov Biov TOALT Ela, TpOVELpiGecOat. KANON A’, Ilepi tv mpd¢g Biav Ovoavtwy, tm dé TovTOLG Kal THY OetvqoavTwy Eig Ta E10WAa, boot pev aTrayouevot, Kal oynuate padpotépw avijAPov, Kai éoOA7t eyphoavto ToAv= TEAEGTEPA, Kal PeETEGYOVY TOU TapacKevacbEvTog deEiTVOV bd / »” > ‘ > ~ e ~ > 7 adtadopwc, édogev, éviavToy aKpodobat, wimoreceiv dé Tpla évn, evdyij¢ d& povycg Kowvwrijoat étn Ovo, Kat tote éAOEiv éml 70 TEAELOY, KANON E’, “Ooot d& avijAOov peta eobijtog TeEvOuKijc, Kal avare- aovreg e&payov, petasd Ot’ bANG Tij¢ avakAicewco OaKpvov- Tec, ef éTAjpwoayv Tov TiC UTOTT@OEWS TPLETT YpOvory, ywple mpoapopac dexOjtwoav' ei d& pu Epayov, dvo wtro- mesovtec etn, TO TplT® KOLYWYYCAdTWoAaV ETEL YwpiC TpO- opopic, iva Td Tédeov TH TEeTpastia AdBwor, Tov¢o dé émiakoTove esovoiav eyev Tov TpoTOV Tice éemloTpopic Soxyuaoavrac, didaavOpwrevecOa, i TAEiova mpoorLOEvat yoovov, Ipod mavtwv dé, kai 6 Tpodywy ioc, Kai 6 weTa Tadta, eeTaléoOw, Kal ovtwo 4 PiAavOpwria émpme- Tpelo0w, KANQN o”. Ilept Tay area =povov— eigavTwv = KoAdoewr, ~—kal apaipfoewe §=brapyovTwv, 7) peTouKiac, Kal OvodvTwy, kal wexpl Tod Tapdvtog Kalpod pq peTavonodyTwy, punde eTtl= otpepdvtTwy, viv dé Tapa Tov Kalpov Tij¢ ovvoedov ORANG Y RA. 201 [in this respect], are not to be repelled from the Communion ; and if, through an extreme severity or ignorance of some things, they have been repelled, let them forthwith be re- admitted. This shall hold good alike of Clergy and laity. Tt has also been considered whetier laymen who have fallen under the same compulsion may be promoted to the Clergy, and we have decreed that, since they have in no respect been guilty, they may be ordained ; provided their past course of life be found to have been upright. CANON IV. Concerning those who have been forced to sacrifice, but who, in addition, have partaken of feasts in honour of the idols ; as many as were haled away, but afterwards went up with a cheerful countenance, and wore their costliest apparel, and partook with indifference of the feast provided ; it is de- creed that these be hearers one year, and prostrators three years, and communicants in prayers [7. e., co-standers] two years, and then return to full Communion. CANON V. As many, however, as went up in mourning attire and fell down and ate, weeping throughout the whole entertainment ; if they have fulfilled the three years as prostrators, let them be received without the Oblation [%. e. as co-standers] ; and if they did not eat, let them be prostrators two years, and in the third year let them communicate without the Oblation [1. e., as co-standers] ; so that in the fourth year they may receive the full Communion. But the Bishops have the right, after considering the character of their conversion, either to deal with them more leniently, or to extend the time. But, first of all, let their life before and since be thoroughly examined, and let the indulgence be determined accordingly. CANON VI. Concerning those who yielded merely upon threat of pen- alties and of the confiscation of their goods, or of banishment, and sacrificed; and who till this present time have not repented, nor been converted, but who now, at the time of 202 CANONS mposeADovtwyv, Kal gic dlavorav Tice émoTtpopig yevo= wévov, edoge péexpe Tie peydanc juépac sic dKxpdaow OexGijvar, Kal peta THY jeyaAnv quepav sbroteceiv Tpia etn, Kai peTa Gada Ovo etn KoLvwrijca, xYapic Tpo- obopic, Kal ovtwco eAOeiv emi TO TédELOV, BoTe TY Taoav éfaetiuv TAnp@oat, Ei dé tives mpd tHe ovvddov Tav- tno edéyOnoav eic juetavowav, an’ éxelvov Tod ypdvov AehoyicOat avtoig tiv apyny tie éeSaetiac. Fi uév Tet Kivdvvog kai Oavdtov tpocdonia é&k védcov, 7 GdAjnc Tlvd¢ Tpoddcewo ovuBain, TovTove emi bpw dEx- Ojvat, KANON Z/. ; Tlept t&v ovvectiabfévtwy fv eOvini Eopti, év Té6TW adw- piouevay toic eOviKoic, idta Bpwpata erixomioapévwr, Kat goayovtwrv, dose dietiav wrotmecdvtac dexOijvar* Oo dé, ei Xp) fleTa TIC mMpoopopdc Exaotov, TaVv enoKéTwY éoti dokiyuaoat, Kai tov dAdAov PBiov ed’ éxdotov é&e- TaOal. KANON Hi’. Cv OL d& devtEepov Kai tpitov Ovcavtec peta PBiac, Te- Tpaetiav wroreséTwoav, dvo de én xXwpic Tpoomopdac KOLVOVHTATWOAY, Kal TH EBDOUM TEAsing SeYOiTwWoar. KANQN 6’, “Ooor d& py povov anéotnoav, GAda Kai éeravéornoar, kat qvaykaoav ddcAdov¢e, Kai alti keyévovto Tod avayKa- oOijvar, ovto én pev Ttpla, Tov Tie akpodoewce deEaoOw- s . . ” fe , x aw e ed A cav toTov, tv d& ddAdn éekaetia TOV Tie tbroTTHOEWS 2 tAAov. O& eviavTo” VWVITATWOAV pic mpoodopac, tva arA0 & evlavi KOLVWVHOATWOAV = VWpl Tpoomopac, tb “ , 4 ~ va 4 5 3 THhYv OekaeTiavy TAnpwoavtec, Tod TEAElov pETdoyworv' eV A ” Wév TOL TOUTW TH NPOVW, Kail TOY GAAov aitav éeniTNpEI- bat Biov, OF ANCY RA. 203 this Synod, have conceived a purpose of conversion, it is de- creed that they be received as hearers till the Great Day [of Easter], and that after the Great Day they be prostrators for three years, and for two years more communicate without the Oblation [7. e., as co-standers], and then come to the full com- munion, so as to complete the period of six full years. And if any have been admitted to penance before this Synod, let the beginning of the six years be reckoned to them from that time. Nevertheless, if there should be any danger or prospect of death, whether from disease or any other cause, let them be received, but under limitation [7. e., so long as the danger of death continues]. CANON VII. Concerning those who have partaken at a heathen feast in a place appointed for heathens, but who have brought and eaten their own meats, it is decreed that they be received after they have been prostrators two years ; but whether to the Oblation, every Bishop must determine after he has made examination into the rest of their life. CANON VIII. Let those who have twice or thrice sacrificed under com- pulsion, be prostrators four years, and communicate with- out the Oblation [7. e., as co-standers] two years, and in the seventh year they shall be received to full Communion. CANON IX. As many as have not merely apostatized, but have risen against their brethren and forced them [to apostatize], and have been guilty of their being forced; let these for three years take the place of hearing, and for another term of six years that of prostration, and for another year let them com- municate without the Oblation [7. e., as co-standers]; in order that, when they have fulfilled the space of ten years, they may partake of the Communion ; but during this time the rest of their life must also be enquired into. 204 CANONS KANQN I’, Atdkovot, 600 KabioravTa, Tap’ avtivy THY KaTdoTaow el éuaptipavto Kal &pacav xXpijvat yapioat, py Ovvdpevor OUTw pévElv, OUTOL PETA TATA yaptoayTEc, EoTWOAY EV TH imnpecia, Ola TO emitpanivat adbtoig bmd Tov éemtoKdToOV. Tovro od&, ef TiVvEeg oLwTioavTes, Kal KaTadesduevor EV TH yelpotovia péverv obtw, peTa Tavta HAOov én yduov, TeE- mavo0a avtod¢s Tij¢ dltakoviac. KANON IA’, ‘ La a 4 x ~ e \ »” Tac pvyorevOeioag Kopac, Kal peta TavTa vTO addwV aptayeioac, eédokev atrodidoc0at Toi¢ TmpouvynoTevoamévoic, Est p p) 5 | ? kat Biav bn’ abtav mdbotev. KANQN IB’. Tove mpd tov Bantiowatoc teOvKdTac, Kal peTa TadTa Bantiobévtac, éeédokev eic tasty mpodyecbai, @¢o atodov- oaméevove. KANQN II". Xwpetvokdroic* pi eSeivat tmpsoBvtépovg 7 Stakdvove yeEt- potovety, dada pny pundé mpecButépovge TOAEWC, Ywpic Tov émitparivat vm7d Tov éemloKéTOV pETa ypaypdtwr, ev éETépa TapolKia, KANQN IA’, Tov¢ év KAtpw mpsoBvtépove 7 dtakdvove dvtac, aTexvoué- ~ a) fe ’ s vA ’ a vove Kpedv, edokev EpartecOa, Kal ovTwco, Ei BovAaLYTO, Kpa- ~ t ~ ’ y 7 {. e a ‘\ a ~ Tely éavTav: ef O& et) BotAovTo, wo nde Ta [ETA KpEOV BadAdopeva Adyava éoOiev, kat ei poy bTElKoLEY TH Kavore, meTavo0at avrove Tig TazEws. * The common reading is xwpemtiexomous, Which makes the Canon wholly unintel- ligible. OW "ANCYRA. 205 CANON X. They who have been made Deacons, declaring when they were ordained that they must marry, because they were not able to abide so, and who afterwards have married, shall con- tinue in their ministry, because it was conceded to them by the Bishop. But if any were silent on this matter, under- taking at their ordination to abide [as they were], and after- wards proceeded to marriage, these shall cease from the deaconate. CANON XI. Tt is decreed that virgins who have been betrothed, and who have afterwards been carried off by others, shall be restored to those to whom they had formerly been betrothed, even though they may have suffered violence from the ravisher CANON XII. It is decreed that they who have offered sacrifice before their Baptism, and were afterwards baptized, may be promoted to the Ciergy, inasmuch as they have washed away [their sins]. CANON XIII. It is not lawful for Chorepiscopi to ordain Presbyters or Deacons in another Parish, nor, most assuredly, Presbyters of a City, without the commission of the Bishop given in writing.* CANON XIV. It is decreed that among the Clergy, Presbyters and Deacons who abstain from fiesh shall taste of it, and after- wards, if they shall so please, may abstain. But if they shall refuse, and will not even eat herbs served with flesh, but dis- obey the Canon, let them be removed from their order. * This Canon is not easily understood on account of the last three words, év érépa mapoxia, If, as some haye thought. these words are an interpolation, the Canon would prove that with the written consent of the Bishop a Chorepiscopus might ordain even a City Presbyter of the Parish to which he himself belonged. If they are part of the original text, as seems to be the case, the Canon shows that in any other Parish than that to which he belonged a Chorepiscopus might ordain even a City Presbyter, pro- vided he had the Bishop’s consent in writing ; but that in his own Parish the written document was not held to be necessary. In either case the ordaining power of the Chorepiscopi referred to is evident; in other words it is clear that they were true Bishops as to their Orders, though they were not possessed of local jurisdiction. 206 CANONS IANGN, TE. Tlept 7Ov dtadepovtwyv TH Kupiand, 60a émtoKxdtov un Ovrog mpeoBirepoe EmwWAnoav, avaKadeiobat TO Kuptaxor, "Ev d& tq Kpioe. tod émioKdToV eivat, EimEp TpootKEL aTro- AaBeiv tiv Tyinv, eite Kat jun, Oia TO TOAAdKLG THY T™pdc0= dov TOV TEetpauévwv atrodedwKévat avtoi¢ tovtog TAéEtova THY TLLAY. KANON Ie’, ~ ] Ilept tHv ddoyevoapévwr, 7} Kat aAoyevowévov, boot mpiy eikooaeTeig yevéoba, muaptov, mévte Kal O&Ka ETEOLY DTTO- TEGOVTEG, KOLVWViag TLYYAVETWOaY TiC El¢ TAC TpodEvYdC* eita év TH Kotvwvia dtatedgoavtes ETH TEVTE, TOTE Kal TIC mpoooopac idantécOwoav. "KéetagéoOw dé avtTav Kai O tv tH btomT@ce Bioc, Kal o'TwW TvyYaVETWOaAY Tij¢ dLAav- Opwriac. Ei dé tive Kataképwo ev Tog awapThuact yeyovaot, Thy pakpav éyétwoav trdntwoww. “Ooor d& wiTepBdvteg tiv qAikiav TavTHY, Kal yvvaikag ExovTEG TEPLTETTHKAOL TO duap- THUATL, TEVTE Kal Eikooty ETEOLY VTOTEGOYTEC, KOLVWViaC TLYy- yavétwoav Tic Eig TaG TpooEevydc’ EitTa eKTEAECAYTEG TEVTE ETN EV TH KOLYWLia TAY ELYOV, TLYKAVETWOAY TIC Tpoomopac. Ei 0€ tiveg Kai yuvaikacg éxyovrec, Kai vTEpBdvtec TOY TEVTH- KOVTaETH XpOvov Huaprov, ent tH &&6dw Tov Biov TvyxavéTwn oav Ti¢ KoLvoviac. KANQN IZ, “ pats) , “ ” ” 7 Tove. daoyevoauévovg Kat Aetpodo Ovtac, Tot AeETpw- cavtac, TobTove mpooétakev 1) dyia otvodoc, Eig Tov NEI- peagouevove evyecba. KANON IH’, , Ei tivec érioxonot Kataorabévtec, kal pt) dexOévtec oT THC Tapotkiag exelvync, el¢ iv wvoudoOnoav, étépatc Bobsowro mapotkiatc émtévat, Kal BidfecOat Ttodvc KabeoTa- Tac, Kal oTdoelg Kiveiv Karz’ abtov, TodTOVe adopicedBat. "Eav pévtor BovAovro eic TO mpecBuréptov KabéfeoOa, évOa qoav TmpoTEpov TpEGBUTEpL, fui) aTOBdAAECOaL adtod¢ THC OF ANCYRA. 207 CANON XV. Concerning things belonging to the Church, which Pres- byters may have sold when there was no Bishop, it is decreed that the Church property shall be reclaimed ; and it shall be in the discretion of the Bishop whether it is better to receive the purchase price, or not; for oftentimes the revenue of the things sold might yield them the greater value. CANON XVI. Let those who have been or who are guilty of bestial lusts, if they have sinned while under twenty years of age, be prostrators fifteen years, and communicate in prayers [1. e,, be co-standers] ; then, having passed five years in this Com- munion, let them be partakers also of the Oblation. But iet their life as prostrators be examined, and so let them receive indulgence ; and if any have been more insatiable in their crimes, then let their time of prostration be prolonged. And if any who have passed this age and had wives, have fallen into this sin, let them be prostrators twenty-five years, and then communicate in prayers [7. e., as co-standers]; and, after they have been five years in the Communion of prayers, let them partake of the Oblation. And if any married men of more than fifty years of age have so sinned, let them be ad- mitted to Communion only at the point of death. CANON XVII. Defilers of themselves with beasts, who are also leprous, that is, who-have infected others [with the leprosy of this crime], the holy Synod commands te pray among the Hie- mantes. CANON XVIII. If any who have been constituted Bishops, but have not been received by the Parish to which they were designated, shall invade other Parishes and wrong the constituted [Bishops] there, stirring up seditions against them, let such persons be suspended. But if they are willing to accept a seat among the Presbyterate, where they formerly were Pres- 208 CANONS Tyg: = eav d& Staoracidgwor mpo¢ Tove Kabeatarac Exet émlakoTove, adatpeiobar abtovg Kal THY TyLiy Tov TpEoBv- tepiov. kat ylvecOat avtov¢ eKknptKrove. ; KANQN I60’. “Ooot tapbeviav énayyeAdouevol, abetrovor THY émay- yediav, Tov TOV dtyauwv pov éextAnpottwoav. Tac pév- ToL ovvepyouévac trapbévovg Ttioiv wo adEeAdacg éKwdAt- caper. KANQN K’, "Eav rivog yuvy powyevOq, 7] poryevon tic, év énta éteot Osi avTov Tov Tedeiov TVYELV, KaTa Tov¢ PBabuod¢s TOvG Tpodyovrac. KANQN KA’ Ilept TOY yvvatkov Tov eExTOopvevovodyvy Kat davatpov- ov Ta yevvaueva, Kal oTovdagovodv Pidpia Toteiv, 6 piv mpdtepdc Opog péxpic éSddov éx@dAvoe, kai TobTw ovytibevTa, PiravOpwrdrepov dé TL EvpdvTEC, WpioauEV OekaeTh Ypdvov, Kata toro PBabuode Tove wpLomévove TANpW@Oal. KANQN KB". Ilepi Exovoiwy ddvwv, vromunTéTWoaY pév, TOV dé TE- Asiov év 7G) Tédet TOW Biov Katakotcbwoar, KANQN KI”. *Enl akovoiwv ddvwr, 6 piv mpdtepoc bpog ev én- taevia Kedever Tov TeAeiov petacyeiv Kata TOdG wpLo"é- vove PaOuovc: 6 O& detbrEpoc, TOY TMEVTaETH xXpOvoY TAN- pacar. KANQN KA’, Oi Katapavrevonevor, Kat rato ovvneiac Tov - Over eEakodovbovvrec, 7 elodyovtéc tivac ele tote éavtov oikovg émi avevpéoer apwaxery, 7) Kat KaOdpost, brd Tov OF ANCYRA. 209 byters, let them not be deprived of that honour. And if they shall act seditiously against the Bishops constituted there, the honour of the Presbyterate also shall be taken from them and themselves expelled. CANON XIX. If any persons who profess Virginity shall disregard their profession, let them fulfil the term of digamists. And, more- over, we prohibit women who are Virgins from living with men as sisters. CANON XX. An adulteress or an adulterer shall be restored to full communion after seven years passed in the previous degrees [of penance]. CANON XXI. Concerning women who commit fornication, and destroy that which they have conceived, or who are employed in making drugs for abortion, the former decree excluded them until the hour of death, and by this they are bound. Never- theless, being desirous to use somewhat greater lenity, we have ordained that they fulfil ten years [of penance], accord- ing to the established degrees. CANON XXII. Concerning wilful murderers, let them remain prostrators; but at the end of life let them be indulged with full Com- munion. CANON XXIJIL Concerning involuntary homicides, the former decree di- rects that they be received to full Communion after seven years [of penance], according to the established degrees ; but this second, that they fulfil a term of five years. CANON XXIV. They who practice divination, and follow the customs of the heathen, or who take men to their houses for the invention of sorceries, or for lustrations, shall fall under the Canon of 210 CANONS kavova minTéTwWoaY THC TEVTaETiac, KaTa TOvG PBaOuodc Tod¢ wplouévovc, Tpia én iToTTeOEWC, Kal OVO éTH EvXAC, Xwpic mpoopopac. KANQN KE’, Mvycrevaduevoc tig KOpnv, tpocebOdpn TH adEAdi avTijc, Oc Kal émipopéoae advthiv: eynue O& THY puvynoTyY peta Tavita, 7 O& @Oapsioa annhygato* of ovveddteg éxkEeded- aOnoav év Oekaetia deyOjvat sig TOdvg OUVYEOTHTAG KATA TOG wpianérave Babuove. Oe AN CY RA: 211 five years [penance], according to the established degrees ; that is, three years as prostrators, and two years of prayer without the Oblation [7. e., as co-standers]. CANON XXYV. One who had betrothed a maider, corrupted her sister, so that she conceived. After that he married his betrothed, but she who had been corrupted hanged herself. The parties to this affair were ordered to be received among the co-standers, after ten years [of penance], according to the established degrees. HC ASIN GSN ae THD HN? NEOKAIZ APE LA 2 NOAO KANQN A’, IIpeoBvrepog eav yun, tie Tagewo avtov peratibecBar* idem \ 4 AN if I< ~ > x >t éav O& Topvevon, 7) worxevon, eSwbeioOar avtov téA€ov, Kal ayeoOat ei¢ petavolay, KANON B’. Turvy, éav yiunrat dvo adeAdoic, &wOeicOw pwéxypt Oa- vatouv' TAny év 7T@ Oavatw dia tiv dtAavOpwriav Eitovoa, ac vyladvaca Avoe Tov yapov, Ee tiv petavorav, ‘Eav x 4 ¢ \ 7 4 4 7 ” ’ XN dé TEAEVvTIOH yur éV TOLOVT@ Ya"w OVvGA, 7TOL O avap, OvoxEpygs TH pelvavTe 7H peTavora, KANQN I”, Ilept TOV TAsioToLG yamolg TepiTUTTOVTWY 6 [Mev YpovOC cadijc 6 wptopévoc, 4 d& avaotpody Kai 1) Tiott¢ adtéy ovyvrTéuvel TOV YpOvor, KANQN A’, "Edv = mpoOnrai tic, émiOvujoac yvvatkoc, ovykabevdijoat wer’? abric, ui &20n d& sic épyov avtod 4 évOvunorc, patverat OTL UTO THC YaplTog éppvobn. KANQN E’, = , AS > , a} X ’ ~ ~ Kartnyovpevoc, tav eioepyouevoc eic Kuptanov, év tH TOV KaTnyouévwy Take OTHKy, OvTOG d& duapTary, tav péev yovv 7,7 BJ 4 (et e 4 e Aes IN ‘5 ’ “2 KAivoOr, akpodsOw nkéTe duaptavwv* éav O& Kal akpowpevoc ére duaptavy, e&wOeicw, CANONS OF NEO-CASAREA. CANON I. If a Presbyter marry, let him be removed from his Order : but if he commit fornication [being single], or adultery [being married], let him be altogether cast out and brought to penance. CANON II. If a woman shall have married two brothers, let her be cast out until her death. Nevertheless, at the hour of death she shall be received to penance, provided she declare that she will break the marriage, if she should recover. But if the woman or her husband die in such a marriage, the penance of the survivor shall be severe. CANON III. Concerning those who fall into many marriages, the ap- pointed time of penance is well known ; but their amendment and faith shortens the time. CANON IV. Tf any man lusting after a woman purposes to lie with her, and his design does not come to effect, it is evident that he has been saved by grace. CANON V. If a Catechumen coming into the Church have taken his place in the order of Catechumens and fall into sin, then let him, if he be a kneeler and forsake his sin, become a hearer ; but if he commit sin while he is a hearer, let him be cast out. 214 CANONS KANQN ¢’, 4 T.— ~ rae , , . Ilepi xvodopovonc, tt dei gwricecbar, dmore PBovdAeTa obdtv yap &v TOUT® KOLYWYEr 7 TiKTOVOa TO TIKTOUSY@" dia TO éxadortov idiav Tv Tpoaipecty THY emi TH duodo- yia deikvvoba. KANQN Z?!, IIpeoBitepov ei¢ yajtovg dvyamovvtwy pun éottdoBut* émei pieTavotav aitovvtog Tov diyduov, tig gota 6 TpEO- BotEpoc, 6 dia THe EoTLdoEwo GvyKaTaTLBéuEvog Tog yapwotc ; AN QIN EL, Tuva tivoc pouyevOeioa Aaixod ovtoc, sav édAeyxOy da- vepoc, 6 toLlovtoc sic wnpeciav éADetv od dvvata, "Kav dé Kal peta TY xElpoToviav poryEevOH, OdeidAer arrodAvoat aiznv: éav d& oveq, ob dvvata EyecOar tig éyxetproOsionc av7@ vmnpeciac, KANQN 0’. IIpeoBvtepoc, av Tponuaptnxa¢ owpate tpoayOp, Kai duodoynon, OTe ijpapTe mpd Tie xYElpotoviac, 7 Tpoc- gepétw, pévwv é&v Toi¢ Aoroic, did Tijv aAAnv oTov- Ojv' Ta yap AoiTta apuaptipata eépacav ot ToAAoL Kai thy yetpoleoiay ddiévat, “Eav 0& abtoc pr buodoyh, éAeyyOij- vai d& pavepas py OvvnOp, én’ abt@ éExelvw Toreicbar THY é£ovaiav. KANQN I’, ‘Ouoiwe Kai didKovoc, édv TH aitd duapthwat« trepiTréon, THY TOU UTNpETOV TasLY EVETW, KANQN IA’. IIpeoBvrepoc mpd TOV tpldKkovta etdY uy NELpoTOVeEtoOa), éav kal ravv @ 6 dvOpwrocg d&oc, adAAad arornpeicOw. ‘O x / , ~ b] ~ ~ ” ? 4 yap Kuptoc “Inooic Xpiatd¢ év TH tplakoora éEter eBarzicOn, kai ipsato OwdoKerv, OF NEO-CHSAREA, 215 CANON VI. Concerning a woman with child, it is determined that she ought to be baptized whensoever she will; for in this the woman communicates nothing to the child, since the bringing forward to profession is evidently the individual [privilege] of every single person. CANON VIL. A Presbyter shall not be a guest at the nuptials of persons contracting a second marriage ; for, if the digamist is worthy of penance, what shall the Presbyter be, who, on account of the feast, sanctions the marriage ? CANON VIII. If the wife of a layman has committed adultery and been clearly convicted, such [a husband] cannot enter the Minis- try ; and if she commit adultery after his ordination, he must put her away ; but if he retain her, he can have no part in the Ministry committed to him. CANON IX. A Presbyter who has been promoted after having com- mitted bodily sin, and who shall confess that he had sinned before his ordination, shall not make the Oblation, though he may remain in his other functions on account of his diligence in other respects ; for the majority have affirmed that ordina- tion remits past sins. But if he do not confess and cannot be openly convicted, the decision shall depend upon himself. CANON X. Likewise, if a Deacon have fallen into the same sin, let him have the rank of a Sub-deacon. CANON XI. Let not a Presbyter be ordained before he is thirty years of age, even though he be in all respects a worthy man, but let him be made to wait. For our Lorp Jesus Curist was baptized and began to teach in his thirtieth year. 216 CANONS KANQN IB’, ’Eav voodv tic dwttcbj, sic mpeoButépiov dyecOa ov dvvatar* ovK &k& Tpoaplcewo yap 7 TlaTI¢ avTov, GAA’ é& dvayknco’ ein Taya Ola THY pETa TAavTAa avTOd oOTOVOTY Kal mioTlVv, Kal Ola OTTaVLVY avOpwTwr, KANQN IT", "Emtywptoe mpeoBvrepoar év Ta Kvupiaka rtij¢ TOAEwo Tpoo= pepelv ov dvvavtat, mTapovtog énloKOTOV, 1 TpEeoBuTEpwY TOAEWC* OvTE funy aptov OLddvar év Eby, ovdé ToTHpLOV* éav 02 amd@ot, Kai cig ebyny KANO povoc, didwour. KANQN IA’, e ~ 7 3 ‘ ‘ , mi ~ e 4 e Oi 6& YwpEeTtioxorol, cict péev sig TUTOY TOV EBOoUTKOVTA w¢ 0& ovAdEtToUpyoi, dia TIVY OToVvOnY TIY Eig TOG TTWYOLE TpooPspovar TLLWPEVOL, KANQN IE’. Aldkovo. émTa O@eidovoly sivat KaTa TdY Kavova, KdV Tmavu eyaAn ym TOALG* levaOeion O& and tHe BiBAoV Tév IIpagewr, OF NEO-CASAREA, 217 CANON XII. If any one be baptized when he is sick, forasmuch as his [profession of] faith was not of voluntary purpose, but of necessity, he cannot be promoted to the Presbyterate, unless on account of his subsequent zeal and faithfulness, or because of lack of men. CANON XIII. Country Presbyters may not make the Oblation in the Church of the City when the Bishop or Presbyters of the City are present ; nor may they give the Bread or the Cup with prayer. If, however, they be absent, and he [i. e., a country Presbyter] alone be called to prayer, he may give them. CANON XIV. The Chorepiscopi, however, are indeed after the pattern of the Seventy ; nevertheless they offer [7. e., in the City Church and in presence of the Bishop: vid. Can. XIII.], being fellow- servants, honoured on account of their devotion to the poor. CANON XV. The Deacons ought to be seven in number, according to _ the Canon, even if the City be great. Of this you will be per- suaded from the Book of Acts. THD ’EN TAITPA SYNOAOY WHIT ONG SY NOAA Kuptog Tyuwtatog év Apevia ovdAdecrovpyoic, Evoé- Bioc, Aidsavoc, Ebyévoc, ’OAvuruoc, Bibviikd¢, Tpnyoproe, @idnroc, Uarmoc, EvAddvoc, “Yratvoc, Upoatpéotoc, BaotAetoc, Baoooc, 0} avvedOovteg ei¢ tiv Kata Tayypav ayiav ovvodov, tv Kuplw yaipecy, "Exe.dy) ovvedAOovoa 1) aylwwrTatn ovvodog TOV étloKO= Tmwv év Th Kata Tadyypav éxxdAnoia dud tivac éKxkAnota- orTiKac ypeiac, Cntoupévaer Kai THY Kat’ Evorattov, evpioKe TOAAG G0EouwWo yivoueva LTO TOVTWY aiTaY THY TEpi EvoTa- fiov, avaykaiwg aptoe, Kal Taot gavepoy Tolijoat éoTTOv- Sacev, cig avaipeowy TOV br” abToyH KaKd¢c ylivonévwv, Kat yap && Tod KataptudecDar aditov¢ TdY yauov, Kai broTi- OecOa, bret ovdeic THY e&v yauw OvTwY EATida Tapa OED éyel, ToAdAai yvvaixec travdpot atat7Oeioa, THY éavTov avdpayv aveyopnoav, Kai avdpec TaYv idiwy yvvatKdv* sita ty 7Q perad) py Svvnfeioat eyxpareiv, euoryevOnoav, kati Oia tiv TolavtTny bTrOOesLv wvedioOncav. Ebvpioxovto dé kal dvaywpyoec &k TOV olkwY TOV OE0d Kai Tie eKKAnotac TOLOVUEVOL, KaTAadpovyATiKwG Olakeiwevol KaTa THC eKKAN- ciac, Kal TOY év TH ékKAnoia, Kat idia ovvagkere TroLov- wevol, Kai &eKKAnoiaoer-, Kai diWacKadiag EéErépac, Kai Ta GAka Kata TOY eKKAno@yv Kai TOY ev TH éeKkAnoia, Eva audidowata émi KatanTwWoEL THC KOLVOTHTOG TOV auplacatov ovvayovrTec, KapTopopiag Te TAG eEKKANnOLAaC- Tukacg «TAG avéxabev dwdomévag TH exKAnoia, éavtoi¢c Kai ToI¢ ~ovY avitoic, wo aytoic, Tac dtaddcetg TroLovpEvoL, kai OovAoL OEaToTOY avaxywpodvTec, Kai Old TOV Sévov iupiaopatoc Katappovnoiy Kata THY JEoTOTHY TOLOvILE- vol, kal yuvaikec Tapa 7d ovvnbec arti appiacudtwr S¥NODEOCAT: EPIST ER, COUNCIL OF GANGRA. Eusebius, Adlian, Eugenius, Olympius, Bithynicus, Gre- gory, Philetus, Pappus, Eulalius, Hypatius, Prozresius, Basil and Bassus, assembled in the holy Synod at Gangra, to our most honoured lords and fellow-ministers in Armenia, wish health in the Lord. Forasmuch as the most Holy Synod of Bishops, assembled on account of certain necessary matters of ecclesiastical busi- ness in the Church at Gangra, on inquiring also into the mat- ters which concern Eustathius, found that many things had been unlawfully done by these very men who are partisans of Eustathius, it was compelled to make definitions, which it has hastened to make known to all, for the removal of whatever has by him been done amiss. For, from their utter abhor- rence of marriage, and from their adoption of the proposition that no one living in a state of marriage has any hope from Gop, many misguided married women have forsaken their husbands, and husbands their wives: then, afterwards, nct being able to contain, they have fallen into adultery ; and so, through such a principle as this, have come to shame. They were found, moreover, fomenting separations from the houses of Gop and of the Church ; treating the Church and its mem- bers with disdain, and establishing separate meetings and assemblies, and different doctrines and other things in opposi- tion to the Church and its members ; wearing strange apparel, to the destruction of the common custom of dress ; making distributions, among themselves and their adherents as saints, of the first-fruits of the Church, which have, from the first, been given to the Church; slaves also leaving their masters, and, on account of their own strange apparel, acting insolently towards 220 SYNODICAL EPISTLE yuvaikeiwy avdpika audidopnata dvadauBavovoa, Kai éK ToUTwy olomevat OlKatodoOar* ToAAai d& Kal droKEipov= Tat Tpopace. OeoceBeiag tHv vot Tig KOUNG TIE yv- valtkeiag’ vyoteiag Te év Kupiani morovpevot, Kat TIC aylornrog tig edevOépacg jucpac KatappovovyTec, Kal THY vyote@v tov é&v Taig ékkAnoiate TeTayuévwry brEepppovody- TEC, Kat éoOiovtec* Kai tives aiToY pEeTaAnWerc KpEay BdedvtToOuEvol, Kal fv oiKoLG yeyaunKoTwY Eebyacg TroLEeicBaL ui BovAcuevot, Kat ylrouévwv ebyov Katadpovodyrec, Kai ToAAaKic tpoodopov év atvtaic Taic oikiai¢ THY yeyapn- KOTWY YyLvo“evwv py petadauBavortec, Kal mpeoBuTépwv yeyaunkorwy dbrtepppovobvrec, Kal THY AEtTovpytav THY OT’ QbvTOY YIvoMEVWY ju aTTOMEVOL, Kal TAG ovVvaseLG TOV jLap- TUPWY Kai TOV EkEL GUVEPYOHWEVWY Kal AEtTOVpyovYTWY KaTa~ ylvaokovrTec, Kal TAOVoIwY O& THY pH TavTwWY THY brapYov= TWVY avaxywpovvTwV, wo éATida Tapa B&G jy exOvTwWY* Kal toAAG dAdAa G& aplOujoat ovdeic adv duvyfein. "ExKaoroc yap abt@v, éred7] TOU Kavovog TOD eExKANoLaoTLKOD eETAODEL, @oTEep vouove idiagovtag eoyev, OvTE yap KoLvy youn ad~ TOV GnavTwy éyévero* aAd’ Exaotoc, brep dav évebuuAOn, tovTo mpooéOnkev emt dtaBoAy Tij¢ exKAnoiac Kat éavTov BAaBy. Av’ ovv taita nvayKacby 1 -Tapayevouévn tv Téyypatc dyia ovvodog Kkatayypicacbac avToy, kal bpove &xOéoAat, EkTOC avTove eivat Tic eKKkAnotac’ ei O& pETayvotev, Kal ava- Oeuatigouv EKkaotov TovTWY THY KaKdo AEYOévTwWY, JeEKTOdE aitovc yiveobar, Kai dia totto é&€betTo 1) dyia ovvodoc Exaotov, 0 ddeiAovary dvabeuatioavrec dexOjvat: esi dé TIC un trevobein toic AeyOeiowv, wo aipetiKov adTav dvabena- TioOjval, Kal elvat dkOLVa@YNTOY Kal KEYWPLOWeVvOY TiC EKKANOlagG* Kal dEenjoe. Todc emloKOTOVe emi TaVTWY TOV E’ploKoévwv Trap’ avtoi¢ ToLovToy TapadvaAagsacbat. OF GANGRA. 991 their masters ; women, too, disregarding decent custom, and, instead of womanly apparel, wearing men’s clothes, thinking to be justified because of these ; while many of them, under a pretext of piety, cut off the growth of hair, which is natural to woman ; [und these persons were found] fasting on the Lord’s Day, despising the sacredness of that free day, but disdaining and eating on the fasts appointed in the Church ; and certain of them abhor the eating of flesh; neither do they tolerate prayers in the houses of married persons, but, on the contrary, despise such prayers when they are made, and often refuse to partake when Oblations are offered in the houses of married persons ; contemning married Presbyters, and refus- ing to touch their ministrations ; condemning the Assemblies of the Martyrs and those who gather or minister therein, and the rich also who do not alienate all their wealth, as having nothing to hope from Gop; and many other things that no one could recount. For every one of them, when he forsook the Canon of the Church, adopted laws that tended as it were to isolation ; for neither was there any common judgment among all of them ; but whatever any one conceived, that he propounded, to the scandal of the Church, and to his own destruction. Wherefore, the Holy Synod present in Gangra was com- pelled, on these accounts, to condemn them, and to set forth definitions declaring them to be cast out of the Church ; but that, if they should repent and anathematize every one of these false doctrines, then they should be capable of restora- tion. And therefore the Holy Synod has particularly set forth everything which they ought to acknowledge when they are received. Andif any one will not submit to the said decrees, he shall be anathematized as a heretic, and excommunicated, and cast out of the Church ; and it will behove the Bishops to observe a like rule in respect of all who may be found with them. Y KA WIGAN, ey PUES) oH Nien EAST PA ora ONO NNO ME KANON A’. ” s / X NN , ~~ a Ei tic Tov yawov péupoito, Kat tiv Kabevdovoav peTa TOD avdpo¢ avtic¢, oveay moriv Kai evaaBij, BdeAvooorro i) wéudorto, wo dv pn Svvapyévnv cig Bactaciav sioeAbeiv, avabeua toro, KANQN BY ” uy , , ‘ cd am, »~ 9 eA El tic éobiovta Kpéa, xwpic aisatoc, Kai eidwAobitov, kal TuKTOD, ET’ EvAaBEeiag Kai TioTEWC, KaTaKpivoL oc av Oia TO peTarapBavev éArida py ExoVTA, avdbeua EOTH, KANON I”. El tic dovAov mpopacer OeooeBeiac diddoKot KaTappo- ~ 4 s Bi ~ — e 4 ‘ A velv OeoTméTOV, Kai avaywpeiv Tig oTNpEdiac, Kal [ui wer’ evvoiagc Kal Taonc TmWC TH éEavtod deomdTH éSv- mpetetoOm, avabeua EoTw, KANQN A’. Ei tic dtaxpivoito Tapa mpesBvtépov yeyaunkotoc, we un =Xpivat, AEettovpyjoavto¢ avTon, mpoopopac peTadAap- Bdvew, avdbena ~EoTw. KANON LF’, Ei tig diddoxor, Tov olkov Tod OE0d evKatadpovnTor elval, Kal Tac év ab7@ ovvdserc, avdbeua éoTw, fon. ONT Sateen Ge WN GR A. CANON I. If any one shall condemn marriage, or abominate and con- demn a faithful and pious woman who sleeps with her own husband, as though she could not enter into the Kingdom, let him be Anathema. CANON II. If any one shall condemn him who with piety and faith eats flesh, which is without blood and has not been offered to idols nor strangled, as though the man were without hope because of his eating, let him be Anathema. CANON III. If any one shall teach that a slave may, under pretext of piety, despise his master and withdraw from his service, and that he should not serve his own master with good-will and all honour, let him be Anathema. CANON IV. If any one shall declare, concerning a married Presbyter, that it is not lawful to partake of the Oblation when he offers it, let him be Anathema. CANON V. If any one shall teach that the House of Gop and the assemblies held therein are to be despised, let him be Ana- thema. 224 CANONS KANON ¢’. Bi tec napa tyv éxkaAnoiav idia éxkAnowdfor, Kat KaTa~ ppovav Tie eKkKAnoiac, ta THe ExkAnoiac eéAoL Tparrev, jy) ovvdvtoc Tob TpEcBuTépov KaTa yvwuny Tov EntoKdToOD, avabeua EoTw, KANON Z/, Ki tic Kaptogopiag fkKAnowaotikac é0EAot =AapBavery, i) OwWova tw tig exkAnoiagc Tapa yvouqv Tov éntoKoTOD, i] TOU eyKexYelplouévov Ta ToLadTa, Kal py peTa Yrounc abtov eOéAot mpdtTelv, avdbewa éoTw, . KANQN H’, Ei tee dudot, 7 ~=AauBavor Kapmopopiay TapeKtog Tov ExuaKérov, i) Tod éemiteTaypevov sic oikovopiay evtotiac, kai 6 didovc, Kal 6 AauBdver, avabewa &oTw, KANON 0%, Ei tic napbevetor, 7) éykpatevorto, wo dv BdeAvKTOV Tov yduwv avaywpyoac, Kai py OV abtd Td KaAoY Kai dytov rig tmapbeviac, avdbeua éoTw, KANON I’. Ei tic tév trapOevevovtwy dia Tov Kiptov, -Kateruipotto TOY yeyaunkoTwv, avd0eua EoTw, KANQN IA’, Ei tic Katadpovoin tév é miotews aydtag ToLovyTwY, kai Ola TYyVY TOV Kvupiov ovyKadovyvtwv Tove ddEeAdorc, kai py eO¢A0L =Kotv@vety Taig KAnjoect, did TO é&SevTEedice TO ylvouevov, avdbena torw, OF GANGRA. 995 CANON VL If any one shall hold private assemblies in opposition to the Church, and, despising the Caurch, shall presume to perform ecclesiastical acts without the concurrence of the Presbyter and against the judgment of the Bishop, let him be Anathema. CANON VII. If any one shall presume to take the fruits offered at the Church, or to give them out of the Church, against the jude- ment of the Bishop, or the person charged with such things, and shall refuse to act according to his judgment, let him be Anathema. CANON VIIZ. If any one, besides the Bishop or the person appointed for the stewardship of benefactions, shall either give or receive the revenue, let both the giver and the receiver be Anathema. CANON IX. If any one shall remain virgin, or observe continence, ab- staining from marriage because he abhors it, and not on account of the beauty and holiness of virginity itself, let him be Anathema. CANON X. If any one of those who are virgin for the Lorp’s sake shall insult the married, let him be Anathema. CANON XI. If any one shall despise those who out of faith make love- feasts and invite the brethren in honour of the Lorp, and shall refuse to accept the invitations because he despises what is done, let him be Anathema. 226 CANONS KANON IB’, Ei ti¢ dvdpOv dia vowgouernyv adoKnow tEpiBodatw ypitat, kal wc adv &k TobTEV THY OtkaLocbyYnY ExwY KaTaWndicolTO TOV wet’ evAaBeiac TOG BApove hopovyTwr, Kal TH GAAY KoLvp Kat Ev ovvnbeta oven EoO7Te KEYpnUEvwV, avdbena ETH. KANQN IP. Ei tig yuv?) Ova voutGomévny adoKnotv petaBdAdotto aupiacua, Kal aGvTl TOV ElwOHbTOG yuvatKElov adidopatoc avdpwov avadd- Bot, dvdbepa EoTw. KANQN IA’, Ei tig yvvh katadmravoe tov avdpa, kai avaywpeiv é0éAoL, BdeAvttouévy TOV yawov, avdbena EOTW. KANQN IE’, Et tic katadyimdvoe ta éavtov TéKkva, Kal py TEKVO- Tpopol, Kat 7d bdoov én’ avT@ mpdc OeocéBevav tiv TpOOn- Kovoav avdyol, dAdAa mpopdoet Tij¢ aoKhoewco apedoin, avdbeua EOTW. KANQN Ic’, Ei tiva téxva yovéwr, ddtota TOTO, dvaxwpoin Tpopdoet feooeBeiac, Kal ju) TY KaOhKOVoaY TiiVY TOi¢ yovEevoLY aTo- véwol, TpoTyMpévng OnAovete Tap’ adbtoic Tij¢ OsooeBeiac, ava- feua EoTwW. KANQN IZ’, Ei tic yvvarkOv Ova vowtgougvnv daoKnovv amokeipolTo tac Kowac, dc dwkev 6 Oed¢ eic wbrouvrygowy tij¢ bnoTayije, O¢ Tapadtovoa Td Tpbctayna tie broTayic, davabeua tOTW. KANQN IH’, Ei tig dud voptouévnv aoKnoww év tH Kuptany vyotevot, avabenwa EoTw. KANQN 10’, El tig TOV dokovpévwov, Ywplc OwuaTLKiig avdyKnc, DTEpHpa- vevolto, Kal Tac TapadJedouevac vnoTEiag Big TO KOLVOY, Kal dv- Aasoonévac bd THC EKKAnoiag Tapadvot, broLKovpovvTog EV av7@ TEA€eiov AoyLomod, avd0ewa ET. OF GANGRA. 227 CANON XII. If any one, under pretence of asceticism, should wear a [rough] cloak and, as if this gave him righteousness, shall despise those who with piety wear the Berus and use other common and customary dress, let him be Anathema. CANON XIII. If any woman, under pretence of asceticism, shall change her apparel and, instead of a woman’s accustomed clothing, shall put on that of a man, let her be Anathema. CANON XIV. If any woman shall forsake her husband, and resolve to de- part from him because she abhors marriage, let her be Ana- thema. CANON XV. If any one shall forsake his own children and shall not nurture them, nor so far as in him lies, rear them in be- conung piety, but shall neglect them, under pretence of asce- ticism, let him be Anathema. CANON XVI. If, under pretence of religion, any children shall with- draw from their parents, particularly [if the parents are] be- lievers, and shall withhold becoming reverence from their parents, [thus] evidently honouring religion more than them, let them be Anathema. CANON XVII. If any woman shall, under pretence of religion, cut off her hair, which Gop gave her as the reminder of her subjection, let her be Anathema, as one who annuls the ordinance of subjection. CANON XVIII. If any one, under pretence of asceticism, shall fast on Sunday, let him be Anathema. CANON XIX. If any of the ascetics, without bodily necessity, and having full use of his reason, shall behave with insolence and dis- regard the fasts commonly prescribed and observed by the Church, let him be Anathema 228 CANONS KANQN K/’, Et tic aitiéto, tdrEepnddvw diabéoer Keypnuévoc Kat BdeAvaobuevoc, Tac ovvdgeig THY paptipwr, 7 Tag ev ad- raic yivouévacg AeiTovpylac, Kai Ta¢ pVviag avTaY, avdbewa oT. Taira d& ypddomev, ob ExxdmTovTEG Tove ev TH ExKAnoia Tov Oeod Kata Tac Tpadac¢ aokeioOat Bovaopévovc, dAAa Tov AauBavovrag THY bmTd0EcLy Tio aoKihoews ei¢ vTEpHpaviar, Kata TOV adsdéotepov BrotvTwy ETraipowévovg Te, Kal Tapa TaC Tpapac wai tod¢ éExkAnovaotixov¢ Kavovac KaLviowovs¢ Eiadyov- tac. ‘Hyeig tovyapovv, nat mapOeviav peta tarervoppoovvng favuagouev, Kal éyKpatelav peta oeuvortytog Kal OeocEeBeiac yivonévnv anodexoueOa, Kat avaywpyoy TaVv eyKoo“iwy Tpay- UdTwWVY peta TaTELvoppoobYyng aydueOa, Kal ydwov ovvoiKnoLY GEeuvyy TYyWmev, Kal TAOUTOV pETa OlLKaLootYNC Kat EvTOLiag ovk § ekovOevorpev, Kal AttéTHTa Kal evtéAelav adpdtacud- Twv Ov’ etyéAgiav pdvov Tov owWpmarog amEplepyov éTaLvov- pevs tac d& ekAvrove Kal TEeOpvupévac ev 7H eoO7Tt Tpod- dove amootpepbueba, Kat Todo oikovge TOV OEOd TLULGpEY, kal tac ovvddovg tag én’ avtoic, wo aylag Kal étwdedeic donaCoueOa, ob ovyKdAeiovtes tiv’ EevoéBevav ev TOIC oikoLC, Gada Tdvra tOmTOv Tov én’ OvéuaTe TOL OE0d oikodounOévTa TYL@VTEC, Kal THY ev ality TH &exKAnoia ovvédevow sic opédeiav tov KoLvov TpootéueOa, Kai Tac Kal? dbrEepBoAry evToliac TOV adEAPOV, TaG KaTa TAG TapaddcELG Oia TIC ExkAnolag Eig Tov¢ TTwWYOdG Yylvouévac, paKapiGomev, Kal mavrTa, ovveddvtacg eineiv, ta Tmapadobévta, vmd THY Ociwv Tpapiv kat tOv adrootoAiKGyv Tapaddcewy év TH éxkAnoia yivecOat evyoueda, OF GANGRA. 229 CANON XX. If any one shall, from a presumptuous disposition, con- demn and abhor the assemblies [in honour] of the martyrs, or the services performed therein, and the commemoration of them, let him be Anathema. —=—— These things we write, not to cut off those in the Church of Gop who wish to lead an ascetic life, according to the Scriptures ; but those who carry the pretence of asceti- tism to supercilionsness ; bota exalting themselves above those who live more simply, and introducing novelties con- trary to the Scriptures and the ecclesiastical Canons. We do, assuredly, admire virginity, [attended] by humility ; and we have regard for continence, accompanied by godliness and eravity ; and we praise a retreat from worldly occupations, [when it is made] with lowliness of mind ; [but at the same time] we honour the holy companionship of marriage, and we do not contema wealth enjoyed with uprightness and beneficence ; and we commend plainness and frugality in ap- parel, [which is worn] only from attention, [and that] not over-fastidious, to the body; but dissolute and effeminate excess in dress we eschew ; and we reverence the houses of Gop and embrace the assemblies held therein as holy and helpful, not confining religion within the houses, but reveren- cing every place built in the name of Gop; and we approve of gathering together in the Church itself for the common profit; and we bless the exceeding charities done by the brethren to the poor, according to the traditions of the Church ; and, to sum up in a word, we pray that all things which have been delivered by the Holy Scriptures and the Apostolical tradi- tions, may be done throughout the Church. AER) CAINS AUN TO XO TA SV NONOY EHUISTOAH SYNOAIKH t Lae rg s ? ¥ / , ¢ e ~ ~ ~ H dyia kai eipnyikwrdzn otvodoc, 1) vTO TOV OE0v avy- kpornOeiaa év ’Avtioyela, && énapyiac Lvpiacg KolAnc, Por- viknc, Wadatorivnc, ’ApaBiac, Meoororapiac, KiArkiac, *loav- plac, Tole Kar’ énapyiav buowiyoug Kat ayiowg ovAAELTOUpyot¢ év Kupiw yaipecv. ‘H yadpic Kat 4 GaAnbeca "Inoot’ Xptotov’ tov Kupiov kat Swripoc mov, emoxepauérn tHv ’Avtioyéwv ayiav EkkAnoiav, Kal Kata 70 avTdO ovvaTTOVvOG pETa Omovoiac Kal ovudwriac Kal tvetpatog eipyviKod, ToAAa pév kal ” 7 3 ~ . ~ ~ ~ LI GAka KatwpOwoev, év Taot O& Kal TovTo KaTopOoi && t ~ ~ ts s p] ~ , \ X broBorAje Tov dyiov Kati eipnyixod Tvetwatoc. “A yap Kkaa@c éyew dose, weTa TAElovog oKeWEewo Kal ETLKpioEwo buod TdvTwv iuav Tav eEmtoKdTWY KaTa TO avTd OVvYKpOTN- dévtwy ert tig "Avttoyeiag éx dtapdpwy énapyiay, ent Thy buetépav yveow avnvéynaev, TmloTevoavTec TH TOV Xpiotod yapitt, Kai TO Tio eipyync ‘Ayl@ Tvevpate, bre kai avTol avpTvEevonte, wo av Ovvayel ovVOYTEC piv, Kat Taig evyaic avvepyovvrec, paddAdov dé Tvwuevor Tuiv, Kat TO ‘Ayiw Ivevwate ovumapovtec, Ta avTad TE Hiv ovupwvjoartTec 5 t 7 sats aN ’ ~ eo t , ‘ Kat dptoauevol, Kai Ta OpO@¢ dJdsavta EéEntoppaylfouevor Kal BeBarodvtes 7H Tov ‘Ayiov ILvetpuatog ovudwria, 5 » 4 2 ‘ Eioi d& ot Opiobévteg éxKAnovactiKoi Kavovec ot *broTe- TAYMEVOL, SYNODICAL EPISTLE. COUNCIL OF ANTIOCH. The holy and most peaceful Synod which has been gathered together in Antioch from the Provinces of Ccele-Syria, Phe- nicia, Palestine, Arabia, Mesopotamia, Cilicia, and Isauria ; to our holy and like-minded fellow Ministers in every Pro- vince, wisheth health in the Lorp. The grace and truth of our Lorp and Saviour Jesus Cunisr hath regarded the holy Church of the Antiochians, and, by joing it together with unity of mind and concord and the Sprrtr or Pracr, hath likewise bettered many other things ; and in them all this betterment is wrought by the assistance of the holy and peace-giving Srrrir. Wherefore. that which, after much examination and investigation, was unanimously agreed upon by us Bishops, who, coming out of various Pro- vinces, have met together in Antioch, we have now brought to your knowledge ; trusting in the grace of Curisr and in the Hoty Spreir or Peacr, that ye also will agree with us and stand by us as far as in you lies, striving with us in prayers, and being even more united with us, following the Hory Srrrrr, uniting in our definitions, and decreeing the same things as we; ye, in the concord which proceedeth of the Hoty Spmrr, sealing and confirming what has been determined. Now the Canons of the Church which have been settled are hereto appended. AC, AON SII AN pele, THS EN ANTIOXEIA THE ZYPIAS XYNOAOYT. KANQN A’, Ildvrac tovc¢ ToAu@vTac Tapadverv tov pov TIC dyiag Kal peyadAng ovvodov tic év Nikaia ovykpotn- Oeione emi Tapovoia rig evoeBeiag tev OeodiAecratov BaotAewc Kwvoravtivov, mepl tig ayiac éoptij¢ Tov owrnpiodovge ILaoya, akorvwvijtovg Kai aToBdAntove etvat Tic ékKkAnotac, el émysevorey lAoverkotepov évioTape- vo. mpo¢ Ta Kkardc dedoyuéva, Kai taita eipyo0w Tepl Tov Aaindv. Ei 0& tie TOV TpoeoTWTwY Tijg eKKAN- diac, énioxotoc, 7) mpeaBvTepoc, 7 Oldkovoc, peta TOV 6pov TovToOv ToOAuHoELEY emi OlaoTpody) TOV Aawy Kal Tapayy) TOV eKkKAnowwy idiagerv, Kai peta THV “lovdaiwy émitedeiv Td Ildoya* tovtov 7 dyia ovvodoc évtEevbev On dadorpiov expe rae ekwAnotac, Oc ob povov éavte duwaptiag étlawpevovta, adAdad ToAdvig OrapBopdc Kai dra- Tpodije yevouevov aiztiov: Kai ov pdvoy Tove ToLovTOVE Kabapet tig Aettovpyiac, aAAad Kai TOvG TOAUaYTAaG TOV- Toe «KOLVavery peta THY Kabaipectv, Toro d& Kkaba- pedévtac anoorepsioba Kai Tic &éwOev Tuythc, To 6 dyLo¢g kavov Kal TO TOU OEOd iEpatEiov peTEiAndeEr. KANQN Bi’, Ilavtac tovc eiowvtacg el¢ thy ékKAnoiav, Kai Tov iep@v Tpadov axovovtac, pj) Koltvwvodvtac d& ebyi¢ dua T®) Aaw@, anootpedousvove tiv. dyiav petadniuw Tie ebya- piotiag Kata Tiva atagiav, TovTove aToBAiToVve yiveoBat Tij¢ exkAnsiac, &we dv &Souodoynoapevot, Kai deiavtec Kap- Tov¢ pletavoiac, Kai mTapakadéoavtec, Tvyeiv dvvnOdot ovyyvoung’ jn e&eivar d2 Kotvwvetv Toi¢g aKowvwrjrolg, pnde CANON Bo - OF AN BLOCH: CANON I. Whosoever shall presume to set aside the decree of the holy and great Synod which was assembled at Niczea in the presence of the pious and most religious Sovereign Constan- tine, concerning the holy and salutary feast of Easter, if they shall obstinately persist in opposing what was [then] rightly ordained, let them be excommunicated and cast out ; and let this be said coricerning the laity. But if any one of those who preside in the Church, whether he be Bishop, Presbyter, or Deacon, shall presume, after this decree, to exercise his own private judgment to the subversion of the people and to the disturbance of the Churches, by observing Easter [at the same time] with the Jews, the holy Synod decrees that he shall thenceforth be an alien from the Church as one who not only heaps sins upon himself, but who is also the cause of destruc- tion and subversion to many ; and it deposes not only such persons themselves from their ministry, but those also who after their deposition shall presume to communicate with them. And the deposed shall be deprived even of that ex- ternal honour, of which the holy Canon [i. e., the Sacerdotal List] and Gon’s priesthood partake. CANON II. All who enter the Church and hear the Holy Scriptures, but do not communicate with the people in prayers, or who turn away, with a certain disorder, from the holy partaking of the Eucharist, are to be cast out of the Church, until, after they shall have made confession, and having brought forth the fruits of repentance, and made earnest entreaty, they shall have obtained forgiveness; and it is unlawfal to communicate with 234 CANONS ? y f , ~ ‘ o> 3 5 , KaT oiKovg ovvedABovtac ovvevyecbat Toic pi) TH EKKANOLA avvevyowévoic, unde év érépa exkAnoia wbrodéyecbat Tove év étépa éxKkAnoia ju) ovvayouevovc, Hi dé gavein tug TeV 3 ca phi 4 “ 4 ” ~ ia ETLOKOTWV, 7) TpecBvTEpwWY, 7) OlaKOVWY, 7] TLC TOD KaVOVOC ~ ~ 5 ~ * TOIC AKOLVWYFTOLG KOLVWYOY, Kai TOVTOY AKOLYMYNTOY ElVaL, Oc av ovyxéovta TOY Kavova Tig EKKANOiaC. KANON I. Ei tig mpeoBvrepoc, 7) OtdKovoc, 7} bAwe THY Tod lepatetov TLIC, KATAALTOY THY EavTOU TrapolKiay, Bic ETEpav aTéAOOL, ETELTA TaVTEADSG peTaoTac, OlaTtpiBery Ev aAAyQ TapoiKia TELpaTat Ent TOAAG XpOvH, wnKETL AEtToUpyeiv, ei fdALtoTa KaAovYTL TH ETLOKOTW TO LOlw, Kat EvavEedbEiv eic THY TapotKiay THY éavTOD TapatvovveTe, jun) UTakovor. Hi 0& Kal émuévoe TH atasia, Tavte- AG¢ abTov KaBapsiabat Tig AELTOvpyiac, > pHKETL YOpav eye anokaracrdoews. Ei 0& kaBaipebévta Ova TavTHy THY aitiay Oé- yotto EtEepoc étioKxoTog, KaKelvoy éruTiiac TYyYavELY bTO KOLVIIC ovvedov, wo TapadvorvTa TOvG Deanovs TOdG EKKANOLaGOTLKOUE. KANON Q’, Ei tig érioxotoc brd ovvddov Kabaipebeic, 7) mpeaBitepoc, n OldKovoc, vd Tov idiov émLoKdTOV, ToOAmHoELe TL Tpasat Th¢ Aettovpytac, elite 6 étiokoTo¢ KaTa THY mTpodyovoav ovviOeav, size 6 mpeoBiTEpoc, elite 6 OtdKovoc’ jwnKéeTL , ~ ree . a sae 160 acer ee éov elvat av7@, pnoée ev Etépa ovvddw éATida aToKaTAO- TdoEwC, pte atodoyiagc yapav eye, aAdad Kat Tove Kol- ~ 9 ~ , ’ U ~ ’ a iY vwvovvTag avtTa Tavrac anoBaddccbat rij¢ éxKkAnoiac, Kat uddvora, et waboveec Tv antdpacw tiv Kata TOV TpoELpNUE- vow esevexOetoav, ToAuHaEeav avToic KoLvwrvety, KANON E’, Ei tic mpeoBitepoc, 1 didkovoc, katadpovicac tov idiov EmLoKOTIOV, apwpioev Eéavtdv Tie fKKAnotac, Kai idia ovvi- yaye, Kal Ovotaoriplov tornoe, Kal, Tov émiokdrov mpocKa- OR-ANTIOCH. 235 excommunicated persons, or to assemble in private houses and pray with those who do not pray in the Church ; or to receive in one Church those who do not assemble with another Church. And, if any one of the Bishops, Priests, or Deacons, or any one of the Canon [i%. e., the Sacerdotal List] shall be found communicating with excommunicated persons, let him also be excommunicated, as one who brings confusion on the Canon of the Church. CANON III. If any Presbyter, or Deacon, or any one whatever belone- ing to the Priesthood, shall forsake his own Parish, and shall depart, and, having wholly changed his residence, shall set himself to remain for a long time in another Parish, let him no longer officiate; especially if his own Bishop shall summon and urge him to return to his own Parish and he shall dis- obey. And if he persist in his disorder, let him be wholly deposed from his ministry, so that no further room be left for his restoration. And if another Bishop shall receive a man deposed for this cause, let him be punished by the Common Synod as one who nullifies the laws of the Church. CANON IV. If any Bishop who has been deposed by a Synod, or any Presbyter or Deacon who has been deposed by his Bishop, shall presume to execute any part of the ministry, whether it be a Bishop according to his former custom, or a Presbyter, or a Deacon, it shall no longer be lawful for him to have a prospect of restoration, nor an opportunity of making his defence, in another Synod ; but they who communicate with him shall all be cast out of the Church, and particularly if they have presumed to communicate with the persons afore- mentioned, knowing the sentence pronounced against them. CANON. ¥. If any Presbyter or Deacon, despising his own Bishop, has separated himself from his Church, and gathered a private assembly, and raised an Altar; and if, when summoned by 236 CANONS Acoapévov, ane9oin, kat py BotAotto abt TeibeoOal, pndée brakovery Kal 7p@r0v Kal OEevTEpoY KaAOvYTL, TOUTOV ka- OatpeioOar TavreAGe, Kal junnéte Oepatsiag tTvyxydverv, poe Ovvacbat AauBdvery thy éavtod Tywihrv. Ei dé& rrapapévoe OopvBav Kat dvaoratév tiv éxkAnoiay, dua Tig éewOev éfovoiac wo oTactwdn adTov értotpépedbat, KANQN 6’, El tic td tov idiov énioxétov dkoltva@vytog yéyove, uy Tpotepov abtov map’ érépwv deyOiva, ei py UT’ av- Tov mapadeyOein tov idiov EéemtoKéTrov, 7, ovvddov yevo- uévync, amavtjoac anodoyjoetal, TEioug Te TV ovvodor, katadéeorto Etrépav andpacv, ‘O aditoc dé bpog ET? Aaikdr, kal TpeoBuTépwr, Kal diaxdvwv, Kal, TdvTwWY TOY EV TO KQVOVL, KANQN Z), Mydéva avev eipnvikdy déyecOar THY EéEvwr, KANON H’, M7dé mpecButépove Tod¢ év Taig YOpalc Kavovikac émLOTOAAaG did6vat, 7 Tpd¢ OvoVE TOE yElTOVaG ETLOKOTOVG ETLOTOAUC EK- méurrerv * Tove O& avEeTLAnTTOVE YwpertoKOTouG OLddvat eipyreKde. KANQN 6’, Todce cal? éxdotny erapylav éntoxdzove eidévat ypi TOV év Th pntporéAet Tpoeot@Ta éenioKkoTov, Kal THY dpovtida ava- dévecIur dane THC enapylac, Ola TO EV TH penTpoTOAEL TavTa- yo0ev ovvtpéxery mdvTacg TovG Ta TpdyuaTa ExovTac, “Obev tdoge Kal TH Tut mponyetoOar adrov, jindév ze nTpdtTEv mEplTTOVv TOvC AoLTOdG eETLOKOTOVC dvEv avTOv, KaTa TOV dpyaiov xpathoavta éx TeV Tlatépwv qudv Kavdvas 7 tabTa pova, boa tH exdorov émBdAAeL Tapoixia, Kai taic iT avtiy yopac. “Exaotov yap éioxomov éfovoiav tye Tic éavtov Tapotkiac, dioikeiv Te Kata THY ExdoTw ém1BaAdov- oav eviAaBevav, Kai mpovotav ToleicAat aon Tie Yopac TIS imo THY éavTod TOALV' wo Kai YElpoTOVEty TpEcBuTEpoLE ee. OF ANTIOCH. 237 ‘his Bishop, he shall refuse to be persuaded and will not obey, even though [his Bishop] summon him a first and a second time, let such a one be wholly deposed and have no further remedy, neither be capable of regaining his rank. And if he persist in troubling and disturbing the Church, let him be corrected, as a seditious person, by the civil power. CANON VI. If any one has been excommunicated by his own Bishop, let him not be received by others until he has either been restored by his own Bishop, or until, when a Synod is held, he shall have appeared and made his defence, and, having convinced the Synod, shall have received a different sentence. And let this decree apply to the laity, and to Presbyters and Deacons, and all who are in the Canon [7.e., on the Sacerdotal List]. CANON VII. No stranger shall be received without letters pacifical. CANON VIII. Let not country Presbyters give letters canonical, or let them send such letters only to the neighbouring Bishops. But the Chorepiscopi of good report may give letters pacifical. CANON IX. It behoves the Bishops in every Province to acknowledge the Bishop who presides in the Metropolis, and who has to take thought for the whole Province ; because all men of business come together from every quarter to the Metropolis, Wherefore it is decreed that he have precedence in rank, and that the other Bishops do nothing extraordinary without him, (according to the ancient Canon which prevailed from [the times of ] our Fathers) or such things only as pertain to their own particular Parishes and the districts subject to them. For each Bishop has authority over his own Parish, both to manage it with the piety which is incumbent on every one, and to make provision for the whole district which is depend- 238 CANONS Kat dlakovove, Kai peta Kploewc Exacta OtadauBavetv* Tre- patépw Oe pndev mpartery emeyepEiv, Oiye Tov Tie pNTpO- TéAewe éToKdTov, nde avToy dvev Tie THY AolTaV yamine. KANQN TV: Tovc év tai¢ Kw 7) Talc xwpatc, 7} Tove Kadovpé. ovg év Taig Kepatc, 7) Talc KXwpatc, 7 Tove KaAovpE- vove KwpEeTiakoTove, ei Kal YElpoHeTiav Elev ETLOKOTOV ELAN- porec, tdoge tH dyia ovvedw eidzvat Tad EavT@Y fuETpAa, Kal Svoketv Tag troKEyévacg avToig eEKKAnoiac, Kai TH TOvTwWY apketoOat dpovtids Kai Knydenovia, Kabiotav d& dvayvwortac, kai brodvakovouc, Kal epopkiotac, Kai Ti} TOVTWY apKetoOaL Tpoaywy* pte d& mpEecBvTEpov, pyTe Diakovoyv yeEtpoToveEeiv ToAuav diva Tod ev TH TOAEL EmioKOTOV, Wy bTOKELVTAL adTOC . e Z ar) . s /3 ~ e s Te Kai 1) yOpa, Ei d& Todunoeé tic TapaBivar ta optobévra, KabapetoOat avrov Kai ie petéexyer TIC. Xwpentoxotov dé yivecbat brd Tod THE TOAEWC, 7 LTOKELTAL, ETLOKOTOD, KANQN IA’, Ki tic érioxoroc, i) mpeoBvtepoc, 7) bAwo Tod Kavovoc, dvev yvounc Kal ypauydtwv tov év TH enapyia éentoKoTr, Kal [dALoTa TOD KaTa TIY pnTpOTOALY, Opunoete TpdC BacLAga aneAOeiv, tovtov amoKnpvTTecOat, Kai anoBAntov yiveocbat, ob povov Tie Kolvwviac, GAAd Kat Tic agiac, Ho petéexwv Tvyyavel* Wc TapevoyAciv ToAudvtTa tac Tov OeodidAectatov Bactréwo Tudv dxodc, Tapa tov Oeopdv zij¢ éxkAnoiac, Wi 6: avayKaia Kahoin ypsia mpo¢ Bactréa dpa, TovTO TpaT- TeEW pleTa oKeYews Kal yvounc TOD KaTa THY [LNTPOTOALY Tij¢ imapyiac émioxorov Kai THY év adTi, Tol¢ Te TOVTWY ypdap- pao &dodiagecbat. KANQN IB’. Bi tic bd Tov Idiov etiaKdtov Kabatpebeic mpecBvTepoc, jj OvdKkovoc, i} Kai étioxotoc bro ovvodov, évoyAijoat ToALt)= cete Tac BaotAgwc akodc, Ofov én peifova eniokdTwWv avvodov OF ANTIOCH. 239 ent on his City ; to ordain Presbyters and Deacons ; and to settle everything with judgment. But let him undertake nothing further without the Bishop of the Metropolis; neither [let] the latter [do anything] without the consent of the others. CANON X. The Holy Synod decrees that persons in villages and dis- tricts, or who are called Chorepiscopi, even though they may have received a Bishop’s Ordination, shall regard their own limits and manage the Churches subject to them, and be con- tent with the care and administration of these ; but they may ordain Readers, Sub-Deacons, and Exorcists, and shall be con- tent with promoting these. But [such a one] shall not pre- sume to ordain either a Presbyter or a Deacon, without the Bishop of the City to which he and his district are subject. And if he shall dare to transgress [these] decrees, he shall be de- posed from the rank which he enjoys. And a Chorepiscopus is to be made by the Bishop of the City to which he is subject. CANON XI. If any Bishop, or Presbyter, or any one whatever of the Canon [i e, the Sacerdotal List] shall presume to betake himself to the Emperor without the consent and letters of the Bishops of the Province, and particularly of the Bishop of the Metropolis, such a one shall be publicly deposed and cast out, not only from Communion, but also from the rank which he happens to have; inasmuch as he dares to trouble the ears of our most religious Sovereign, contrary to the law of the Church. But, if necessary business shall require any one to go to the Emperor, let him do it with the advice and consent of the Metropolitan Bishop and other [Bishops] in the Pro- vince, and let him undertake his journey with letters from them. CANON XII. If any Presbyter, or Deacon, deposed by his own Bishop, or any Bishop deposed by a Synod, shall dare to trouble the ears of the Emperor, when it is his duty to submit his cause 940 CANONS - tpimecOal, Kal, @ voice dixaa exerv, Tpooavapéperv tHeloow ’ émloxoTrolc, Kal THY Tap’ avtov éséTaciv Te Kal EeniKpLoLy , 4 et ‘ 7 > ta ne ’ 4 ~ ry éxdiyed0at, 6 d2, TovTwv GAtywpyoac évoyAncele TH Baotdet (at TOUTOY pndEUaC Gvyyvamnco asLovcAal, [nde NKwWpav aTro- hoyiag eyev, pnd? éAmida peAAovong atoKaTaoTasEWC Tpoo- OoKav. KANGN, LY: Mydéva éetiokorov toApav ad’ érépac ttapylac eic étrépav petaBuiveryv, Kat xelporovety Ev ExKANoia TLVag Eig TpoaywyTyY , . ’ 4 x e af Moe ) ; n AetToupylac, nde el OVVETAYOLTO EaVT@ ETEPOLG, EL [Li] Tapa- KAnbeic adikotto Std ypayupmaTwv TO TE UATpOTOAiTOV Kal THY ’ ne ’ , = , x / , > x adv ar7@ éniskoTwv, Ov sig THY Xwpav Trapépxoito, Hi 63 pndevog Kadkovvtog aeAOor ataKtwo eri yetpoecia TLVvOV, Kat SE MEN eho) ane 5 . coe KaTaOTaGEL TOV EKKANOIADTIKOY TpAayLaTWY, [L1) TPOONKOVTWY avTe, akupa piv 7a Un avTov TpaTTOMEeva TVyYaVELY, Kal aizov d& bréyerv tie atagiac aitov, Kai tig mapaddyou ént- KYELPHTEWC TIV TpOOnKevGav Oiknv, KaOnpnuévov EevtedOev 70H UT THC dylag ovvodov. KANQN IA’, ” 3 4 3 ¢ = a 4 4 x St Ei tig émtoxotoc émt Tlotv éyKkAnmact KplVvOLTO, ETTELT 7 S > ~ ~ s O 7 4 rd ovuBain tTEpi avtov diadwveivy tove ev TH eETrapyia@ éemt- oKoTouc, TaV piv aboov Tov KplvomEevoY amopatvovTwr, cov Oc, Evoyov: wtwnep anmadAayjc Tao LULMLaBntioEw roy Oc, EVOY ep ai yI¢ Taos appiopnzidEewe, édoke TH dyia ovvedw, TOV Tie pyTpoTOAEwo émioKoTrOV amo The TAnoLoywpov éTapyiag eTaKarEiobat ETEpovC \ > > ~ ‘\ Xx +] Se , Tivac, TovG emIKp\vodYTaG, Kat THY apdLoBitHoLy dLiadAv- ~ ~ X ~ ~ ’ ‘ x sovrac, Tov PEBatdoat ovv Toic Tic éemapxiagc 7d Tapl- OTAMEVOV, KANON IE’, Ei tig énioxotoc, émi tio éyKkAnjpace Kxartnyopnbetc, Kpibein bd TavTwY TOY ev TH emapyia éttioKdTWY, TaV- Teg TE ovudwror pilav Kat’ adbtod éevéyKorev yijpov, Tov- Tov pnnéTe trap’ érépoic OikagecOm,~ dada pévery Be- Baiav tiv ovppwvov tév eri Tio itapyiag émtonoTwY anopaoty, ’ Gr - AN TIOC H:. 241 to a greater Synod of Bishops, and to refer to more Bishops the things which he thinks right, and to abide by the examina- tion and decision made by them ; if, despising these, he shall trouble the Emperor, he shall be entitled to no pardon, neither shall he have an opportunity of defence, nor any hope of fu- ture restoration. CANON XIII. No Bishop shall presume to pass from one Province to an- other, and ordain persons to the dignity of the Ministry in the Church, not even should he have others with him, unless he should go at the written invitation of the Metropolitan and Bishops into whose country he goes. But if he should, with- out invitation, proceed irregularly to the ordination of any, or to the regulation of ecclesiastical affairs which do not concern him, the things done by him shall be disallowed, and he him- self shall suffer the due punishment of his irregularity and his unreasonable undertaking, by being forthwith deposed by the Holy Synod. CANON XIV. If a Bishop shall be tried on any accusations, and it should then happen that the Bishops of the Province disagree con- cerning him, some pronouncing the accused innocent, and others [pronouncing him] guilty ; for the settlement of all dispute, the Holy Synod decrees that the Metropolitan call on some others of the neighbouring Province, who shall add their judgment and resolve the dispute, and thus, with those of the Province, confirm what is determined. CANON XV. If any Bishop, lying under any accusation, shall be judged by all the Bishops in his Province, and all shall unanimously deliver the same verdict concerning him, he shall not be again judged by others, but the unanimous sentence of the Bishops of the Province shall remain established. 242 CANONS KANQN I>’, Ei tig émioxorog oyoAdswv, emi oyoAdgovoav éxKdAnoiav et x ’ Spud ies GQ sy . / , , , éavtov énipplipac, toapndga tov Opovov diya ovvodov TeAgiac, ~ ’ fy 7 ” ’ ~ t " t / TovTOY aToBAntov Elval, Kav ei TAG O Aadc, Ov dHpTACEV, iv4 > 4 , x ’ / a 7 ca 4 EAoito aitov, Tedsiav d& éxeivny eivat ovvodov, 7 ovjmapEeoTtt kal 6 Ti¢ pnTpoTOAEmc, KANQN IZ’, Ei rig étiokoto¢c yeipobeciav éemtoxoTov AaBwv, Kai dpLo- Oeic mpoeotavat Aaov, pH KatedésoiTo THV AEiTOvpyiav, pHOE melOoito amlévae cig THY eyxelploOeioay aita éKKAnoiayv, TOv- Tov eivat dkowwwvytov, to 7’ adv avayKacbeic KatadééotTO, 7} 6picot Tt wept avTov H TEAeia ovvodog TOV KaTa TiV ETTap- yiav émloKoTwv, KANQN If’, Ei tig émioxoroc xelpotovnbeic eic¢ Tapotkiav, ju) aTéAOQ cic iv éxepotov7On, ov Tapa tiv é~avtod aitiay, AAA’ ijroL dia THY TOD Aaod Tapaitno.y, 7 Ov Etépav aitiav ovK && avToU YEvouévny, Tov’TOY pETEXELY THC Tig Kal Tio AE- Tovpyiac, povov jindév TapevoyAovvTa ToI¢ Tpaypact TIC éakAnotac, &vOa adv ovvayotto* éKdexecbat dé TovTOV, O av i Tho emapyiac TeAtia ovvodog Kpivaca TO TapLoTdapEevoy bplon. KANQN IO’. "Exioxonov jun xelpotoveioOat diya ovvddov Kai Tra- povotac Tov é&v Th pntpomoAe tig émapylac’ tovrov dé mapovrog éamavtoc, BéATiov piv ovveivat aiT@ TavTac Tove év TH émapyia avdAdetovpyovc, otg Kat TpoorKer du’ émtotoAyc tov ev 7H puntpoTmOAee ovykadeiv, Kai ei wiv amavroiev of mavtec, BéATiov: ei dé dvoyEpic ToOvTO eln, Tove ye TAelovg edmavtog tapeivar det, 7) Oia ypase- UaTov .buowpnpove yevécOat, Kat oVTW pETa TIC TOV TAELO= Vov iro Tapovoiac, 7) wWihdov, ylvecBar tiv KaTaoTacV: ei OF ddadAwe Tapa Ta Gpiouéva ylyvorto, jindiv loyverv THY veipotoviav, Hi d& Kata TOV wptonévov Kavova yiy- volTO 7) KaTaoTacIc, av7tAéyoev O& TLVvEeg OV oikEtay dtdo- VELKLAV, KpaTEiv THY TOV TrAELOVWY YHdov, OF ANTIOCH. 243 CANON XVI. If any Bishop without a See shall throw himself upon a vacant church and seize its throne, without a full Synod, he shall be cast out, even if all the people over whom he has usurped jurisdiction should elect him. And that shall be [ac- counted} a full Synod, in which the Metropolitan is present. CANON XVII. If any Bishop, having received the ordination of a Bishop, and having been appointed to preside over a people, shall not accept his ministry, and will not be persuaded to proceed to the Church entrusted to him, he shall be suspended, until he shall have been constrained to accept it, or until a full Synod of the Bishops of the Province shall have determined concerning him. CANON XVIII. If any Bishop ordained to a Parish shall not proceed to the Parish to which he has been ordained, not through any fault of his own, but either because of the rejection of the people, or for some other reason not arising from himself, let him enjoy his rank and ministry ; only he shall not disturb the affairs of the Church which he joins; and he shall abide whatever the full Synod of the Province shall determine, after judging the case. CANON XIX. A Bishop shall not be ordained without a Synod and the presence of the Metropolitan of the Province. And when he is present, it is by all means better that ail his brethren in the Ministry of the Province should assemble together with him ; and these the Metropolitan ought to invite by letter. And it were better that all should meet ; but if this be difficult, it is by all means necessary that a majority should be present or take part, by letter, in the election, and that thus the ap- pointment should be made in the presence, or with the con- sent, of the majority ; but if it should be done contrary to these deerees, the ordination shall be of no force. And if the appointment shall be made according to the prescribed Canon, and any should object through natural love of contradiction, the decision of the majority.shall prevail. 244 CANONS KANQN K’. Aci Tac éxkAnovaoTiKag ypElac, Kai Tac THY audtoBnTov- , / ~ ” »” ~~ 7 ’ 2 7 wevav diadvoec, Kaadc éxetv &dose ovvddovce Kal? éExaoTnv trapylav TOV éETLoKOTWY yivecOar devTEepov tod ETovc* amas wev pera tv TpityY EBdoudda Tig E~optig tod Ilaoya, wore th tetdpty EBdoudde TH¢ MevryKoori¢ émetedcioba tiv ovvo- dov, bTouvysKkovtog TodG eTapyIWTAaG TOD év TH junTpOTrOAEL* pas A j> é c ee va ‘ fe) Wik 0 id ~ , a / 2 vA 3 XN rHV 02 devtépav ovvodov yivecBat Eidoic OkKTwWBplalc, TLC EOTL dexatn ‘YrepBepetaiov* Wore év avtaic tavtat¢ Tai¢ ovvddots mpootévar TpeaBurTépove, Kat Olakdvove, Kal TavTag Tov 70L- 5 ine cy = _ x X Pais 4 > , tA keioOat vouisovtac, Kai Tana TiC GvVOdOY ETLKpioEwC Tuyxa- verv, My e&eivac dé tivac Ka’ éavtov¢ ovvoddove mTotetobat, GVEV TOV TETLOTEVLEVWY TAG [LNTPOTOAELC, KANQN KA’, ’ , 3 , (tov , (ove BS , Exioxovov amd trapoikiac étépac ei¢ etépav jai) peOiora- 4 > 4 >J Colles e ‘x asee ly X\ ~ aPat, pnjte avOapévwg eTippintovta ~avTov, fujTe vTO Aawv ExBiaGopevov, pnte oO éTLoKOTWY avayKacouEevov* pévery O& ? \ rd 7 e ‘ ~ ~ ee » ~ 2 mee 4 ‘ XN cic jv éxAnpwOn id Tob COEov &E apxic eKKAnoiav, Kal [i ueDictacbat avdtic, KaTa TOV dn TMpOTEpOY TEpt TOvTOV ekE- re ih) s vexOévta bpov, KANQN KB’, ’Exioxorov pun émtBatverv aAdAoTpia mOAEL TH [7] VTOKEL- ugvy abTd, pnd YOpa TH av7@ jy Stadepovoy, Emi YElpoTovia tivdc, pndé Katiorav mpecButépove 7) dtaxcvovc sic TOTOUC e 4 ? fo e ‘Z ’ ‘\ ” X‘ 7 / ~ irépw étioKkdsw tToKEMEVOvC, Ei [7 apa jleTa yvwnc TO oikeiov THe Ywpac emtoxoTov, Hi dé toApioee tig TovovTov, ” x ~ 4 s ? > -) 7 e ~ ~ dkvpov iva THY KELpoOeciav, Kal avdTov EemLTYLiag LTO TIC ovvodov TvyXaveELy, KANQN KI", ’ , us toy ’ > b ~ ~ i t Enioxorov pi) e&Seivae avr’ avtot Kafiorav Etepor save tov dtddoyov, Kav mpd¢ Th TEeAevTi Tov Biov tvyxavy’ el dé TL TOLODTOV ylyvolTO, GakUpOV eivaL TIV KaTaoTacLY, Pv- 4 2 xt » » > ‘ / \ AdrtecOar dé TOV Oeomov Tov eEKKANOLaOTLKOY TEpLEXOVTAa, [17 OP CANTIOCH. 245 CANON XX. With a view to the business of the Church and the settle- ment of disputes, it is decreed to be well that Synods of the Bishops, (to which the Metropolitan shall summon the Provin- cials), should be held in every Province twice a year; one after the third week of the feast of Easter, so that the Synod may be ended in the fourth week of the Pentecost ; and the second on the Tdes of October which is the tenth day of the month Hyperberetzus ; so, that, to these Synods, Presbyters and Deacons, and all who think themselves unjustly dealt with, may resort and obtain the judgment of the Synod. But it shall be unlawful for any to hold Synods by themselves, with- out the persons entrusted with the Metropolitan Sees. CANON XXI. A Bishop may not be translated from one Parish to an- other, either intruding himself [thereinto] of his own choice, or under compulsion by the people, or by constraint of the Bishops ; but he shall remain in the Church to which he was allotted by Gop from the beginning, and shall not be trans- lated from it, according to the decree formerly passed on the subject. CANON XXII. A Bishop may not enter a City [which belongs] to another, and is not subject to himself, nor may he enter into a district which does not belong to him, either to ordain any one, or to appoint Presbyters or Deacons to places within the jurisdic- tion of another Bishop, unless with the consent of the proper Bishop of the place. And if any one shall presume to do any such thing, the ordination shall be void, and he himself shall be punished by the Synod. CANON XXIII. It shall not be lawful for a Bishop, even at the close of life, to appoint another as successor to himself; and if any such thing should be done, the appointment shall be void. And the ecclesiastical law must be observed, that a Bishop must 246 CANONS deiv dAAwe yivecOar érioxoTor, i) peta Gvvddov Kal ETLKpidEwS ETLOKOTWY, TOY META THY Koimnoy Tod dvaTavoapevov THY eSov~ ciav éyovTwy Tod TpedyecOat TOV asLov, KANQN KA’ Ta tie éxxAnoiac TH éxxAnoia Karoo exyev vdAarrte- oOa dei peta maone éeriedsiac, Kai ayabij¢ ovvedrjoewc, Kal TioTewe Tie sig TOV TdvTwY &popov Kai KpiT7]Vv OEOr, “A «ai OvotkeioOat mTpoorjKer peta Kpicewo Kai eSovoiag Tov émlokoTov, TOU TETLOTEvWEVOY TaVTa TOV AaodY, Kai TAG yuyac THY ovvayowévov, Pavepa dé Eivar Ta dLtapépovta TH ekKAnoia, peta yvoorws TOV TEpi abToY TpEecBuTépwr @oTEe TovTov¢g eEidsvat Kai pu] ayvoeiv, Tiva Kul OlLAKOVWY, 4 J ~ % . y ’ , ” . ’ N moTé Ta Wid eoTL Tie EKKAnoiac, WoTEe pndev avTovc Aav- Cavey’ iv’ el ovuBain tov émioxomov pretadAdtTEy Tov Biov, pavepdv dvtwv THv Diapepovtwy TH ExkAnoia Tpay- pdtwv, pte avta dlatinzely nai adroAAvCOM, juijTe Ta iota tov émoKoTrov évoyAciobat, Tpopace. TOV EeKKANoLaOTLKOV Tpaynatwv, Aikalov yap Kat apectov napa Te Oe Kal wOpwrerc, Ta tdia Tov éemioKdTOV, oic av abtoc BovAnTaL a Pp TO Cs 7 7 4 G TOC W1 9 KaTadiuumavecbar’ Ta pévtoe Tie ékKAnsiag abty vdar- a ‘5 ane a 2 2 e / s , TecOat* =Kai puyjTe TY EkKAnoiay vTomevEery TLVa CnUlar, pyre Tov étiokotov Troopacee Tic eKkkAnoiag OnuevecOat, 7) kai cig mpadyuata eutintery tovgc att dtapépovtac, peta Tov Kal avTov peta Oavarov dvodnuia tepiBadAdecOa. KANQN KE’, ’Exioxorov eye tOv tij¢ éxkAnoiac mpayudtwv élovaiar, Gate avTa OuoiKkeiv sic mavtag Tove Jeouévove, peta TmdonC eviAaBeiac Kai PoBov Ocov* petadauBdverv d& Kai ad7oVv THY deovTwy, elye d&éoito, sig Tag dvayKaiacg abtod ypetac, Kal TOV rap abta@ éemiSevovpévwv aderAgav, Wo Kata jundéva TpOTOV aitov¢ otepeicbat, Kata Tov Oeiov ’ATooToAov, A€yovTa* *Eyovrec dtatpopac Kai oKetaouata, TovTolc dpKecOnooueba * ei O& py] TOUTOLG apKoiTO, peTaBdAAo’ OF Ta TpaywaTa El¢ oixeiag adtod ypeiac, Kal Tod¢e TOpOVE Tig EKKANGiac, 7) TOVG TOV GYPOV KapTOVvG, [ui] WETa yvOuNG THY TpECBvTEpwY 7] TOV OR A N/PEOC F. 247 not be constituted otherwise than with a Synod and with the judgement of the Bishops, who, after the decease of a former Bishop, have the authority to promote the man who is worthy. CANON XXIV. It is right that what belongs to the Church be preserved with all care to the Church, with a good conscience and fidel- ity to Gop, the Inspector and Judge of all. And these things ought to be administered under the judgement and authority of the Bishop, who is entrusted with the whole people and with the souls of the congregation. And whatever belongs to the Church should be plainly distinguished, with the knowledge of the Presbyters and Deacons about him; so that these may know assuredly what things are the property of the Church, and that nothing be concealed from them : in order that, when the Bishop may happen to depart this life, the property belonging to the Church may be well known, and not be embezzled nor lost, and in order that the private property of the Bishop may not be disturbed on a pretence that it is [part] of the ecclesiastical goods. For it is right and well- pleasing to Gop and man that the private property of the Bishop be bequeathed to whomsoever he will, but that for the Church be kept whatever belongs to the Church ; so that neither the Church may suffer loss, nor the Bishop be injured for the sake of the Church, nor those who belong to him fall after him into lawsuits, and himself, after his death, be brought under reproach. CANON XXvV. Let the Bishop have power over the funds of the Church, so as to dispense them with all piety and in the fear of Gop to all who need. And if there be occasion, let him take what he requires for his own necessary uses and those of his brethren sojourning with him, so that they may in no way lack, accord- ing to the divine Apostle, who says, “ Having food and rai- ment, let us therewith be content.” And if he shall not be content with these, but shall apply the funds to his own private uses, and not manage the revenues of the Church, or the fruits of his lands, with the consent of the Presbyters and 248 -~ CANONS Stakdvav yetpifor, GAX’ oixeiowg avzov Kai ovyyevéaly, 7} aded- goic, | vioig Tapdoxotro Tijy eovaiay, Wore Ola THY TOLOUTWY AeAnfbtwc BAdtTEcIa Tod AdyouG Tig EKKAnCiac, TOUTOY Ev- Oivac Tapéyery TH ovvddw tig etapyiac. Hi dé Kai aAdws SiaBdAAotTo 6 EmiakoToG, 7) Ol odv avT@ TpEGBUTEPOL, wo TA Th éxkAnoia d:adipovta, jrot €& adypav, 1 Kal &§ ETEpag Tpo- padcewe exkAnovactiKitc, cic Eavtode anopspopevol, wo OAiBecbar wev Tove Trévytac, diaBoAyv dé Kai dvopnuiay mpootpiBecbat T@ Te Adyw Kai Tog ObTw JLoLKOdoL, Kai TodTOVE dLOpPAadEwS tvyydvev, TO Tpérov SoKywagovone TIS aylag avvddov. Gr ANTIOCH. 249 Deacons, but shall give the authority to his own domestics and kinsmen, brothers, or sons, so that the accounts of the Church are secretly injured, he himself shall submit to an investigation by the Synod of the Province. And if in any other way the Bishop or his Presbyters shall be accused of appropriating to themselves what belongs to the Church, (whether from lands or any other ecclesiastical resources), so that the poor are oppressed, and accusation and infamy are brought upon the account and on those who so administer it, let them also be subject to correction, the holy Synod deter- mining what is right. LOA ONSET THES EN NAGATIOENT SY TH “KATA T TAIN ®PYTIAS ZSYTKPOTHGEIZSHS ZYNOAOY. KANON A’, Ilept tot dsiv kata tov ékKkAnotaotiKby Kavéva, todc Ehevbépwo Kat vouiwo ovvadbévtac devtéporg ydwowc, py Aabpoyauiav Toljoavtac, dAtyov ypévov rapedAbdvtoc, Kat oxoAdcavtac taic Tpooevyaic Kal vyotelaic, KaTa oVvyyve- unv arodidocba adbtoicg tiv Kowvwviav wpicaper. KANQN B’. Ilept tov tovc eSauaptdvovtag év draddpoig mrTatopaot, kal TpookapTEepovvTac TH Tpocevyy THC eFouodoyioews Kal petavoiac, Kat tiv anootpopiy THY KaKOVY TEAEiaV ToOLOV- pévouc, Kata THY advadoylav Tov TTAloWaToOC, KaLpov jETa- votacg Oobévro¢g Toig toLvovtotc, dia Tod¢ oiKTIpMOod¢o Kal THY ayabornta Tov OE0d mpoodyecOat TH KOLVwria. KANON I’. Ilepi tod pH div rpoodpdtwo pwriobévta mpoodyecBbat év Tdypare lepaTiKe. KANQN A’, Ilept tov pH deiv tepatixod¢e daveigerv, kal téKove, Kab Tac Aeyouévac Hutodtiacg Aapndvecv. KANQN E’, Ilept tod pn deiv rac yelpotoviag én Tapovoia akpow- wévov yivecba, CANONS OF LAODICEA. CANON TI. We declare it to be right, according to the ecclesiastical Canon, that the Holy Communion should by indulgence be given to those who have freely and lawfully joined in second marriages, but have not made a clandestine marriage ; a short space having elapsed, which is to be spent by them in prayer and fasting. CANON IL. They who have sinned in divers particulars, if they apply themselves to the prayer of confession and penitence, and are wholly converted from their faults, shall be brought to Com- munion, through the mercy and goodness of Gop, after a time of penance appointed to them, in proportion to the nature of their offence. CANON IIL. He who has been recently baptized ought not to be pro- moted to the Sacerdotal Order. CANON IV. They who are of the Sacerdotal Order ought not to lend and receive usury, nor what is called Hemiolie [7.e., the whole and one-half in kind]. CANON V. Elections* are not to be held in the presence of Hearers. * Matpecoue in this Canon, as in the Synodical Epistle of Niczea, is interpreted as above, both by Balsamon and by Zonaras. If, however, it has its usual force of ordi- nation, as Avistenas maintains, the reference is to the low tone of voice in which the prayer of ordination was uttered. 252 CANONS KANQN ¢’. Ilept tod put) ovyxwpeiv toic aipetixoi¢ eiotévar sic TOV oikov Tow Ogov, éemiévovracg TH aipécet. KANQN Z?, Ilep) tov trove é&& tev aipécewr, TovTéott Navatia- vor, Hrow Pwreviarvov, 7 Teooapeckadekatit@yv, émtotpe- houévouc, elite KaTnyoumévovc, eite TLOTOUG TOvG Tap’ Ekéi- volg, fin TmpoodéxysoOa, mpiv avadewatiowo. Taoav aipeo.r, ékaipétwco O& év 7 KaTEelyovTo* Kal TOTE AoLTOY TOvE AEyoO- pévove tap’ abtoig motodc, éxpavOavovtac ta Tig TiaTEwe otuBora, xpiobévrag Te TO adyiw YplopaTt, ovTW KoLYwrELVY TOV pvoTHpiwy TAY ayiwV. KANON H’. Ilept tov tod¢ and Tij¢ aipéoewo TOV AEyouévwvy Ppvydv Emiatpémovrac, ei Kat ev KAHp® vopucouévw Trap’ avroic TVYKavoEV, &i Kat péylotoL AéyoLVTO, TOdE TOLOVTOVEG pETA mionce émpedciac, KatnyeioOai te Kat Banrigecbar bnd THY Tig EkKAnOCiag ETLoKOTWY TE Kal TpEOBUTEpwY. KANQN 0’. Ilepi tov pu) ovyxwpeiv sic Ta Kouywntipia, 7 Eig Ta Acyoueva praptupla TdvtTwy TaV aipeTiKhy amlévat TOVE Tie éxKAnotac, evytc 7 Osparsiac Evexa: aAAd Tove Tol- otrove, €av @olt TLOTOL, akoLVwriTtove yivecDar péypL TLVOC. Metavoovvtacg 0&8, Kat eouwodoyoupévovg eapdAdal, mTapa- dévec0a. KANON I’. Ilept tod pu dsiv rode rife exxAnoiac ddiapépwo mpo¢ é yaov Kolvwviav ovvantey ta tavtdv radia aipetixotc. KANON IA! Ilept tov pun Oetv tac Aeyouévag mpeoBitidac, ATO’ Tpd- KaOnuévac, &v TH EkKAnoia Ka0ioracBal. OF LAODICEA. 953 CANON VI. It is not permitted to heretics to enter the house of Gop while they continue in heresy. CANON VIL. Persons converted from heresies, that is, of the Novatians, Photinians, and Quartodecimans, whether they were Catechu- mens or Communicants among them, shall not be received until they shall have anathematized every heresy, and parti- cularly that in which they were enthralled; and afterwards those who among them were called Communicants, having thoroughly learned the Symbols of the Faith, and having been anointed with the holy Chrism, shall so communicate in the holy Mysteries. CANON VIII. Persons converted from the heresy of those who are called Phrygians, even should they be among what is with them re- puted as the Clergy, and even should they be called the very chief, are with all care to be both instructed and baptized by the Bishops and Presbyters of the Church. CANON IX. The members of the Church are not to meet in the Ceme- teries, nor attend the so-called Martyries, of any of the here- tics, for prayer or service ; but such as so do, if they be Com- municants, shall be excommunicated for atime. But if they shall repent and confess that they have sinned, they shall be received, CANON xX. The members of the Church shall not indiscriminately marry their children to heretics. CANON XI. Presbyteresses, as they are called, or female Presidents, are not to be appointed in the Church. 254 CANONS KANQN IB’, Ilepi tov Tove énioxdmovg KplosL THY pNTpoTOALTOY Kal tev Tépls emokdmwv KabiotacBar Eig zHV EKKAN- ovaoTiKhy apynv, ovtag é&k ToAAov dedokipacpévovg ev Te TO Abyw THO TioTewo, Kal TH TOV EvOEOG Piov TOALTELG. KANQN II”. Ilepi tov pi Toig byAoug emiTpéTmELY Tag eKAoya¢ ToLEiG- dar TOV pEeddovTwy Kabiotacbat Eig LepaTtetov. KANQN IA’, Ilepi tov pa) Ta dyta, Eig Adyov evdoyldyv, Kata TY éoptiv tov Ildoya, sic érépac mapotkiac dvavéuTecOat. KANQN IE’, Ilept tod pun dsiv TAY Tov KavoviKdYv WadaTov, THY émt Tov duBwva avaBaivévtwr, Kat ard dipbépac waddAdv- Twv, ETépove TLVaG WddAAELVY ev ExKANOia. KANQN Ic’. Ilepit tov év oaBBatTw esvayyéAia peta Etépwv Tpaddv avaytvooKecba, KANQN IZ’. Tlept tod py div émiovvdntey év tai¢g ovvdseo. Tove Wadwodc, dAda dia péoov Kal? éxaotov wWaduov yiveoba aVvdyVwoL, KANON IH’, Ilept tov tiv avtiv Agttovpyiav THY elyOv Tav- Tore Kat &v taig évvdtatc, Kal év taic éonépaic detAecv yiveobat. KANQN I@’, Ilept tov deiv idia mpOtov, peta Tag butAiag TOV ert | OKOTWY, Kal TOV KaTHYovUEVvWOY ebyhv éetiTeAcioNaL* Kai peta TO e&eAOeiv toe Katnyovuévouc, TOY .tv petavoia OF LAODICEA. O55 CANON XII. Bishops are to be appointed to the ecclesiastical govern- ment by the judgment of the Metropolitans and [other] neigh- bouring Bishops, after having been long proved both in the foundation of their faith and in the conversation of an honest life. CANON XIII. The election of those who are to be appointed to the Priesthood is not to be committed to the multitude. CANON XIV. The holy [Gifts] are not to be sent into other Parishes at the feast of Easter by way of Eulogicze. CANON XV. No others shall sing in the Church, save only the canonical Singers, who go up into the Ambo and sing from a book. CANON XVI. The Gospels are to be read on the Sabbath Day, with the other Scriptures. CANON XVII. The Psalms are not to be joined together in the congrega- tions, but a lesson shall intervene after every Psalm. CANON XVIII. The same Office of Prayers is to be said both at Nones and at Vespers. CANON XIX. After the sermons of the Bishops, the prayer for the Cate- chumens is to be made first by itself; and, after the Cate- chumens have gone out, the prayer for those who are unger 256 CANONS ‘x 7 ‘ , x 4 , e “ ~ THY evyny ylvecbar* Kai tTovTwWY TpOdEADOVTwWY LTH YEIpa Kal UTOYWPHOaVTWY, OUT) THY TOTaV Tag Eebyacg ylvecBat Tpeic, piav pév THY TpOTHY dla Glwrijc, tiv d& devtéepav m , ~ , ~ tn) nN kal tTpiznv Ola Tpoodwricews TAnpovobat: if’? ovTwW TV ? 7 , s XN >t “ 4 ~ eipjvyv Oidocbar* Kal peta TO TOG TpEOBUTEPOYG DovvaL TO ETLOKOTW THY Eeipyvyv, Té6TE Tove Aaikove THY sipyvnY dWova, Kai ovTwW TY dyiav Tpoomopay émiTEdeioNat* Kai wovowg &&ov eivat Toic tepatixoic eiotevar cig TO OvotaoTA- plov, Kal KOLY@YVELY, KANQN K’, “Ore ov det Otakovov éunpoobev mpecBvtTépov KabéfeoBar, GAAG peTa KEhEvoEWS TOV TpEcBuTépov KabECecAaL. ‘Opuoiwe d& Eyetv Tiny Kat Tove dlaKovovge bd THY iTNpETaY Kal TAaVTWY TOV KANPLKOY, KANQN KA’, "Ort ob dei dmnpétac every yopav év Ta dvakoviKe, Kal 7 Dy igs ~ ~ ~ anTec0at THY LEPOV OKEVOY. KANQN KB’, "Ore ob dei tirnpétnv apdpiov gopetv, ovd® Tac Ovpac eyKkatadtmravey, KANON KI’. “Ore od det dvayvwotac, 7) WaATtac wpdptov dopeiv, Kar ovTWS avaylvooKev, } ddAdelv, KANQN KA’, “Ort ob Ost ispatikodg amd TpEeoBvTépwv Ewe diaKd- 5 La adad ~ b] ~ ae ” e ~ vov, Kal esi¢ Tie ekKkAnoiaoTiKn¢ Tagewo EWC VTNPETOYV, i} dvayvwoTtav, i WaaTav, i) EpopKioTav, 7) Ovpwpav, 7 Tod Taylwatog TOV doKnrov, ele KaTNAEiov EioLtévat, KANON KE’, ics ? ~ t 4 ” aa “) ‘ 4 > Ott ob dei onnpétnv dptov didovat, ovde ToTiptov Eev= Aoyeiv, OF BAODIC HA. Jan penance ; and, after these have passed under the hand [of the Bishop] and departed, there should then be offered the three prayers of the Faithful, the first to be with silence, the second and third to be completed with acclamation [or response], and then [the kiss of] peace is to be given. And, after the Presbyters have given [the kiss of] peace to the Bishop, then the laity are to give it, and so the Holy Oblation is to be completed. And it is lawful to the Priesthood alone to go to the Altar and [there] communicate. CANON XX. It is not right for a Deacon to seat himself in the presence of a Presbyter, unless he be bidden by the Presbyter to sit down. Likewise the Deacons shall have worship of the Sub- Deacons and all the Clergy. CANON XXI. The Subdeacons have no right to a place in the Deacon’s Room, nor to touch the Sacred vessels. CANON XXII. The Sub-deacon has no right to wear an Orarium [i. e., Stole}, nor to leave the doors. CANON XXII. The Readers and Singers have no right to wear an Ora- rium, and to read or sing thus | habited]. CANON XXIV. No one of the Priesthood, from Presbyters to Deacons, and so on in the ecclesiastical order to Sub-deacons, or Readers, or Singers, or Exorcists, or Door-keepers, or any of the order of the Ascetics, ought to enter a tavern. CANON XXV. A Sub-deacon must not give the Bread, nor bless the Cup. 258 CANONS KANON Ke’, "Ore ob dei EpopKigery Tove wh TpoaxOévtac tno émtoK6- TMV, [Te ev Talc EKKANnoialc, NTE ev Tai¢g olKiaLc. KANQN KZ’, “Ort ob Osi iepatiKkovc, 7) KAnptKodc, 7) AaiKodc, KaAovpE- vouc eic ayatnv, pépn aipev, did TO THY UBpLY TH Taser mpooTplBecOa TH EKKANOLAaCTLKT. KANON KH’, “Otte ov dst év toig Kuptakoic, i) &v taic éxxAnoiac, Ta¢ ~ ” Aeyouévac ayatac TrolEiv, Kal EV TH OiKW TOV OEod éoOieLy, Kai aKOUBLITA OTPWYYVELY, KANQN KO’, "Ort ov dei Xptotiavode iovdaiverv Kai év TO caBBaTw ayoAacev, GAN epyaceoOar avtonc év TH abth muépar THYV POR GEE, sPyGS aC ri) REP / » ~ al ay 4 = ‘> [x 2 d& Kupiakijy mpoty@vtac, elye Ovvaiyto, oxodacev wo Xpe ottavol, Hi dé etpebetiev “lovdaiotai, totwoav avabewa Tapa XploTo, KANQN A’. “Ove ov det lepatiKkovc, 7) KANpLKOD i) adoKnrac, év TL OU patlKove, 1) nplkovc, i) doKnzac, & Badaveitw peta yvvatkOv arodovecOa, pnd&e Tavta Xpr- ‘ ht - ra 7 bs a Gy > oTlavov, 7) Aaikov' avtTn yap mpwWTNH KaTayvwolg Tapa toic eOveouv, KANQN AA’, “Ort od det mpd¢ Tavtac aipetikodg emvyapiac ToLEiv, 7 (bats. enn ” , 96 \ ~ s ” diddvat viotc, i} Ovyatépac, GAAd paAdov AauBdvey, Elye érayyéAdourto Xptioriavol yiveobat. ri KANQN AB‘. ‘Ore ov di aipetinov evdoyiag AapBdvev, attic eioww 4 ~ “ ? 4 ddoyias paArdov, 7) evdoyiat, OF LAODICEA. 959 CANON XXVI. They who have not been promoted [as Exorcists] by the Bishops, ought not to exorcise, either in Churches or in [private] houses. CANON XXVIII: Neither they of the Priesthood, nor Clergymen, nor lay- _ men, who are inyited to a love feast, may take away their por- tions, for this is to cast reproach on the ecclesiastical order. CANON XXVIII. It is not permitted to hold love feasts, as they are called, in the Lorp’s Houses, or in Church assemblies, nor to eat and to spread couches in the House of the Lorp. CANON XXIX. Christians must not judaize by resting on the Sabbath, but must work on that day, rather honouring the Lorv’s Day ; and, if they can, resting then as Christians. But if any shall be found to be Judaizers, let them be Anathema from CuristT. CANON XXX. None of the Priesthood, nor Clergymen, nor Ascetics, nor any Christian or layman, shall wash in a bath with women; for this is a chief [cause of] condemnation, [even] among the heathen. CANON XXXI. It is not lawful to make marriages with all [sorts of] here- tics, nor to give our sons and daughters to them; but rather to receive them, if they promise to become Christians. CANON XXXII. It is unlawful to receive the Bulogive of heretics, for they are rather Alogi [7. e., follies], than Eulogiz [/. ¢. blessings]. 260 CANONS KANQN AI”. ” > ~ e =~ ~ “ = ~ 4 Ort od dei aipetiKoic, 7) oXLoWaTLKoIg ovvevyeobat, KANQN AA’. "Ore ob del Travta, Xpiotiavoy éyKatadeiney paptupac Xpr- oro, Kal anmlevat Tpd¢ TOvC WevdoudpTYpac, TOVTéGTLY aipETL- KOV, 7) avTode Tpbe TOdCE TpOELPHU VOLE aipETLKOG yEvoLEVOUE* ovTol yap GAAdtpLoe Tow Od Tvyydvovely, "Eotwoav ov avabeua ot amtEepyouevoe PoE avTovE. KANON AE’. "Ore ob dei Xptotiavods e&ykaTadeiney tiv ExKAqoiay Tov Ocod, Kai ameval, Kai GyyéAovE Ovopacely, Kai ovvaserc ToLEtv, anep annyopevta. El tic ovv ebpeO) tavty TH KEexpvppevy 3 , 47¥ ” bJ 2 a ? La eidwAoAatpeia oyoragwy, sotw avafewa, OTL eykaTédiTe TOV Kipiov judy “Inootv Xprordv, tov Yiov tov Cov, Kai eidw- Aohatpeia TpooiAder, KANQN Ac’, “(0 7 6 ~ ie rr \ A mn ‘ 7 bal py Te ov det ispatiKod¢e 7) KAnptKovc, payovc 7 éTraol~ X\ yy, ” x nn 3 5% + ~ x dov¢ eivat, 7 wadnuariKovc, i dotpoAoyovc, ToLtelv Ta Aeyoueva pvdanthpia, aziva éott Oeonwrnpia TOV Wvyov > ~ s . ~ es ’ ~ , , av7av. Tove d& gopovvtac, pimtecfar EK Tic éKKAnoiac EKEAEVOAUED, KANQN AZ’. “Ore ob d&i Tapa THv “Tlovdaiwy, 7 aipeTiK@v, Ta TELTO- ft — \ , Sy A ie ’ ~ peva Eoptaotika AauBaverv, yd? ovveopTtacely avToic. KANQN AH’. ‘Ort ob Osi tapd Tév "lovdaiwy afvua AapBaverv, 7) KOLVW= velv taic doeBetaic abt, KANQN AO’, "Ore ob dei Toic eOvect ovveopTagey, Kal KoLvwveiv TH abeotyTL abTtav. OF; HAODICEA. 261 CANON XXXIII. It is unlawful to join in prayers with heretics or schismatics. CANON XXXIV. No Christian ought to forsake the Martyrs of Curist, and resort to false martyrs ; that is, to those of the heretics, or those who haye been themselves accounted heretics ; for they are aliens from Gop. Let those, therefore, who go after them, be Anathema. CANON XXXV. Christians must not forsake the Church of Gop, and go away and invoke’angels and gather assemblies ; which things are forbidden. If, therefore, any one shall be found engaged in this covert idolatry, let him be Anathema ; for he has for- saken our Lorp Jesus Curist, the Son of Gop, and has become a proselyte to idolatry. CANON XXXVI. They who are of the Priesthood, or of the Clergy, shall not be Magicians, nor Enchanters, nor Mathematicians, nor As- trologers ; nor shall they make what are called Phylacteries, which are chains for their own souls. And those who wear such, we command to be cast out of the Church. CANON XXXVII. It is not lawful to receive portions sent from the feasts of Jews or heretics, nor to feast together with them. CANON XXXVIII. It is not lawful to receive unleavened bread from the Jews, nor to be partakers of their impiety. CANON XXXIX. It is not lawful to feast together with the heathen, and to be partakers of their godlessness. 262 CANONS KANQN M’. "Ore od dei tmtoKé70v¢e KaAovusvove sic obvodov Katadpo- veiv, aAd’ amievat, Kai didasKerv, 7 diddoKEoBa, sic KaTOp- Owouv tie exKkAnoiac Kai TOV AoiTOv, Ei d& KaTadpovjcevev 6 ToLodToc, EavToV aitldoETal, TapeKTOG Ei py Ov avapadiav aroAluTavolro. KANQN MA’, “Ort od dei iepatiKov 7) KAnpLKOY avEev KeEdevoewC éTLOKO- Tov ddevely, KANQN MB’. qd, bd we Ue. \ nN \ x ~ Ore ov det tepatixove 7 KAnptKOvG dvEev KaVvorLKaY ypa_- * patwv ddevery, KANQN MI”, lca i} ~ t L b)) XN os 4 be , Ore ov dei imnpéTac, Kav Bpayd, Tag Ovpac éyKaTadEirELy, kal Th evyt) oyoAacery, KANQN MA’, “Ore ob dst yvvaikag iv 7H Ovoactnpiw sioép- yecbat. KANON ME’, “Ort ov dei petra Ovo éEBdouddac ti¢ Tesoapaxooric d&xe- cba cig TO PwTioma, KANQN Mo’. "Ore dei Tove Pwrtowévove Tv TioTW ExuavOavely, Kal TH méunty the éBdouddog drayyéAdev TH étloKOTH 7) TOIC TmpeoBurépotc. KANQN MZ’, "Ott dei Tove tv véow tapadauBavortac TO PwoTtoua, Kai eita advactavrac, éxuavOdverv tiv TioTlv, Kal yevMoKery, OTE feiac dwpedc KkatnsimOnoar, OF LAODICEA. 263 CANON XL. Bishops called to a Synod must not be guilty of contempt, but must attend, and either teach, or be taught, for the refor- mation of the Church and others. And if such an one shall be guilty of contempt, he will condemn himself, unless he be detained by ill health. CANON XLII. None of the Priesthood nor of the Clergy may go on a journey, without permission of the Bishop. CANON XLII. None of the Priesthood nor of the Clergy may travel with- out letters canonical. CANON XLII. The Sub-deacons may not leave the doors, to engage in the prayer, even for a short time. CANON XLIV. Women may not go in to the Altar [7. e., into the Sanc- tuary |. CANON XLV. [Candidates] for Baptism are not to be received after the second week in Lent. CANON XLVI. They who are to be baptized must learn the Creed by heart, and recite it to the Bishop, or to the Presbyters, on the fifth of the Great Week [7. e., on Maundy Thursday]. CANON XLVII. They who are baptized in sickness and afterwards recover, must learn the Creed by heart, and know that they have been youchsafed the Divine gifts. 264 CANONS KANQN MH’. "Ore dei Tove HwTiGouevove peta TO BaTTLowa Ypiecbat xpiouate étovpaviw, Kal pleToyoug elvat Tho PBaoctdAeiacg Tov Xptorov, KANQN MO’, "Ort ob det év tH Teooapakoori dptov mpoodépery, el py év oaBBatw Kat Kvupiaky povor. KANON N’, "Ore od dei év tH Teooapakootl tH botépa éBdoudde thy méuntny Avetv, Kat OAnv tiv Teooapaxootiy atuysagev GdAaa dst maoav tiv Teooapakootiy vyoteverv snpoda- youvrac. KANON NAV. "Ore ob Oct év tH Teooapakooth papttpwv yevebAia émt- 1 4) eapTvp tedeiv, GAAd TOY dyiwy paptipwrv pvjuac Toleiv ev Tot > Pp }-- caBBdtoie Kat Taig Kuptaxaic. KANQN NB’. "Ore ob det év tH Teooapaxooth yduove 7 yevéOAa émiTedeiv. KANQN NT”. "Ort ob dei Xpioriavode sic ydwove amepyouévovc, Bad- Rigerv 7 dpyetoOa, aAAd cepvec devtvety 7) apioTay, w¢ mpétret Xprotvavoic, KANON NA’, Ort od det tepatixods 1 KAnptkov¢g Tivac Oewpiag Oew- peiv ev ydpouc, 1 deitvowc, dada, mpd Tod eicépyecOar Tod¢ Auuekinodc, tyeipecOat adtov¢e Kat avaxwpelr. OF LAODICEA. 265 CANON XLVIII. They who are baptized must after Baptism be anointed with the heavenly Chrism, and be partakers of the Kingdom of Gop [i.e must be confirmed and brought to the Holy Eucharist}. CANON XLIX. There must be no Oblation of Bread in Lent, except on the Sabbath Day and on the Lorp’s Day only. CANON L. The fast must not be broken on the fifth day of the last week in Lent [7. e., on Maundy Thursday], and the whole of Lent be dishonoured ; but it is necessary to fast during all the Lenten season by eating only dry meats. CANON LI. The nativities of Martyrs are not to be celebrated in Lent, but commemorations of the holy Martyrs are to be made on Sabbath days and Sundays. CANON LII. Marriages and birthday feasts are not to be celebrated in Lent. CANON LIII. Christians, when they attend at weddings, must not joi in wanton dances, but modestly sup or dine, as is becoming to Christians. ; CANON LIV. Members of the Priesthood and of the Clergy must not witness the plays at weddings or banquets ; but, before the players enter, they must rise and depart. 266 CANONS KANQN NE’. w > ~ Fe ‘ 0 ‘ , PS , Ore ov dei LepatiKod¢ 1) KAnpLKOvG EK OvEBOATS ovUTOOLA émitedetv, aGAnr’ ovdé Aaikovc. KANQN Neo’. “Ore ov dei mpeoBuTépovg mpd Tij¢ eloddov Tov étLOK6- mov eiovevat Kat KabélecOa év tH Bhatt, GAAa peta Tov éemloKoTov Eiolévars TAY Ei fl} AVwuadoin 7 aTodnmot 6 émloKoToc. KANQN NZ’. “Ore ob Osi év Taig Kdwatge Kal év taic yopatc Kabioracbat émuoxoTouvc, GAAa TeptodevTdcg* Tovg pév Tot 7j0n TpokaTa- otabévrac, pndéy mpdttev dvev yvaung tov énioKdTov Tov évy TH TOAEL* wWoattwo dE Kai Tove TpEoBuTEépovce jundév TpattEly avev THC yvounc Tov ETLOKOTIOV. KANQN NH’, "Ott od dei év Tol oikolg Tpoopopay yivecOat Tapa émto- KOTWY 3) TpEDBUTEPWY, KANQN NO’, "Ort od det iWtwrtkods wWarpovs AkyecOar év TH exKAn- sia, obd® axavéviorta PBiBAia, GAAGd pova Ta KavoriKa TiC Iahkaia¢ kai Katvijg AvabjKye. KANON &’, "Oca det BiBAia avayivooKerOat rig TlaAadce AvabjKne* a. Téveoic xéopov: Bl. "Egodoc e& Alyimtov: y'. Aevituxoy : !. ’AptOuoi* e!, Aevtepovdutors ¢!, Insoi¢e tov Navije ¢'. Kpt- tai‘ ‘Povd: 7!.’EoOjp* 6. Baotredv mpwrn Kai devtépa* t!, Ba- oAEav tpitn Kai tetdptn* ta!, Wapadetrouévwy Tpw@tov Kai devtepov* 13!. "Eodpac tp@tov Kai devtepov* ty', BiBAog Yad- ~ ! j! 7 Say aya I OR en re pov pv, LO’, Ilapowstat LoAowwvero¢ ese KKANGLAOTIHC is!, "Aoua dopdtwr* w2!, 163° w7'. Awdexarpopytov * v6!. ‘Hoatag: k!. Iepeuiac, kat Bapody, Opivor Kai émvotoAai* kal, leceneja * KB’, Aavinr: OF LAODICEA. 267 CANON LV. Neither members of the Priesthood nor of the Clergy, nor yet laymen, may form clubs for drinking entertainments. CANON LVI. Presbyters may not enter and take their seats in the Bema before the entrance of the Bishop ; but they must enter after the Bishop, unless he be sick or absent. CANON LVII. Bishops must not be appointed in villages or country dis- tricts, but itinerant [visitors only]: and those who have been already appointed, must do nothing without the consent of the City Bishop. Presbyters, in like manner, must do nothing without the consent of the Bishop. CANON LVIII. The Oblation must not be made by Bishops or Presbyters in any private houses. CANON LIX. Private Psalms and uneanonical books must not be read in the Church, but only the Canonical Books of the Old and New Testament. CANON LX. These Books of the Old Testament are appointed to be read: 1, Genesis of the world; 2, The Exodus from Egypt ; 3, Leviticus ; 4, Numbers ; 5, Deuteronomy ; 6, Joshua, the son of Nun; 7, Judges, Ruth ; 8, Esther ; 9, Kings, First and Second ; 10, Kings, Third and Fourth ; 11, Paralipomena, First and Second ; 12, Ezra, First and Second ; 18, One Hun- dred and Fifty Psalms ; 14, Proverbs of Solomon ; 15, Eccle- siastes ; 16, Song of Songs ; 17, Job; 18, The Twelve Pro- phets ; 19, Isaiah ; 20, Jeremiah, and Baruch, Lamentations, and Epistles ; 21, Ezekiel ; 22, Daniel. 268 CANONS Ta 0% tio Kawvij¢ AvadiKkno tavta: Ebayyéda téooapa, kata Mat@aiov, kata Mapxov, kata Aovkay, Kata “lwaveny ° Ilpaéere ’“ATooTOAwy* "EnuotoAai Kabodtkai Enza, ‘lakwBov pia, Ilétpov dvo, ‘lwavvov tpeic, ‘lovda pias "EnvotoAai Wavaov deka- téooapec’ mpoc ‘Pwuaiove pia, mpd¢ KopirOiove dve, mpoc¢ Tadatac pia, mpoc "E@zotove pia, mpo¢ PiAuxrnoiove pia, mpo¢ Kodoooaeic pia, Tp0¢ OeccadorKeic Ovo, Tpo¢ ‘EGBpatove pia, mpo¢ Tyso0eov dv0, mpo¢ Titov pia, Kai Tpo¢ PiAnuova pia, OF LAODICEA. 269 And these are the Books of the New Testament : Four Gospels, according to Matthew, according to Mark, according to Luke, according to John ; Acts of the Apostles ; Seven Catholic Epistles, One of James, Two of Peter, Three of John, one of Jude ; Fourteen Epistles of Paul, One to the Romans, Two to the Corinthians, One to the Galatians, One to the Ephesians, One to the Philippians, One to the Colos- sians, Two to the Thessalonians, One to the Hebrews, Two to Timothy, One to Titus, and One to Philemon. ; ' ay prac ON, ate os i ai f o ma eS: 35 bie ae nae eat * Dire ie ag 7 ee i? A ae a8 hela ee oe . ¥ ea ag thn ie week os oye a ‘ Mi, ae aye. A aA wane? te rote: one td Ohh, ai ati) Te MG iat bite ae ie mie Uae, As Tes Ae aay Waist there og Pa Tice; baer + mri ibaa Oe hi: an) maaiatlgae is . a ie Sake duet Das eee g aig Ty veg! ee Bout Di SE rea Ce Se Wh Poe Der Gs wy Ser ABORTION.—Women who use, or prepare drugs for, abortion, are to fulfil ten years of penance (Anc. XX1). ABSTINENCE.—Clergymen are forbidden to abstain from marriage, flesh, or wine, except for discipline (Ap. Can. LI); and parti- cularly, to abstain from flesh and wine on festival days, except for discipline (Ap. Can, LIII) ; but after tasting flesh once, they may abstain from it (Anc. XIV). ACCOUNTS.—A Bishop charged with malversation in the accounts of the Church, is to be tried by the Provincial Synod (Ant. XXY). ACCUSATION.—An accusation of fornication, adultery, or any other forbidden act, brought against a Communicant, if proved, disqualifies him for ordination (Ap. Can. LXI). Persons who are themselves under accusation, are disqualified from bring- ing charges of ecclesiastical offences against a Clergyman (Const. VI). See also Accusers. ACCUSERS.—I. Or a METROPOLITAN.— Accusers of a Metropolitan must lay their charges before the Exarch of the Diocese, or before the Throne of Constan- tinople (Chal.[X, XVII). IJ. Or A BisHor.— Accusers of a Bishop must be trustworthy persons (Ap. Can. LXXIV): they must not themselves be under discipline, nor even under accusation of offences (Const. VI) ; and they must be examined as to character (Chal. XXI). Heretics are not to be received as accusers of a Bishop (Ap. Can. LXXV). Neither heretics, nor schismatics, may bring accusations of ecclesiastical offences against a Bishop (Const. VI) ; but those who complain of personal wrong done to them by the Bishop, may be of any religion (Const. VI). A single Communicant cannot be received as the accuser of a Bishop (Ap. Can. LXXYV), especially if he brings a charge of any sensual sin (Nic. II). 274 DIGEST. ACCUSERS.—Or a BisHop.— Continued. Accusers of a Bishop are to bring their complaint before the Provincial Synod (Const. VI, Chal. EX), especially if the charge be that of malversation in the accounts of the Church (Ant. XXYV); and if they resort to the Civil Power or an (Ecumenical Synod, they are not to be received as accusers (Const. V1). False accusers of a Bishop are to suffer the same penalty to which he would have been liable, had the charge been proved (Const. VI). Ill. Or a Prrest.— A Priest is not to be convicted of any sensual sin, on the evidence of a single witness (Nic. II). Those who are themselves under accusation, are not to be received as accusers of a Priest (Const. VI). Accusers of a Priest are to be examined as to character (Chal. X XT). IVY. Or A DEACON OR THE Minor CLERGY.— Those who are themselves under accusation, are not to be received as accusers of a Clergyman of any rank (Const, VI). Accusers of a Clergyman are to be examined as to charac- ter (Chal. XXTI). See also Accusation. ACTRESS.—Marriage with an actress is a disqualification for ordina- tion (Ap. Can. XVIII). ACTS OF THE APOSTLES.—The Book of Acts is referred to, as of authority, in Neo Ces. XV: it is also included in the lists of canonical books, in Ap. Can. LXXXV, Laod. LX. ADDRESS.—To THe Emprror: vid. Petition. ADMONITION.—Schismatics are to be admonished before punish- ment (Ap. Can, XXXI, Ant. V). A Bishop who neglects, without reasonable cause, to at- tend a Provincial Synod, is to be admonished (Chal. XTX), ADULTERY.—If a layman commit adultery, he cannot be ordained (Ap. Can. LXI): nor can he be ordained if his wife has com- mitted adultery (Neo Ces. VIII). A Priest who commits adultery is to be punished by complete excommunication (Neo Cees. I). If the wife of a Clergyman commit adultery, he must put her away, or cease from his ministry (Neo Cas. VHT). An adulterer, or an adulteress, must fulfil seven years of penance (Anc, XX). DIGEST. 275 ADVOCATE.—Bishops are forbidden to nominate Advocates, for money (Chal. IT). The Advocate of the Church of Constantinople is to expel from the City Clergymen and Monks who go there and create disturbances (Chal. XXIIT). ZELIA.—The Bishop of Alia is to rank next to the Metropolitan G@Mie=. VID): AGAP&.—Vid. Lovefeasts. AGAPET. — Agapete are forbidden to reside with Clergymen (Nic. IID), or with men of any class (Anc. XIX). AGE,.—A Priest is not to be ordained before he is thirty years of age (Neo Ces. XI); nora Deaconess before she is forty (Chal. XY). AGENT.—Clergymen and Monks are forbidden to act as agents of laymen (Chal. IIT). ALEXANDRIA.—The Church of Alexandria is to retain its ancient and customary prerogatives (Nic. VI). The Bishop of Alexandria is to have jurisdiction in Egypt, Lybia, and Pentapolis (Nic. VI); he is to have jurisdiction in Egypt (Const. IT); he is entitled, by ancient custom, to be consulted by the Bishops of Egypt, before their signing even acts which they approve (Chal. XXX), ALIENATION.—The Bishops are forbidden to alienate Church property (Ap. Can. XX XVIII). ALMONER.—Priests and Deacons are to act as their Bishop’s al- moners (Ap. Can. XLI). ALMSHOUSES.—Almshouses are not to be meddled with by Clergy who have left them, and gone into another Parish (Chal. X). ALTAR.—Nothing is to be offered at the Altar, except new ears of grain and clusters of grapes (Ap. Can. II, IV). A Priest is forbidden to raise a separate Altar (Ap. Can. XXXI; Ant. V); also a Deacon (Ant. V). The Priesthood alone may communicate at the Altar (Laod. XIX). Women are forbidden to go into the Altar (Laod.XLIV). AMBO.—Singers are to sing in the Ambo (Laod. XV). AMULETS.—Vid. Phylacteries. ANATHEMA.—The penalty of Anathema is pronounced on Clerey- men and Monks who accept civil or military office (Chal. VII). And on Monks who negotiate Simony (Chal. IT); or Who compose or use any other than the Nicene Creed (Chal. Encyc.) : 276 DIGEST. ANATHEMA.— Continued. And on a Deaconess who marries, and her husband (Chal. XGVANE And on Ascetics who abhor marriage (Gang. I); or reject the Oblation when offered by a married Priest (Gang. IV); or who, being virgin, insult the married (Gang. X); or who abhor eaters of flesh (Gang. IT) ; or despise lovefeasts (Gang. XT) ; or who attempt to withdraw slaves from their masters’ service, under pretext of religion (Gang. III); or who des- pise the Church and Church Assemblies (Gang. V); or abhor the services in honour of the Martyrs (Gang. XX); or who perform ecclesiastical acts without the concurrence of the Bishop and Priest (Gang. VI); or who misappropriate the Fruits of the Church (Gang. VII, VIII); or who forsake or neglect their children (Gang. XV); or forsake their parents (Gang. XVI); or who fast on Sunday, under pretence of religion (Gang. XVIII) ; or disregard the fasts of the Church (Gang. XIX). And on women who forsake their husbands, from abhor- rence of marriage (Gang. XIV); or who cut off their hair, under pretence of religion (Gang. XVII). And on laymen who profess the heresies of Nestorius or Theodore of Mopsuestia (Eph. VIL); or who compose or use any other than the Nicene Creed (Eph. VII, Chal. Encyc.) ; or who marry Deaconesses (Chal. XV); or who ravish, under pretence of Marriage (Chal. XXVII); or who negotiate Si- mony (Chal. II); or who judaize, by resting on the Sabbath (Laod. XXIX). And on Christians, who honour heretic martyrs (Laod. XXXIV); or invoke Angels (Laod. XXXYV). Anathema against heresies in general (Const. I). Heretics must anathematize all heresies, and particularly their own, before reconciliation (Const. VH, Laod. VII). ANCIENT CUSTOM.—Vid. Custom. ANCYRA.—The Canons of the Council of Ancyra are confirmed by Chal. I. ANGELS. — Christians are forbidden to invoke Angels (Laod. XXXYV). ANIMALS.—Animals are forbidden to be offered at the Altar (Ap. Can. III). ANOINTING.—Vid. Chrism. ANOMEANS.—Vid. Hunomians. DIGEST. 277 ANTIOCH.—The Canons of the Council of Antioch are confirmed by Chal. I. The doctrine of the Trinity is accepted by the Church in Antioch (Const. V). The Church of Antioch is to retain its ancient and cus- tomary prerogatives (Nic. VI, Const. I). The Bishop of Antioch has no jurisdiction in Cyprus (Eph. VIII). APOLLINARIANS.—The heresy of the Apollinarians anathematized (Const. I). : Apollinarians are admitted to the Catholic Church, by Chrism, after renunciation of their heresies (Const. VI). APOSTATE.—Vid. Lapsed. APOSTOLICAL Canons.—Vid. Canons. Trapition.—Vid. Tradition. The Throne of Rome is spoken of as Apostolic (Chal. XXX). APPAREL.—Vid. Dress. APPEAL.—OF A BisHop. A Bishop cannot appeal against the unanimous sentence of his Comprovincials (Ant. XV). An appeal by a Bishop or his accusers, is to be from the Provincial to the Diocesan Synod (Const. VI). If a Bishop appeal to the Emperor, against a sentence of deposition, he cannot be restored, nor can his cause be re- heard by a Synod (Ant. XID). See also Defence. —Or A Priest, DEAcoN, oR Minor CLERGYMAN. Appeals of the Clergy, from their Bishops, are to be made to the Provincial Synod (Nic. V, Ant. XX); if made to the Emperor, the appellant cannot be restored, nor can his cause be reheard, by a Synod (Ant. XII). See also Defence. —Or A LAYMAN. A layman may appeal, from the sentence of his Bishop, to the Provincial Synod (Nic. V, Ant. XX). See also Defence. APPOINTMENT. — The appointment of Presbyteresses, or female Presidents, is forbidden (Laod. XI). See also Bishop. APPROPRIATION.—Bishops are forbidden to appropriate eccle- siastical property to themselves or their relations (Ap. Can. XXXVITI, Ant. XXYV). 278 D 1G. Es i. APPROPRIATION.— Continued. Priests are forbidden to appropriate ecclesiastical property to themselves (Ant. XXV). The appropriation, to private purposes, of wax or ou of the Church, is forbidden (Ap. Can. LXXII); also of conse- crated vessels (Ap. Can. LXIII); also of the First Fruits (Gang. VI, VIII). The appropriation, to secular purposes, of Monasteries or their property, is forbidden (Chal. XXTY). ARBITRATOR.— Vid. Referee. ARCHBISHOP.—Vid. Ezarch. ARIANS.—The heresy of the Arians is anathematized (Const. I). Arians are admitted to the Catholic Church, by Chrism, after renunciation of their heresies (Const. VII). ARISTERI.—Vid. Cathari. ARMY.—Bishops, Priests, and Deacons, are forbidden to serve in the army (Ap. Can. LXX XII, Chal. VII); also the Minor Clergy, and Monks (Chal. VII). ASCETICS.—Asceties must observe the fasts cf the Church (Gang. XIX). Ascetics are forbidden to enter a tavern (Laod. XXIV) ; or to wash in a bath with women (Laod. XXX). ASCETICISM.—True Asceticism commended (Gang. XX1). False Asceticism is condemned in various instances as fol- lows: In a Bishop, Priest, or Deacon, who divorces his wife, under pretext of religion (Ap. Can. V), or who abstains from marriage because he abhors it (Ap. Can. LI, Gang. TX); and in those who condemn marriage (Gang. I); or who refuse the Oblation when offered by a married Priest (Gang. TV); and in women who forsake their husbands from abhor- rence of marriage (Gang. XIV), And in a Bishop, Priest, or Deacon, who abstains from flesh and wine, on festival days, because he abhors them (Ap. Can. LITT); and in those who, in general, abstain from flesh and wine because they abhor them (Ap. Can. LI); or who condemn persons who eat flesh (Gang. I) ; or Who despise lovefeasts (Gang. XT); and In those who fast on Sunday (Gang. XVIII); or who do not observe the fasts of the Church (Gang. XIX); and In those who despise persons who wear the customary dress (Gang. XII); and in women who assume the dress of men (Gang. XIII), or who cut off their hair (Gang. XVID). DIGEST. 279 ASCETICISM— Continued. And in those who despise Church Assemblies (Gang. VY) ; or who abhor the services in honour of the Martyrs (Gang. XX) ; And in parents who forsake their children (Gang. XV) ; or children who forsake their parents (Gang. XVI). ASIA.—The Metropolitans of the Asian Diocese are to be elected ac- cording to custom, and are to be ordained by the Patriarch of Constantinople (Chal. XX VIII). Their jurisdiction is limited to their own Diocese (Const. If), within which they are to ordain the Bishops (Chal. XX VI). ASSEMBLIES.—Schismatical and separated assemblies are forbidden (Ap. Can. XXXI, Gang. VI, Ant. II, V, Laod. XXXV). Those who despise Church Assemblies are to be anathe- matized (Gang. V); also those who abhor the Assemblies in honour of the Martyrs (Gang. XX). Assembling in Church, for public worship, is commended (Gang. XXI). ASTROLOGERS.—Astrologers are to fulfil five years of penance (Anc. XXIV). Clergymen are forbidden to be astrologers (Laod. XXXVI). ATTENDANCE.—Attendance at Provincial Synods is enjoined on Bishops (Chal. XIX, Laod. XL). AUNT.—The aunt of a Clergyman may reside with him (Nic. II). AUTUMN. — Provincial Synods are to be held about Autumn (Nic. VY). BAILIFF.—No Bishop is to ordain a Bailiff for money (Chal. II). No Clergyman or Monk is to act as bailiff to a layman (Chal. II). BANISHMENT.—Clergymen and Monks, going to Constantinople and causing disturbances there, are to be banished from the city (Chal. XXII). BANQUETS.—Clergymen are forbidden to attend plays at banquets (Laod. LIV). BAPTISM.—Baptism washes away all sins (Anc. XII). Baptism is to be performed according to the Catholic for- mula (Ap. Can. XLIX), and by trine-immersion (Ap. Can. L) ; it must not be into the Lorp’s death (Ap. Can. L); it is to be followed by Chrism and the Eucharist (Laod. XLVIII). Bishops and Priests are forbidden to refuse to baptize one who has been polluted by the impious (Ap, Can. XLVI). 280 DIGEST. BAPTISM— Continued. A pregnant woman may be baptized whenever she will (Neo-Ces. VI). Children of a Reader or Singer, by a heretic wife, must be baptized in the Catholic Church (Chal. XIV). Candidates for Baptism are forbidden to be received after the second week in Lent (Laod. XLY); they must learn the Creed by heart, and recite it to the Bishop on Maundy Thursday (Laod. XLVI). Clinic Baptism is, generally, a disqualification for Priests’ orders (Neo-Czs. XII). Those who have received clinic Bap- tism, if afterwards restored to health, must learn the Creed by heart (Laod. XLVII). A heathen who is converted and baptized, may be or- dained (Ane. XII). Bishops and Priests are forbidden to admit the Baptism of heretics (Ap. Can. XLVI); Baptism by heretics is declared void (Ap. Can. LX VIII); the Baptism of Eunomians, by one immersion, is declared void (Const. VII); the Baptism of Phrygians and Sabellians is void (Const. VII). Bishops and Priests are forbidden to rebaptize those who have true Baptism (Ap. Can. XLVI); Paulianists must be rebaptized upon reconciliation (Nic. XTX), and also Phry- gians (Laod, VIII, Const. VII), and Eunomians, and Sabel- lians, and all other heretics, with certain exceptions (Const. VID). BARBARIANS.—Castration, by Barbarians, does not disqualify a man for being ordained (Nice. I). BATHING.—Bathing with women is forbidden to men of every class (Laod. XXX), = BEASTS.—Communicants are forbidden to eat the flesh of animals slain by beasts (Ap. Can. LXIII). BEMA.—Priests are forbidden to enter the Bema before their Bishops (Laod. LVI). Vid. also Sanctuary. BENEFACTIONS.—The Steward of Benefactions is to have charge of the First Fruits (Gang. VID). BENEFICENCE.—Beneficence in the enjoyment of wealth is com- mended (Gang. XXI). BEQUEST.—A Bishop is not allowed to bequeath his See to heirs (Ap. Can. LXXVI). BERUS.—Ascetics who despise those who wear the berws, are ana- thematized (Gang. XII). DIGEST. 281 BESTIALITY.—Persons who are guilty of bestial lusts, are to fulfil a term of penance, varying from twenty to thirty years, ac- cording to circumstances; and in some cases they are to be admitted to Communion only at the point of death (Anc. XVI). Those who are themselves guilty, and who have corrupted others, are to pray amongst the Hyemantes (Anc. XVII). BETROTHED.—One who ravishes a virgin who is not betrothed, must marry her (Ap. Can. LXVII); the ravisher of a be- trothed virgin must restore her to the man to whom she is betrothed (Ane. XI). BIRDS. — Birds are forbidden to be offered at the Altar (Ap. Can. II). BIRTHDAYS. — Birthdays are forbidden to be observed in Lent (Laod. Lt). BISHOP.—I. DisQuALIFICATIONS FOR THE OFFICE OF A BISHOP. A person to be ordained Bishop, must not, after Bap- tism, have been twice married, nor have had a concubine (Ap. Can. XVII); he must not have married a widow, a di- vorced woman, a harlot, a slave, or an actress (Ap. Can. XVIII); he must not have married two sisters, nor a niece (Ap. Can. XIX). He must not have committed adultery, fornication, or any other forbidden act (Ap. Can. LXI). One whose wife has committed adultery cannot be ordained (Neo-Czs. VIII). He must not have castrated himself (Ap. Can. XXII, Nic. I); but if castrated by force or persecution, or if born an eunuch, he may be ordained (Ap. Can. XXI, Nic. I); also if castrated for surgical purposes (Nic. I); and if castrated by force, or for surgical purposes, after ordination, he may remain among the Clergy (Nic. I. He must not be totally deaf or blind (Ap. Can. LXXVIII), but partial lameness or blindness is not a disqualification (Ap. Can. LXXVII). He must not be possessed of a devil, but if dispossessed, and worthy, he may be made a Bishop (Ap. Can. LX XIX). One whose ordination would injure the Church, must not be made a Bishop (Ap. Can, LX XVIII). A Neophyte, or a person suddenly converted from a dis- honourable life, must not be immediately made a Bishop (Ap. Can, LXXX, Nic. I, Laod. III); but former profession of heathenism is not, in itself, a disqualification (Anc. XII). A slave cannot be ordained, unless manumitted by his master (Ap. Can. LX XXII). 282 DIGEST. BISHOP. — DisQUALIFICATIONS FOR THE OFFICE OF A BISHOP.— Continued. One who has lapsed cannot be ordained (Nic. X) ; but those who have been steadfast throughout the persecutions, though forced to seem otherwise, may be ordained (Ane. ITI). A Bishop must not be ordained without a charge (Chal. VI). A Bishop must not be appointed in a village or country district (Laod. LVII). —II. Or THE ELECTION OF A BISHOP. A Bishop is not to be elected during the lifetime of his predecessor (Ant. XXIII). He is not to be elected until after long probation, both of faith and life (Laod. XII). He is not to be elected by the multitude (Laod. XIIT). He is to be elected by all the Bishops of the Province, as- sembled together, if possible; otherwise, the suffrage and consent of those who are absent, is to be given in writing (Nic. IV, Ant. XIX); he is to be elected by the Provincial Synod (Ant. XXIID ; by the Metropolitan and Provincial Bi- shops (Laod. XII). He is to be elected by a majority of votes, in case of fac- tious opposition (Nic. VI, Ant. XTX). His election is to be ratified by the Metropolitan (Nic. EV,,Va)): A Bishop without a See, unless elected by a full Synod, cannot occupy a vacant See, even by unanimous suffrage of the people (Ant. XVI). —III. Or THE ORDINATION OF A BISHOP. A Bishop must be ordained by two or three Bishops (Ap. Can. I); he must be ordained by at least three Bishops (Nic. IV), and with the consent of the majority of the Bishops of the Province (Nic. IV, VI, Ant. XIX). He must be ordained to his See within three months of its becoming vacant (Chal. XXY). —IV. OF THE JURISDICTION OF A BISHOP. A Bishop’s jurisdiction is confined to his own Parish (Ap. Can, XXXIV, XXXV, Ant. IX). Two Bishops cannot have jurisdiction in one City (Nic. VID). A Bishop already exercising jurisdiction over outlying Parishes, is to retain it (Chal. XVI). A Bishop has control over Monks within his Parish (Chal. IV); also over the Clergy of Poor-houses, Monasteries, and Martyries (Chal. VIII); also over Ecclesiastical Property DIGEST. 253 BISHOP—IY. Or THE JURISDICTION OF A BisHop.— Continued. (Ap. Can. XXXVIII, Ant. XXIV), and the moneys of the Church (Ap. Can. XLI, Ant. XXYV), and the offerings (Gang. Vil, Vile): A Bishop is to be consulted in all matters, by Priests within his jurisdiction, before they act (Ap. Can. XXXIX, Laod. LVII), and by Deacons (Ap. Can. XXXIX). Bishops and itinerant visitors, appointed in country districts, are to do nothing without the consent of the City Bishop (Laod. LYVIL). A Clergyman must obtain his Bishop’s permission before travelling (Laod. XLI). A Monastery, or an Oratory, eannot be established in a Bishop’s Parish, without his consent (Chal. IV, XXIV), nor can ecclesiastical acts be performed, by private persons, against his will (Gang. VI); nor can referees, in disputes between Clergymen, be ap- pointed without his consent (Chal. IX); nor can a petition be presented to the Emperor, by a Clergyman, without his consent (Ant. XI). A Bishop may authorize a Chorepiscopus to ordain Priests or Deacons beyond his own district (Ant. X); or even in a City (Anc. XIII); he may authorize another Bishop to act within his Parish (Ant. XXTI); he may grant to a reconciled Bishop of the Cathari, who is within his jurisdiction. au- thority to retain his Episcopal title (Nic. VIII). A Bishop who suspends or excommunicates a person, can alone readmit him (Ap. Can. XXXII, Nie. V). A Bishop may grant indulgence to the lapsed, who have fallen a second time (Nic. XII); and to lapsed Deacons, who have been restored (Anc. II); and to the lapsed who have fallen with extenuating circumstances (Anc. V, VII). And to Monks and dedicated Virgins, excommunicated for marrying (Chal. XVI); and to persons who have fallen into many marriages (Neo-Cees. ITT). And to persons under penance for bestial lusts (Anc. XVI). A Bishop convicted of anything contrary to religion or morals, is not entitled to the obedience of his Clergy (Ap. Can. XV). —Y. Or THE DouTIes oF A BISHOP. A Bishop is to ordain Priests, Deacons, and Minor Clergy- men (Ap. Can. II); he is to ordain Priests and Deacons within his own Parish and districts (Ant. IX); he is to ordain Chorepiscopi, Priests, and Deacons (Ant. X); and to appoint Exorcists (Laod. XXVI). He must appoint a Steward of his See (Chal. XXVI). ‘ 284 DIGEST. BISHOP.—V. Or THE DuTIEs oF A BrsHop.— Continued. Offerings, not made at the Altar, are to be taken to the house of the Bishop and Priest, and to be shared by them with the other Clergy (Ap. Can. IV). A Bishop is to de- signate all Church property to the Priests and Deacons (Ant. XXIV); and to manage the revenues of the Church with their approval (Ant. XXY). He is to relieve the poor, from the funds of the Church (Ant. XXV), through the Priests and Deacons (Ap. Can. XLI); and to supply necessaries to Clergymen in need (Ap. Can. LIX); he is to practice hospitality at the expense of the Church (Ap. Can. XLI); to entertain foreign Clergymen, bringing letters commendatory (Ap. Can. XXXIIT); and to make needful provision for Monasteries within his Parish (Chal. IV). He is to reclaim Church Property, which had been sold during the vacancy of his See, and to decide how it shall be reclaimed (Anc. XY). He is to appoint Clergymen and Monks, for the transaction of necessary business, and for the guardianship of Widows and Orphans (Chal. III). ; He is to settle disputes between Clergymen (Chal. TX), He is to attend Synods twice a year, for examination con- cerning doctrines of religion, and the settlement of eccle- siastical disputes (Ap. Can. XX XVII, Ant. XX); for revising episcopal sentences (Nic. V, Ant. XX); and for the regula- tion of ecclesiastical affairs (Chal. XIX); and if he do not attend, he is to be admonished, unless prevented by unavoid- able business (Chal. XIX), or ill health (Chal. XTX, Laod. XL). He is to admonish schismatics three times before punish- ment (Ap. Can. XXXI) ; to admonish schismatical Clergymen three times before deposing them (Ant. VY); he should sum- mon a Clergyman, who leaves his own Parish, to return, before punishing him (Ap. Can. XV, Ant. IIT). He is to baptize persons who have been polluted by the impious (Ap. Can. XLVII); to baptize according to the Catholic formula (Ap. Can. XLIX); and by trine-immersion (Ap. Can. L); he is to instruct and baptize reconciled Phry- gians (Laod. VII); and to hear candidates for Baptism re- cite the Creed (Laod. XLVI). He is to examine the dying before administering the Eucharist (Nic. XIII); to administer the Eucharist to Priests and Deacons (Nic. XVIII); and he must partake himself, or give reasons for refusing (Ap. Can. VU). DIGEST. 285 BISHOP.—Or tur Duties or a BisHop.— Continued. He is to commence Divine Service with a Sermon, and, at its close, to give the Kiss of Peace to the Priests and full Communicants (Laod. XIX). He is to receive penitents (Ap. Can. LID). He is to fast during Lent, and on Wednesdays and Fridays, unless prevented by bodily weakness (Ap. Can. LXIX). He is to keep his own property distinct from that of the Church (Ap. Can. XL, Ant. XXIV); and to provide for his wife, children, and other relatives, out of the former (Ap. Can. XL); if his relatives are poor, he is to relieve them like the rest of the poor (Ap. Can. XX XVIII). He is to find a place, as Chorepiscopus or Priest, for a re- conciled Bishop of the Cathari, who is within his jurisdiction (Nic. VIII). —VI. Or THE PRIVILEGES OF A BISHOP. A Bishop is to receive his share of offerings not made at the Altar (Ap. Can. IV); he is to be supported from the funds of the Church (Ap. Can. XLI, Ant. XXV); he is not to be at personal expense in the practice of hospitality (Ap. Can. XLI) ; when in need, he is to be supplied with necessa- ries (Ap. Can. LIX). He may bequeath his property to whom he will (Ap. Can. XL, Ant. XXIV); at his death, his property is not to be seized for the Church (Chal. XXII). If he has been degraded to the rank of a Priest, he is to be either altogether deposed, or restored to his former rank (Chal. XXIX). A Bishop displaced by Nestorius or his followers, is to be restored (Eph. III). A Bishop who has not been received by his Parish, may retain his rank (Ap. Can. XXXVI); and, if he pleases, re- sume his position as Priest (Anc. XVIII). A Bishop may consent in writing, to the ordination of a Bishop, if personal attendance is difficult (Nic. IV, Ant. XIX). It is his privilege to communicate at the Altar (Laod. XIX). Clergymen are forbidden to insult their Bishop (Ap. Car. LY); Priests are forbidden to enter the Bema before the Bishop (Laod. LVI); Country Priests are forbidden to offi- ciate, ina City Church, in the presence of a Bishop (Neo- Cxs, XTIT) ; but Chorepiscopi may do so (Neo-Cxs. XIV). A Deacon is the helper of his Bishop (Nic. XVIII). A Bishop who has been steadfast throughout the nerse- cutions, though forced to seem otherwise, is entitled to all his former privileges (Anc. III). 286 DIGEST. BISHOP.—V1. Or tHE PriviLeces or A BisHop.— Continued. A Bishop who has a complaint against his Metropolitan, may lay it before the Exarch of the Diocese, or the throne of Consianiinople (Chal. IX, XVII). Vid. aiso * Bishop.—IV. Of the Jurisdiction of a Bishop.” —Vil. Or Tumycs FoRBIDDEN TO A BISHOP. A Bishop is forbidden to divorce his wife, under pretext of religion (Ap. Can. V); or to marry after ordination (Ap. Can. XXVI); or to abstain from marriage, except for disci- pline (Ap. Can. LI); or to have any woman dwelling with him, except such relations, or other persons, as are beyond suspicion (Nic. III); or to wash in a bath with women (Laod. XXX), He is forbidden to engage in worldly business (Ap. Can. VI, LXXX1), unless he be called by law to the guardianship of minors (Chal. III); he is forbidden to serve in the army (Ap. Can. LXXXIIDN); or to accept military or civil office (Chal. VII); or to exact usury (Ap. Can. XLIV, Nic. XVH, Laod. IV); or to become security (Ap. Can. XX). He is forbidden to read false and heretical books in Church, as Scripture (Ap. Can. LX); or to compose, or use, any other than the Nicene Creed (Eph. VII, Chal. Encyc.) ; or to join in prayer with heretics (Ap. Can. XLV, Laod. XXXIII); or to employ them as Clergymen (Ap. Can. XLV); or to admit the Baptism, or Sacrifice, of heretics (Ap. Can. XLVJ); or to receive the Eulogiz of heretics (Laod. XXXII); or to attend the Cemeteries, or Martyries, of heretics (Laod. IX); or to marry his children to heretics (Laod. XXXI); or to ob- serve, or receive gifts from, festivals of heretics (Laod. XXXVII); to enter a synagogue of Jews or heretics, for prayer (Ap. Can. LXTV); or to celebrate Easter before the Vernal Equinox, as the Jews do (Ap. Can. VII, Nic. Encye., Ant. 1); or to observe, or receive gifts from, Jewish fasts or festivals (Ap. Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVII); or to receive unleavened bread from the Jews (Ap. Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVIID); or to feast with the heathen (Laod. XXXIX) ; or to join in prayer with schismatics (Ant. Il, Leod. XXXII) ; or to adhere to the maintainers of conventicles (Ap. Can. XXX). He is forbidden to submit to the jurisdiction of Nestorius and his partisans (Eph. IT). He is forbidden to communicate with the excommunicated, (Ap. Can. X, Ant. II); or with a Bishop who has obtained his Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX); or with DIGEST. 287 BISHOP.—V. Or Tunes ForsmpeNn To A Bisnor.— Continued. a Clergyman who is deposed for celebrating Easter before the Vernal Equinox (Ant. I); or with a Clergyman who, after deposition, meddles with his former ministry (Ant. IV); or to join in prayer with a deposed Clergyman (Ap. Can. XT). He is forbidden to receive, in their clerical capacity, Clergymen who are suspended or deposed for leaving their own Parishes (Ap. Can. XVI, Ant. IID); or to restore a Priest or Deacon, properly suspended by another Bishop, unless the latter die (Ap. Can. XXXII, Nic. V); or to receive and ordain one who has seceded from another Bishop (Nic. XVI); or to receive a Clergyman of another Bishop (Chal. XX) ; or to receive persons excommunicated by another Bishop, un- less restored by him (Ap. Can. XII, Ant. VI). He is forbidden to leave his own Parish and enter another, except under special circumstances, and by special request (Ap. Can. XIV); or unless he is driven by necessity from his own country (Chal. XX); he is forbidden to do so without any exception (Nic. XV, Chal. V, Ant. XXJ) ; and if he do so, his extra-parochial acts are declared void (Nic. XV); he is forbidden to act beyond his own Parish (Ap. Can. XXIV, XXXV, Nic. XV, Ant. XXII); without a written invitation from the Metropolitan and provincial Bishops of the Pro- vince into which he goes (Ant. XIID ; or to act beyond his own Diocese without invitation (Const. I). He is forbidden to do anything of great moment without the consent of his presiding Bishop (Ap. Can. XXXIV), Metropolitan (Ant. IX); or to address the Emperor without the consent of his Metropolitan and Com-previncials (Ant. XI). A Bishop appointed in a village, or country district, is to do nothing without the consent of the City Bishop (Laod. LVII). He is forbidden to carry off wax or oil from the Church (Ap. Can. LX XII); or to appropriate consecrated vessels to private purposes (Ap. Can. LX XIII); or to appropriate ec- clesiastical property to himself or his relatives (Ap. Can. XXXVI) ; or to employ his own domestics, or relatives, in the administration of Church funds (Ant. XXV). He is forvidden to offer anything at the Altar except new ears of grain, or clusters of grapes (Ap. Can. III). He is forbidden to celebrate Easter before the Vernal Equinox (Ap. Can. VII, Nic. Encyc., Ant. I). He is forbidden to rebaptize one who has true Baptism, or to refuse to baptize one who has been polluted by the impious (Ap. Can. XLVII). 288 DIGEST. BISHOP.—V. Or Turnes ForRSIDDEN TO A BisHopr.— Continued. He is forbidden to make the Oblation in a private house (Laod. LVIIJI). He is forbidden to receive a second ordination, unless the first was void (Ap. Can. LXVIII). He is forbidden to commit simony (Ap. Can. X XIX, Chal. II) ; or to negotiate simoniacal contracts (Chal. Il); or to obtain his Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX) ; or toseize a vacant See (Ant. XVI). He is forbidden to ordain a relative to the Episcopate from personal motives, or to bequeath his See to heirs (Ap. Can. LXXVI); or to appoint his successor (Ant. XXIIT). He is forbidden to ordain a neophyte, without a time of probation (Nic. If). He is forbidden to abstain from flesh or wine, except for discipline (Ap. Can. LI), especially on festival days (Ap. Can. LII) ; he is forbidden to eat flesh with the blood, or of ani- mals which have been slain by beasts, or have died a natural death (Ap. Can. LXIII), or to fast on Sunday, or on any Sab- bath except Easter Even (Ap. Can. LXVI); or to join in forming drinking clubs (Laod. LV); or to eat in a tavern, except on a journey (Ap. Can. LIV). If invited to a lovefeast, he is forbidden to take away his portion (Laod. XXVIJ); he is forbidden to attend plays at weddings and banquets (Laod. LIV). He is forbidden to castrate himself (Ap. Can. XXIII, Nie, I. He is forbidden to strike backsliders or unbelievers (Ap. Can. XXVII). If deposed, he is forbidden to touch his former ministry (Ap. Can. XXVIII, Ant. IV). He is forbidden to insult a Priest or Deacon (Ap. Can. LVI); or to insult the Emperor, or a magistrate (Ap. Can. LXXXIV); or to mock the infirm (Ap. Can. LVII). He is forbidden to neglect his duties (Ap. Can. LVIIT). He is forbidden to deny his office (Ap. Can. LX). He is forbidden to misuse his power of Excommunication (Nic. Y). He is forbidden to obtain an Imperial Reseript for divid- ing a Province (Chal. XI1). A Bishop who has not been received by his Parish, is for- bidden to assume authority elsewhere (Anc. XVII, Ant. XVIII). He is forbidden to practice magic, enchantment, mathe- matics, or astrology; or to make, or wear, phylacteries (Laod, XXXVI). DIGEST. 289 BISHOP.—VIII. Or Tue Triat or A BIsHop. Accusers of a Bishop must be trustworthy (Ap. Can. (LXXIV); they must not themselves be under accusation of, nor condemnation for, offences; nor under sentence of Ex- communication (Const. VI); they must be examined as to character (Chal. X XI). Heretics are not to be received as accusers of a Bishop (Ap. Can. LXXYV); neither heretics nor schismatics may bring accusations, of ecclesiastical offences, against a Bishop (Const. VI), but those who complain of personal wrong, done to them by the Bishop, may be of any religion (Const. VI). A single communicant cannot be received as the accuser of a Bishop (Ap. Can. LXXYV); especially if the charge be that of any sensnal sin (Nic. IT). False accusers of a Bishop are to suffer the penalty to which he would have been liable, had the charge been proved (Const. VI). A Bishop accused of offences, is to be summoned by the Bishops (Ap. Can. LX XIV); he is to be summoned a second, and a third time, if necessary; and if he fail to appear on the third summons, he is to be tried in his absence (Ap. Can. LXXIV); he is to be tried by the Provincial or Diocesan Synod, not by the civil courts, or an CGicumenical Synod (Const. VI); he is to be tried by the Provincial Synod (Chal. Px Aut. XV 1): A Bishop misappropriating Church Funds, is to be judged by the Synod (Ant. XXY). If the Provincial Bishops cannot agree to a verdict, on the trial of a Bishop, the Metropolitan is to call in some of the Bishops of the neighboring Provinces, to rehear the case (Ant. XTYV). A Bishop who appeals to the Emperor, instead of to a Synod, against a sentence of deposition, cannot be restored ; nor can his cause be reheard by a Synod (Ant. XII); a Bishop cannot appeal against the unanimous sentence of his Com-provincials (Ant. XV). Vid. also Accusers, —IX. PENALTIES TO BE INFLICTED ON A BisHor. Vid. Sus- pension of a Bishop, Deposition of a Bishop, Degradation, Excommunication, Anathema, and Metropolitan. —X. GENERAL REGULATIONS AS TO A BISHOP. A Bishop is not to be received from abroad, without com- mendatory letters; nor, even if he bring such letters, with- out examination (Ap. Can. XX XIII). 290 DIGEST. BISHOP.—X. GENERAL REGULATIONS AS TO A BrsHor.— Continued. A Bishop who refuses to enter upon his ministry, is to be suspended (Ap. Can. XXXVI, Ant. XVII); and judged by the Synod (Ant. XVII). One Bishop of each Nation is to be acknowledged as chief (Ap. Can. XXXIV). The Bishop of the Metropolis is to be acknowledged as the head of the Bishops of the Proy- ince (Ant. IX). A Bishop deposed for celebrating Easter before the Ver: nal Equinox, is to be deprived of the external honour due to the Priesthood (Ant. I). If the wife of a Bishop commit adultery, he must divorce her, or desist from his ministry (Neo-Czes. VIII). A Bishop of the Cathari, reconciled to the Catholic Church, retains his.orders, and his rank amongst other reconciled Clergy, but ranks as a Priest if within the jurisdiction of a Catholic Bishop, unless the latter give him permission to use the episcopal title (Nic. VIII); he is entitled to employment as Chorepiscopus, or Priest, if within’ the jurisdiction of a Catholic Bishop (Nic. VIII). A Bishop of the Paulianists, reconciled to the Catholic Church, is, if worthy, to be ordained, and, if unworthy, to be deposed (Nic. XTX). A Bishop of the Phrygians, seeking reconciliation to the Catholic Church, is to be instructed and baptized before ad- mission (Laod. VIII). BISHOPS.—The Bishops of each country, are to acknowledge one of their body as chief (Ap. Can. XXXIV). The Bishops of each Province, are to acknowledge the Bishop of the Metrop- olis as their head (Ant. TX). The Bishops are to hold Synods twice a year, for mutual examination concerning the doctrines of religion, and for the settlement of ecclesiastical disputes (Ap. Can. XXXVI, Ant. XX); for revising Episcopal sentences (Nic. V, Ant. XX); and for the regulation of ecclesiastical affairs (Chal. XIX). The Bishops must summon three times, if necessary, a Bishop accused of offences; and if he fail to appear on the third summons, they must try him in his absence (Ap. Can. LXXIV). All the Bishops of a Province, should, if possible, meet for the appointment of a Bishop; but those who cannot attend, may vote in writing (Nic. IV, Ant. XIX); and a majority must consent to the appointment, either personally, or by letter (Nic. VI, Ant. XIX). The Metropolitan and Provin- DIGEST. 291 BISHOPS.— Continued. cial Bishops of a Province, must concur in the appointment of a Bishop (Laod XII). The Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops of a Province, must consent, before a Clergyman can address the Emperor (Ant. XI). They may jointly give, to a Bishop of another Province, a written invitation to ordain for them (Ant. XIII). A Bishop is forbidden to leave his own Parish and enter an- other, except at the request of several Bishops (Ap. Can. XTV). A Metropolitan, falling into the heresies of Nestorius or Celestius, or joining the schismatical assembly at Ephesus, is to be subject to his own Bishops, and the neighbouring or- thodox Metropolitans (Eph. Encyc., Can. DD. The Bishops of one Province may take part in the trial ef a Bishop of another Province, if the proper Bishops can- not agree (Ant. XIV). Bishops are described as belonging to the Priesthood (Const. VI, Eph. IH, Chal. XX VI). For regulations as to the Bishops of particular Sees, vid. Alexandria, Antioch, Asia, Constantinople, Cyprus, Egypt, the East, Jerusalem, Lybia, Pentapolis, Pontus, Rome, Thrace. BLEMISH.—A bodily blemish is not a disqualification for the Epis- copate (Ap. Can. LX XVII). BLIND.—Clergy and laity are forbidden to mock the blind (Ap. Can. LVI). BLINDNESS.—Total blindness is a disqualification for the Episcoy pate (Ap. Can. LXX VIII), but partial blindness is not (Ap. Can. LX XVII). BLOOD.—Flesh with blood, is forbidden to be eaten (Ap. Can, LXITI, Gang. IT). BODILY SIN.—Vid. Sin. BLEMISH.—Vid. Blemish. BONIFACE.—A Priest called Boniface, was present at the Council of Chalcedon, as one of the legates of Rome (Chal. Introduc- tion to Can. XXIX), BOOK.—The book of the Western Bishops is approved by the Church of Antioch (Const. V). Singers are to sing from a book (Laod. XY). BOOKS.—Spurious and heretical books are forbidden to be read publicly in Church (Ap. Can. LX); uncanonical books are forbidden to be read in Church (Laod. LIX). For lists of Canonical Books, see Ap. Can, LXXXYV, Laod. ge 9. 292 DIGEST. BREAD.—Communicants are forbidden to receive unleavened bread from the Jews (Ap. Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVIII). Lapsed Deacons, who have been restored, are forbidden to bring in the Bread (Anc. II) ; country Priests are forbidden to offer the Bread, unless in the absence of the Bishops and city Priests (Neo-Czs. XIII); Sub-deacons are forbidden to give the Bread (Laod. XXY). There is to be no Oblation of Bread in Lent, except on Sabbaths and Sundays (Laod. XLIX). DROTHER-IN-LAW.—A woman who has married two brothers, is to be cast out until the hour of death (Neo-Ces, If). BROTHERS.—Bishops are forbidden to ordain their own brothers to the Episcopate from personal motives (Ap. Can. LXXVI); or to employ them in the management of Church Funds (Ant. XXV). BUSINESS.—Bishops and Priests are forbidden to engage in worldly business (Ap. Can. VI, LXXXI, Chal. III); also Deacons (Ap. Can. VI, Chal. III), and Monks (Chal. III, IV); but either Clergymen or Monks may accept the guardianship of minors, if called upon by the law to do so (Chal. III), Clergymen are forbidden to engage in ecclesiastical business, except by direction of their Bishops (Chal. IIT); and also Monks (Chal. Til, IV). Unavoidable business, is a sufficient excuse, to a Bishop, for not attending a Provincial Synod (Chal. XIX). CAKES.—Communicants are forbidden to receive unleavened cakes from Jewish feasts (Ap. Can, LXX). CALUMNY.—Those who bring false and calumnious accusations against a Bishop, are to suffer the penalty to which he would have been liable, had the charges been proved (Const. VI. CANDIDATES. —Candidates for Baptism are not to be received after the second week in Lent (Lacd. XLV); they must learn the Creed by heart, and recite it to the Bishop on Maundy Thursday (Laod. XLVI). CANON.—Vid. Lisé. CANONICAL BOOKS.—Vid. Books. LETTERS.—Vid. Letters. CANONS.—The Canons of Nicxa are confirmed by Const. I; the Canons of Nica, Constantinople, Ephesus, Ancyra, Neo- Ceesarea, Gangra, Antioch, and Laodicea, are confirmed by Chal. I; the third Canon of Constantinople is confirmed by Chal. XXVIII; the decision of tne Council of Nica, as to the time for celebrating Easter, is confirmed by Ant.*I. DIGEST. 293 CASTRATION.—Castration by force, or persecution, is not a disqual- ification for the Episcopate (Ap. Can. XXI); castration by force, or for surgical purposes, is not a disqualification for Ordination (Nic. I); but self-castration is a disqualification for Orders (Ap. Can. XXII, Nic. I). Self-castration is punishable, in Clergymen, by deposition (Ap. Can, XXTIT, Nic. I); and in laymen, by suspension for three years (Ap. Can. XXIV). CATECHISING.—Catechising is enjoined on Bishops and Priests (Ap. Can, LVIII). CATECHUMEN.—A catechumen cannot be made a Bishop or Priest (Laod. II), without a time of probation (Ap, Can. LXXX, Nic. If). The Mass of the Catechumens, is to follow the Bishop’s sermon (Laod. XIX); the Catechumens are to leave the Church before the prayer for penitents (Laod. XIX). Lapsed Catechumens are to pass three years as hearers (Nic. XIV); if a Catechumen fall into sin, whilst he is a Kneeler, he may be admitted to penance ; but if he sin when he is a Hearer, he is to be cast out (Neo-Ces, V). CATHARI.—Cathari, seeking reconciliation to the Catholic Church, must promise, in writing, to observe its decrees, and partic- ularly, to communicate with digamists, and with the lapsed who have been admitted to penance (Nic. VIII). The Clergy of the Cathari, reconciled to the Catholic Church, retain their Orders, and their respective ranks, inter se; but a Bishop of the Cathari, if within the jurisdiction of a Catholic Bishop, is to rank as a Priest, unless the latter should give him permission to use the episcopal title; and he is entitled to a place as Chorepiscopus, or Priest, if within the jurisdiction of a Catholic Bishop (Nic. VII). Cathari are admitted to the Catholic Church by Chrism, after renunciation of their heresies (Const. VII, Laod. VII). CELESTIUS.—A Metropolitan, professing the heresies of Celestius, is to be deposed and excommunicated, and to be under the control of his own Bishops and the neighbouring orthodox Metropolitans (Eph. Encye., Can. I); a Provincial Bishop, for the same cause, is to be deposed (Eph. Encye., Can. II); and also a Priest, Deacon, or Minor Clergyman (Eph. Encye., Can. IV). The heresies of Celestius are anathematized (Eph. VI). CELIBACY.—None of the Clergy, except Readers and Singers, may marry after ordination (Ap. Can. XXVI); but Deacons may marry, if, at their ordination, they have declared an inten- 294 DIGEST. CELIBACY— Continued. tion to do so (Anc. X). A Priest who marries is to be de- posed (Neo-Ces. I); a Deaconess who marries is to be anathematized (Chal. XV); a Monk, or dedicated Virgin, who marries, is to be excommunicated (Chal. XVI). Those who break their vows of celibacy, are to fulfil the penance of digamists (Anc, XIX). CEMETERIES.—Communicants are forbidden to assemble in the Cemeteries, or attend the Martyries, of heretics (Laod. IX). CENSURE.—Eccuestasticau.—Vid. Anathema, Deposition, Degrada- tion, Hxcommunication, Expulsion, and Suspension. CENTESIM &.—Vid. Usury. CHARGE.—No Clergyman is to be ordained without a charge (Chal. VI). CHARGES.—Brovueur against CLERGYMEN.—Vid. Accusers, Bish- op, Priest, Deacon, and Clergy, Minor. CHARISIUS.—A Priest of Philadelphia, named Charisius, produced the creed of Theodore of Mopsuestia to the Council of Ephe- sus (Eph. VI, and Introduction to the same Canon). CHARITY.—The traditions of the Church inculcate charity (Gang. XXq). CHARMS.—Vid. Phylacteries. CHILDREN.—The children of a Bishop are to be provided for out of his private property (Ap. Can. XL). Children of a Reader or Singer, by a heretic wife, must be brought into communion with the Catholic Church (Chal. XIV); they are not to be given in marriage to heretics, un- less such heretics promise to become Christians (Chal. XTV); nor are children of communicants to be given in marriage to heretics (Laod. X\, unless such heretics are converted to Christianity (Laod. XXX). Parents who forsake, or neglect, their children, are anath- ematized (Gang. XV); and also children who forsake their parents (Gang. XVI). CHOREPISCOPUS.—A Chorepiscopus is to be ordained by the Bishop of the City (Ant. X). He is to ordain Readers, Sub-deacons, and Exorcists, with- in his own district (Ant. X); he is not to ordain Priests, be- yond his own Parish, without the Bishop’s written consent (Anc. XIII); nor is he to ordain Priests or Deacons, at all, without his Bishop; nor, in any way, to act officially beyond his own district (Ant. X). DIGEST. 295 CHOREPISCOPUS— Continued. He may offer the Oblation in a City Church, in the pres- ence of the Bishop (Neo-Cas. XIV). He may give Letters Pacifical (Ant. VIII). He is forbidden to commit Simony (Chal. I). A Bishop of the Cathari, reconciled to the Catholic Church, is entitled to employment asa Chorepiscopus, or Priest (Nic. VEEL): CHRISM.—Chrism is declared to be the Seal of the Gift of the Hoiy Guos7 (Const. VII). Certain heretics are admitted to the Catholic Church by Chrism, after renunciation of their heresies Const. VU, Laod. Wit): For the ceremony of anointing, in this case, see Const. VIL Chrism is to follow Baptism (Laod, XLVIIT). CHRISTIANS.—Christians are forbidden to take oil into, or light lamps in a heathen temple, or a Jewish synagogue (Ap. Can. LXXI); or to judaize, by resting on the Sabbath (Laod. XXIX); or to honour martyrs of heretics (Laod. XXXIV) ; or to forsake the Church, and invoke Angels and gather as- semblies (Laod. XX XY). They are forbidden to wash in a bath with women (Laod. XXX); or to join in wanton dances at weddings (Laod. LIT). Reconciled heretics are to be first received as Christians (Const. VI). . Christians are distinguished from laymen (Laod. XXX). CHURCH.—Assembling in Church is commended (Gang. XXT) ; those who despise the Church are to be anathematized (Gang. V); also those who misappropriate the Fruits offered at the Church (Gang. VIT, VIII). Confusion in the Church is forbidden (Ap. Can. IX, Ant. IT). Heretical and spurious books are forbidden to be read in Church (Ap. Can. LX); also private psalms, and uncanoni- cal books (Laod. LIX). None but canonical Singers are to sing in Church (Laod. XV); none but duly appointed Exorcists are to exorcise either in Churches or private houses (Laod. XX VI) ; country Priests are forbidden to officiate in a City Church, in the presence of the Bishop and City Priests (Neo-Cws. XID) ; but Chorepiscopi may do so (Neo-Cas. XIV). Eating and sleeping in Church are forbidden (Laod. XXVIII). Heretics are forbidden to enter the Church (Laod. VI). Bishops are forbidden to obtain their Churches through secular rulers (Ap. Can, XXX). 296 DIGEST. CHURCH— Continued. Appointment to a Church is necessary for ordination (Chal. VI). A Church having a Bishop, is to have also a Steward amongst its Clergy (Chal. XX VI). For regulations as to Clergymen leaving their Churches, vid. Parish. PROPERTY.—Vid. Property, Ecciesiastical. CHURCHES.—The Churches, in all the Provinces, are to retain their ancient and customary prerogatives (Nic. VI). CITY.—A Bishop’s jurisdiction is limited to his own City and dis- tricts (Ap. Can. XXXV, Ant. XXII); he is to have charge of his own City (Ant. IX); Monasteries are to be dependent upon the Bishop of the City (Chal. IV); Bishops appointed in villages, or country districts, are to do nothing without the consent of the Bishop of the City (Laod. LVID) ; Chore- piscopi are forbidden to ordain City Priests, without the Bishop’s written consent (Anc. XIii); country Priests are forbidden to make the Oblation in a City Church, in the pres- ence of the Bisaops and City Priests (Neo-Ces, XIII) ; but Chorepiscopi may do so (Neo-Cas. XIV). Those who are excommunicated in one City are not to be received in another (Ap. Can, XII). In a new or rebuilt City, the Ecclesiastical Districts are to follow the political and municipal arrangement (Chal. XVI). The number of Deacons in a City is to be seven (Neo-Cas. XV). A City rejecting a Bishop, Priest, or Deacon, is to be pun- ished by the suspension of its Clergy (Ap. Can. XXXVI); a City rejecting its Bishop is to be judged by the Synod (Ant. XVIII). For regulations as to Clergymen leaving their Cities, vid. Parish. CIVIL POWER.—Charges against a Bishop are not to be brought before the civil power (Const. VI). Bishops are forbidden to obtain their Churches from the civil power (Ap. Can. XXX); or to obtain the division of Provinces by the civil power (Chal. XII). The civil power is to treat contumacious persistence in schism as sedition (Ant. V). OFFICE.—Clergymen and Monks are forbidden to accept any civil office (Chal. VII). CLERGY, MINOR. —I. DisquanIFICATIONS FOR THE OFFICE.— A man to be ordained, must not, after Baptism, have been DIGEST. 297 CLERGY, MINOR.—I. DisQUALIFICATIONS FOR THE OFFICE.— Con- tinued. twice married, nor have had a concubine (Ap. Can. XVII); he must not have married a widow, a divorced woman, a harlot, a slave, or an actress (Ap. Can. XVIII); he must not have married two sisters, or a niece (Ap. Can. XIX). He must not have committed adultery, fornication, or any other forbidden act (Ap. Can. LXI); one whose wife has committed adultery cannot be ordained (Neo-Ces. VHT). He must not have castrated himself (Ap. Can. XXU, Nic. I); but if castrated by force, or for surgical purposes, be may be ordained; and if so castrated after ordination, he may remain among the Clergy (Nic. I). He must not be possessed of a devil (Ap. Can. LXXEX): but if dispossessed, and worthy, he may be ordained (Ap. Can. LXXIX). A slave, unless manumitted by his master, cannot be or- dained (Ap. Can. LX XXII). One who has lapsed cannot be ordained (Nic. X); but those who have been steadfast throughout the persecutions, though forced to seem otherwise, may be ordained (Anc. Il). A Neophyte must not be ordained (Laod. II); but former profession of heathenism is not, in itself, a disqualification for ordination (Anc. XII). ‘ No Clergyman may be ordained without a charge (Chal. Riser —II. Or THE ORDINATION OF THE MINOR CLERGY.— A Minor Clergyman is to be ordained by a Bishop (Ap. Can. Il); Readers, Sub-deacons, and Exorcists may be or- dained by a Chorepiscopus (Ant. X). A Minor Clergyman is not to be ordained in another Church, after leaving his own (Nic. XVI). —IIl. Or THEIR DurTiEes.— The Minor Clergy are to partake, when the Oblation is made, or to give reasons for refusing (Ap. Can, VII); they are to fast during Lent, and on Wednesdays and Fridays, unless prevented by bodily weakness (Ap. Can, LXIX). The Minor Clergy of Poorhouses, Monasteries, and Mar- tyries, are to remain subject to the Bishop of the Parish (Chal. VIII). —IV.—Or THEIR RIGHTS AND ‘PRIVILEGES.— The Minor Clergy are to receive a share of offerings not made at the Altar (Ap. Can. [V); when in need, they are to be supplied with necessaries (Ap. Can. LIX). 298 DIGEST. CLERGY, MINOR.—IV. Or THerr Rieuts anp PRIVILEGES.— Continued, If displaced by heretics or schismatics, they are to be re- stored (Eph. III). They owe no obedience to a Bishop convicted of anything contrary to religion or morals (Ap, Can, XXXII). They have a right of appeal to the Provincial Synod against a sentence of their Bishop (Ant. VI, XX). A Minor Clergyman, having a complaint against another Clergyman, may lay it before his Bishop ; or if the complaint be against a Bishop, he may lay it before the Provincial Sy- nod (Chal. IX); if he have a complaint against a Metropoli- tan, he may lay it before the Exarch of the Diocese or the Throne of Constantinople (Chal. IX, XVII). A Minor Clergyman, who has been steadfast throughout the persecutions, though forced to seem otherwise, is entitled to all his former privileges (Anc. ITI). —YV. Tuincs ForBIDDEN TO THE Minor CLERGY.— The Minor Clergy are forbidden to read false and heretical books in Church, as Scripture (Ap. Can: LX); or to com- pose, or use, any other than the Nicene Creed (Eph. VII, Chal. Encye.); or to join in prayer with heretics (Laod. XXXII) ; or to attend the Cemeteries or Martyries of here- tics (Laod. IX); cr to marry their children to heretics (Laod. X, XXXI) ; or to observe, or receive gifts from, festivals of heretics (Laod. XXXVII) ; or to enter a synagogue of Jews or heretics for prayer (Ap. Can. LXIY); or to observe, or receive gifts from, Jewish fasts or festivals (Ap. Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVIZ) ; or to receive unleayened bread from the Jews (Laod. XXXVIII); or to feast with the heathen (Laod. XXXIX); or to join in prayer with schismatics (Ant. II, Laod. XX XIII); or to adhere to the maintainers of conven- ticles (Ap. Can. XXXII). They are forbidden to submit to the jurisdiction of Nesto- rius or his partisans (Eph. IID). They are forbidden to communicate with the excommuni- cated (Ap. Can. X, Ant. II); or with a Clergyman who is deposed for celebrating Easter before the Vernal Equinox (Ant. I); or with a Bishop who has obtained his Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can, XXX); or with a Clergy- man wuo, after deposition, meddles with his former ministry (Ant. IV); or to join in prayer with a deposed Clergyman (Ap. Can. XT). ; They are forbidden to remove from their own Parishes (Nic. XVI, Chal. V, XX), without the Bishop’s consent (Ap. DIGEST. | 299 CLERGY, MINOR.—Y. Turnes Forsiwpen.— Continued. Can. XV, Ant. III); or unless driven by necessity from their own country (Chal. XX); and if they do so, they cannot offi- ciate (Ap. Can. XV, Nic. XV, XVI); nor be received by an- other Church (Nic. XVI); they are forbidden to be enrolled in two Churches (Chal. X); and if lawfully transferred to another Church, they are forbidden to meddle with the affairs of their former ministry (Chal. X). None of the Clergy, except Readers and Singers, may marry after ordination (Ap. Can. XXVI); the Clergy are forbid- den to abstain from marriage, except for discipline (Ap, Can. LI); or to have any women dwelling with them, except such relations or other persons as are beyond suspicion (Nic. ID) ; or to wash in a bath with women (Laod. XXX.) They are forbidden to carry off wax or oil from the Church (Ap. Can. LXXII); or to appropriate consecrated vessels to private purposes (Ap. Can. LXXIII). They are forbidden to seize their Bishop’s property on his death (Chal. XXII). They are forbidden to transact worldly business, unless called by law to the guardianship of minors (Chal. HI); or to accept military or civil office (Chal. VII); or to meddle with ecclesiastical business, except by direction of the Bishop (Chal. III); or to become security (Ap. Can. XX); or to exact usury (Nic. XVII, Laod. IV). They are forbidden to officiate in another City, without letters commendatory (Chal. XIII); or to travel without the Bishop’s consent (Laod. XLI); or without Letters Canonical (Laod. XLI¥); or to address the Emperor, without the con- sent of the Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops (Ant. X1). They are forbidden to commit Simony, or negotiate simo- niacal contracts (Chal. IT). They are forbidden to castrate themselves (Ap. Can. XXIII, Nae 1): They are forbidden to abstain from flesh or wine, except for discipline (Ap. Can. LI); they are forbidden to eat flesh with the blood, or of animals which have been slain by beasts, or have died a natural death (Ap. Can. LXIII); or to fast on Sunday, or on any Sabbath, except Easter Even (Ap. Can. LXVI); or to join in forming drinking clubs (Laod. LV); or to eat in a tavern, except on a journey (Ap. Can. LIV) ; or to enter a tavern (Laod. XXIV). If invited to a Lovefeast, they are forbidden to take away their portions (Lacd. XXVII). 300 DIGEST. CLERGY, MINOR.—YV. Tutnes Forsippen.— Continued. They are forbidden to attend plays at weddings and-ban- quets (Laod. LIV). They are forbidden to insult a Bishop (Ap. Can. LV); or a Priest, or Deacon (Ap. Can. LVI); or the Emperor, or a Magistrate (Ap. Can. LXXXIYV) ; or to mock the infirm (Ap. Can. LVII). They are forbidden to sit in the presence of a Deacon, without his permission (Laod. XX). They are forbidden to practise magic, enchantment, math- ematics, or astrology, or to make or wear phylacteries (Laod. XXXVI). Ifa Minor Clergyman have a complaint against another Clergyman, he is forbidden to forsake his own Bishop and run to secular courts (Chal. TX). —VI. Or THE TRIAL oF THE Minor CLERGY.— Accusers of a Clergyman are to be examined as to charac- ter (Chal. X XI). A Minor Clergyman cannot be convicted of any offence on the evidence of those who are themselves under accusation (Const. VI). —VII. For THE PENALTIES TO BE INFLICTED ON THE MINOR CLERGY, vid. Suspension of the Minor Clergy, Deposition of the Minor Clergy, Excommunication, and Anathema. —VIII. GENERAL REGULATIONS AS TO THE MINOR CLERGY.— A Minor Clergyman, if suspended, or deposed, for leaving his Parish, cannot be received as a Clergyman (Ap. Can. XVI, Ant. IID) ; nor, if suspended, or excommunicated, in one City, can he be received in another, without letters commendatory (Ap. Can. XII); if excommunicated by his Bishop, he can- not be restored by another Bishop (Nic. V); nor can he be received by others, uniess restored by his Bishop, or unless the sentence is reversed by a Synod (Ant. VI). The restoration of deposed Clergymen by Nestorius or his followers, is declared void (Eph. VY). Heretics cannot be employed as Clergymen in the Catholic Church (Ap. Can. XLV), A Clergyman who adheres to the maintainers of conven- ticles, is to be admonished three times, by his Bishop, before punishment (Ap. Can, XXX). A Clergyman who is excommunicated, cannot bring accu- sations against a Bishop (Const. VI); a Minor Clergyman, bringing accusations against a Clergyman, is to be examined as to character (Chal. XXI), DIGEST. 301 CLERGY, MINOR.—VIII. Generat REGULATIONS AS TO THE MINOR CieRGyY.— Continued. A Clergyman deposed for celebrating Easter before the Vernal Equinox, is to be deprived of the external honour due to the Clergy (Ant. I). A Clergyman going to Constantinople, and raising distur- bances there, is to be expelled from the City (Chal. XXIII). If the wife of a Clergyman commit adultery, he must di- vorce her, or desist from his ministry (Neo-Ces. VIII). Minor Clergy of the Cathari, reconciled to the Catholic Church, retain their orders, and their rank amongst other reconciled Clergy (Nic. VII). Minor Clergy of the Paulianists, reconciled to the Catholic Church, are, if worthy, to be ordained, and, if unworthy, to be deposed (Nic. XIX). Minor Clergy of the Phrygians, seeking reconciliation to the Catholic Church, are to be instructed and baptized before admission (Laod. VIII). Minor Clergy ordained by Maximus the Cynic, are declared not to be:Clergymen (Const. IV). CLERGY.—Denial of one’s Clergy is punishable by deposition (Ap. Can. LXII). Bishops and Priests are forbidden to neglect their Clergy (Ap. Can. LVIII). : Every Church that has a Bishop, is to have also a Steward amongst its Clergy (Chal. XX VI). CLINIC BAPTISM.—Clinic Baptism is generally a disqualification for Priests’ orders (Neo-Czs. XII); those who have received clinic Baptism, if afterwards restored to health, must learn the Creed by heart (Laod. XLVII). CLOAK.—Anathema on those who wear a rough cloak, and despise persons who use the derus, and other customary dress (Gang. XII). CLOTHING.—Vid. Dress. CLUBS.—Communicants of every class are forbidden to join in form- ing clubs for drinking entertainments (Laod. LY). CLUSTERS OF GRAPES.—See Grapes. COHABITATION, CLANDESTINE.—A digamist, who has been guilty of clandestine cohabitation, cannot be readmitted to communion under Laod. I. COMMEMORATION.—Anathema on those who despise the commem- orations of the Martyrs (Gang. XX); in Lent, commemora- tions of the Martyrs are to be made only on Sabbaths and 302 DIGEST. COMMEMORATION — Continued. Sundays (Laod. LI) ; the commemoration of Martyrs of her- etics is forbidden to Christians (Laod. XXXIV). COMMENDATORY LETTERS.—Vid. Letters, COMMUNICANTS.—Vid. Laymen. In Divine Service, the prayers for full communicants are to follow the prayers for penitents (Laod. XIX). COMMUNION, HOLY.—I. Or Fuiut Communicants.— Communicants are to remain in Church for Communion, as well as for the reading of Scripture (Ap. Can, IX, Ant. II). —II. Or THE READMISSION OF OFFENDERS TO CoMMUNION.— Communion is permitted to those who remained steadfast throughout the persecutions, though forced to appear other- wise (Ane. III). Penitents are to be admitted to communion after penance proportioned to the nature of their offences (Laod. IT); this rule is applied in the case of persons who are guilty of bestial lusts (Anc. XVI). The lapsed may be readmitted to communion after a term of penance varying, according to circumstances, from two to thirteen years (Nic. XI, XII, XIV, Anc. IV, V, VI, VII, VIII, IX), A lapsed Priest, readmitted to communion, is not per- mitted to officiate (Anc. I); nor a lapsed Deacon, unless by indulgence of his Bishop (Ane. II). Digamists may be admitted to communion (Nic. VIII), after a short period of prayer and fasting (Laod. I); those who contract many marriages may be readmitted to com- munion after a term of penance which is mentioned as being well known (Neo-Ces. IIT), An adulterer or an adulteress may be readmitted to com- munion after seven years of penance (Anc. XX); women causing, or preparing drugs for, abortion, after ten years (Anc. XXI); involuntary homicides, after five years (Anc. , XXIII); and diviners, sorcerers, and astrologers, after five years (Anc. XXIV). A certain case of seduction is mentioned as having en- tailed ten years of penance on the parties before they were received as co-standers (Anc. XXYV). Communion is not in any case to be refused to the dying, but it must not be administered to them until after exami- nation (Nic. XIII); the first part of this rule is applied to ‘married men, over fifty years of age, who are guilty of bestial lusts (Anc. XVI); and to wilful murderers (Anc. XXII) ; and to a woman who has married two brothers (Neo-Ces. IT) ; DIGEST. 303 COMMUNION.—II. Or THe READMISSION OF OFFENDERS TO Com- MUNION.— Continued. but if any of the lapsed have been readmitted to Communion at the point of death, this gives them no privilege in case of their recovery (Anc. VI). Communion in prayers only, and witheut the Oblation, is the last degree of penance (Nic. XI, XII, XTII, Anc. IV, V, VI, VIL, TX, XVI, XXIV). —Iif. Or tHe Apmission oF HERETICS TO COMMUNION.— The Catbari may be admitted to Communion, upon their promising to observe the decrees and discipline of the Cath- olic Church (Nic. VII); they are admitted by Chrism (Const. VII); Paulianists, by Baptism (Nic. XIX); Arians, Macedonians, Sabbatians, Quartodecimans, and Apollinari- ans, by Chrism, after renouncing and anathematizing all heresies (Const. VII); Eunomians, Phrygians, Sabellians, and all other heretics, are received as heathen, and are exor- cised, instructed, and baptized (Const. VII); Novatians (Cathari), Photinians, and Quartodecimans are admitted by Chrism after having renounced all heresies, and having learned the Symbols of the Faith (Laod. VII); Phrygians are to be instructed and baptized before admission (Laod. Vid). —IV. GENERAL REGULATIONS.— Communion is not to be granted to foreign Clergymen without examination, nor if the result of such examination should be unsatisfactory (Ap. Can. XX XIII) ; communion is not to be granted to one possessed of a devil (Ap. Can. LXXIX). Communion is to follow Baptism and Chrism (Laod, XLVIII). Communion with the excommunicated is forbidden (Ap. Can. X, Ant. II). None but the Priesthood may communicate at the Altar (Laod. XIX). Vid. also Hucharist, Oblation, Suspension from Communion, and Lay Communion. COMPLAINT.-—A complaint of a personal wrong done by a Bishop, may be brought by a person of any religion (Const. VI). COMPULSION.—The lapsed, who have fallen without compulsion, are to fulfil twelve years of penance (Nic. XI). CONCUBINE, —One who, after Baptism, has had a concubine, can- not be ordained (Ap. Can, XVII), 304 DIGEST. CONCUPISCENCE.—Concupiscence is not to be regarded as actual sin (Neo-Cees. IV). CONFESSION.—A crime discovered by confession, is a disqualifica- tion for ordination as Priest (Nic. IX). A Priest who makes confession of bodily sin, is forbidden to offer the Oblation (Neo-Cees. IX). CONFIRMATION.—Vid. Chrism. Or CANONS AND CREED.—Vid. Cunon, Creed. CONFUSION.—Confusion in the Church is forbidden (Ap. Can. IX, Ant. Il). CONGREGATION.—Priests are forbidden to gather separate congre- gations (Ap. Can. XX XI, Ant. V); also Deacons (Ant. V). CONSANGUINITY.—For regulations as to marriages within the pro- hibited degrees of consanguinity, vid. Marriage. CONSECRATION.—Consecrated vessels are forbidden to be appro- priated to private purposes (Ap. Can. LX XIII); the Sub- deacons are forbidden to touch them (Laod. XX1I). Monasteries, once consecrated, are forbidden to be used as secular dwellings (Chal. XXIV). CONSENT. —Neither the Metropolitan, nor the Provincial Bishops of a Province, may act alone without the concurrent consent of both (Ap. Can. XXXIV, Ant. IX); a Clergyman cannot ad- dress the Emperor, without the consent of the Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops (Ant. XI); Bishops are to be elected with the consent of the Metropolitan and a majority of the Provincial Bishops of the Province (Nic. IV, VI, Ant. XIX), Priests and Deacons are forbidden to act without the con- sent of their Bishop (Ap. Can. XX XIX, Laod. LVII); a Bishop cannot act beyond his own jurisdiction, without the consent of the Bishop having jurisdiction (Ap. Can. XXXV), The consent of the Bishop is required to the appointment of referees in disputes between Clergymen (Chal. IX); also to the establishment of a Monastery or Oratory (Chal. IV, XXIV) ; also to the performance of ecclesiastical acts (Gang. VI); also to the appropriation of Fruits offered at the Church (Gang, VII, VIII). Chorepiscopi are forbidden to ordain Priests and Deacons beyond their own districts, with- out the Bishop’s consent (Anc. XIII). Clergymen are for- bidden to travel without the Bishop’s consent (Laod. XLI). Bishops appointed in country villages, itinerant visitors and Priests, are forbidden to act without the consent of the Bishop of the City (Laod. LVII). Bishops must manage the revenues of the Church with the consent of their Priests and Deacons (Ant. X XV). DIGEST. 305 CONSEN T— Continued. The consent of the master must be obtained, before a slave can be ordeined (Ap. Can. LX X XII) ; or received as a Monk (Chal. IV). CONSPIRACY.—Clergymen and Monks, conspiring against their Bishop and fellow Clergymen, are to be deposed (Chal. XVIII). ? CONSTANTINOPLE.—The Canons of Constantinople are confirmed (Chal. 1); the Third Canon is expressly confirmed (Chal. XXVITI). The Bishop of Constantinople is to rank next after the Bishop of Rome (Const. III) ; this precedence is declared, by the Council of Chalcedon, to have been rightly conceded by the Fathers of Constantinople, because that City is a seat of government and an imperial residence (Chal. XXVIII); the Bishop of Constantinople may hear accusations brought against any Metropolitan (Chal. LX, XVII); he is to ordain the Metropolitans of Pontus, Asia, and Thrace (Chal. XXVIII). The disturbances in Constantinople, occasioned by Maxi- mus the Cynic, are mentioned (Const. 1V); Clergymen and Monks going to Constantinople and raising disturbances there, are to be expelled from the City (Chal. XXIII). For regulations as to the creed of Nicza and Constantino- ple, see Creed. CONTINENCE.—Those who observe continence from abhorrence of marriage are anathematized (Gang. LX); continence for its own sake is commended (Gang. IX, X-X1). CONTINUOUS POSSESSION.—Vid. Uninterrupted Possession. CONTRACTS.—The negotiators of simoniacal contracts, are, if Cler- gymen, to be deposed ; and, if laymen or Monks, to be anath- ematized (Chal. Il). Clergymen and Monks are forbidden to make contracts re- lating to secular affairs (Chal. III). CONVENTICLES.—Marinratnrmnea or.—Vid. Schism. CONVERT.—One who is recently converted from heathenism, is not to be made a Bishop (Ap. Can. LX XX, Nic. IT); nor a Priest (Nic. II); nor a Clergyman of any rank (Laod. IIT); but former profession of heathenism is not in itself a dis- qualification for ordination (Anc. XI). A converted heathen, Jew, or heretic, may marry the child of a Reader or Singer (Chal, XIV); a converted heretic may marry the child of a Communicant (Laod. XX X1). 306 DIGEST. CO-STANDERS.—The lapsed, and other offenders, after passing a certain time, first as Hearers, and secondly as Prostrators, are to be received as Communicants in Prayers, or Co- standers, that being the last degree of Penance (Nic. XI, XI, EE Ane IV 6 Vi Wal VL TEX Va UNV) DXSXGVaS COUNCIL.—See Synod. COUNTRY PRIESTS are forbidden to serve in a City, unless in the absence of the Bishop and City Priests (Neo-Czxs. XIII); they are forbidden to send Letters Canonical except to the neigh- bouring Bishops (Ant. VIII). DISTRICTS are not to have independent Bishops; and such Bishops, if already appointed, are not to act without the consent of the City Bishop (Laod. LVI). COURTS.—Charges against a Bishop cannot be brought before the secular courts (Const. VI); nor can disputes between Clergy- men (Chal. IX). CREED. —The Creed of Nicza is confirmed (Const. I); the ae and Constantinopolitan Creed is confirmed by Chal. Encyc.; i is to be the only Declaration of. Faith demanded of ee ; from heathenism, Judaism, or heresy ; and the composition of any other Creed is stringently forbidden (Eph. VII, Chal. Encyc.); it is to be recited before Baptism (Laod. XLVI); it is to be learned by heart, by those who have received Clinic Baptism, and are afterwards restored to health (Laod. XLVIT; and certain classes of heretics are required to learn the Sym- bols of the Faith before reconciliation to the Catholic Church (Laod. VII). CRIME.—Conviction of crime is a disqualification for ordination (Ap. Can. LXI); confession of crime is a disqualification for ordi- nation as Priest (Nic. IX). CUP.—Lapsed Deacons, who have been restored, are forbidden to bring in the Cup (Anc. II); country Priests are forbidden to offer the Cup in a City Church, unless in the absence of the Bishop and City Priests (Neo-Ces. XIII); a Sub-deacon is not permitted to bless the Cup (Laod. XXV). CUSTOM.—The prerogatives of all Churches are to be retained ac- cording to ancient custom (Nic. VI); ancient custom is to be observed and to regulate Diocesan rights (Eph. VIII); Churches in heathen nations are to be governed according to ancient custom (Const. II). The ancient customs are to continue in Egypt, Libya, and Pentapolis (Nic. VI); and in the election of the Metropoli- tans of Pontus, Asia, and Thrace (Chal. XXVIII); ancient custom entitles the Bishop of Jerusalem to rank next his DIGEST. 307 CUSTOM— Continued. CYNIC, Metropolitan (Nic. VII); the ancient custom of Egypt, by which the Bishops were bound not to sign even acts which they approved, without the consent of their Metropolitan, was respected in practice at Chalcedon (Chal. XXX). The custom of the removal of Clergy is declared uncanoni- cal (Nic. XV). Those who follow the customs of the heathen are to be re- ceived to Communion after five years of Penance (Anc. XXIV). MAXIMUS THE —Ordinations by Maximus the Cynic, and also his own ordination as Bishop, are declared void (Const. IV). CYPRUS.—The Bishops of Cyprus are not within the jurisdiction of the Bishop of Antioch (Eph, VIII). DANCES.—Communicants are forbidden to join in wanton dances at weddings (Laod. LITI). DANGER.—Personal danger is an extenuating circumstance in case of lapse (Nic. XI). DEACON.—I. Or THE DISQUALIFICATIONS FOR THE OFFICE OF A DEACON.— A person, to be ordained Deacon, must not, after Baptism, have been twice married, nor have had a concubine (Ap. Can. XVII); he must not have married a widow, a divorced wo- man, a harlot, a slave, or an actress (Ap. Can. XVIII); he must not have married two sisters, or a niece (Ap. Can. XIX). He must not have committed adultery, fornication, or any other forbidden act (Ap. Can. LXI); one whose wife has committed adultery cannot be ordained (Neo-Ces. VIII) ; He must not have castrated himself (Ap. Can. XXII, Nic. I); but if castrated by force, or for surgical purposes, he may be ordained; and if so castrated after Ordination, he may remain amongst the Clergy (Nic. 1). He must not be possessed of a devil (Ap. Can. LX XIX) ; but if dispossessed, and worthy, he may be ordained (Ap. Can. LXXIX). A slave cannot be ordained, unless manumitted by his master (Ap. Can. LX XXII). One who has lapsed, cannot be ordained (Nic. X); and if he lapse after ordination, and is subsequently restored, he cannot officiate, except by indulgence of the Bishop (Anc. II); but those who have been steadfast throughout the per- secutions, though forced to seem otherwise, may be ordained (Ane, ITI). 308 DIGEST. DEACON.—I. OF THE DISQUALIFICATIONS FOR THE OFFICE OF A Dracon.— Continued. A neophyte must not be made a Deacon (Laod. II); but former profession of heathenism is not in itself a disqualifi- cation for a Deacon’s Orders (Anc. XII). A Deacon is not to be ordained without a charge (Chal. VI). —II. Or Tae ELEcTION oF A DEACON.— A Deacon is not to be elected by the multitude (Laod. XIII). —IlIl. Or THE ORDINATION oF A DEACON.— A Deacon is to be ordained by a Bishop (Ap. Can. II); he is to be ordained by the Bishop of the Parish (Ant. IX); he is not to be ordained by a Chorepiscopus, beyond his own Parish, without the Bishop’s consent (Anc. XIII); he is not to be ordained by a Chorepiscopus without the Bishop (Ant. X); he is not to be ordained by a Bishop beyond his jurisdiction (Ant. XXII). He is not to be ordained in another Church, after leaving his own (Nic. X VI). —IY. Or Tue Duties oF A DEACON.— A Deacon is to partake, when the Oblation is made, or to give reasons for refusing (Ap. Can. VIII); he is to receive the Eucharist from a Bishop or Priest, not to administer to either (Nic. XVIII). He is to act as his Bishop’s Almoner (Ap. Can. XLI); and to supply necessaries to Clergy in need (Ap. Can. LIX); and to join with the Bishop in the administration of Church Funds (Ant. X XY). He is to fast during Lent, und on Wednesdays and Fri- days, unless prevented by bodily weakness (Ap. Can. LXIX). He is his Bishop’s helper, and the inferior of the Priest (Nic. XVIII); the Deacons of Poorhouses, Monasteries, and Martyries, are to remain subject to their Bishop (Chal. VIII). —Y. Or THE PRIVILEGES OF A DEACON.— A Deacon is to receive his share of Offerings, not made at the Altar (Ap. Can. 1V); when in need, he is to be supplied with necessaries (Ap. Can. LIX). Clergymen are forbidden to insult a Deacon (Ap. Can. LVI); Sub-deacons, and other Minor Clergy, are forbidden to sit in the presence of a Deacon, without his permission (Laod. XX), DFG HST. 009 DEACON.—V. Or THE PRIVILEGES oF A DEAcon.— Continued. A Deacon, who has declared, at his ordination, that he cannot contain, may marry (Anc. X). A Deacon has the right of appeal to a Provincial Synod, against a sentence of his Bishop (Nic. V, Ant. VI, XII, XX). A Deacon, haying a complaint against another Clergyman, may lay it before his Bishop, and if he have a complaint against a Bishop, he may lay it before the Provincial Synod (Chal. IX); if he have a complaint against a Metropolitan, he may lay it before the Exarch of the Diocese, or the Throne of Constantinople (Chal. IX, XVII). A Deacon displaced by heretics or schismatics, is to be re- stored (Eph. III). A Deacon owes no obedience to a Bishop convicted of anything contrary to religion or morals (Ap. Can. XXXI). A Deacon who has been steadfast throughout the persecu- tions, though forced to seem otherwise, is entitled to all his former privileges (Anc. II). Deacons are to be informed, by their Bishops, which is, and which is not Church property (Ant. XXIV). A Deacon may communicate at the Altar (Laod. XIX). —VI. Turncs ForBIDDEN To A Dracon.— A Deacon is forbidden to divorce his wife, under pretext of religion (Ap. Can. V); or to marry after ordination (Ap. Can. XX VI); unless, when ordained, he has declared that he cannot contain (Anc. X); he is forbidden to abstain from marriage, except for discipline (Ap. Can. LI); or to have any woman dwelling with him, except such relations, or other persons, as are beyond suspicion (Nic. IT); or to wash in a bath with women (Laod. XXX). He is forbidden to engage in worldly business (Ap. Can. VI); unless called by law to the guardianship of minors (Chal. III); he is forbidden to meddle with ecclesiastical business, except by direction of his Bishop (Chal. ITT) ; he is forbidden to serve in the army (Ap. Can. LXXXTI]); or to accept military or civil office (Chal. VID); he is forbidden to become security (Ap. Can XX); or to exact usury (Ap. Can. XLIV, Nic. XVII, Laod. IV). He is forbidden to read false and heretical books in Church, as Scripture (Ap. Can. LX); or to compose, or use, any other than the Nicene Creed (Eph. VII, Chal. Encyc.) ; or to join in prayer with heretics (Ap. Can. XLV, Laod. XXXIID) ; or to employ them as Clergymen (Ap. Can. XLY) ; or to admit the Baptism or Sacrifice of heretics (Ap. Can. 310 DIGEST. DEACON.—VI. Turncs ForBIDDEN TO A DEracon.— Continued. XLVI); or to receive the Eulogiz of heretics (Laod. XXXII) ; or to attend the Cemeteries or Martyries of heretics (Laod. IX); orto marry his children to heretics (Laod. X, XXXI) ; or to observe, or receive gifts from, festivals of heretics (Laod. XXXVII) ; or to enter a synagogue of Jews or here- tics, for prayer (Ap. Can. LXIV); or to celebrate Easter be- fore the Vernal Equinox, as the Jews do (Ap. Can. VII, Nie. Encyc., Ant. I); or to observe, or receive gifts from, Jewish fasts or festivals (Ap. Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVID); or to re- ceive unleavened bread from the Jews (Ap. Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVIIT) ; or to feast with the heathen (Laod. XXXIX) ; or to join in prayer with schismatics (Ant. II, Laod. XXXIID) ; or to adhere to the maintainers of conventicles (Ap. Can. XXXII). He is forbidden to submit to the jurisdiction of Nestorius or his partisans (Eph. II). He is forbidden to gather a separate congregation, and raise another Altar (Ap. Can. XXXI, Ant. V). He is forbidden to communicate with the excommunicated (Ap. Can. X, Ant. IT); or with a Bishop who has obtained his Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX); or with a Clergyman who is deposed for celebrating Easter before the Vernal Equinox (Ant. I); or with a Clereyman who, after deposition, meddles with his former ministry (Ant. IV) ; or to join in prayer with a deposed Clergyman (Ap. Can. XI). He is forbidden to remove from his own Parish (Nic. XV, Chal. V, XX); without his Bishop’s consent (Ap. Can. XV, Ant. III); or unless he is driven by necessity from his own country (Chal. XX); and if he do so, he cannot act officially (Ap. Can. XV, Nic: XV, XVI, Ant. IID); nor be received by another Church (Nic. XVI); he is forbidden to be enrolled in two Churches; and if lawfully transferred to another Church, he is forbidden to meddle with the affairs of his former ministry (Chal. X). He is forbidden to act without the consent of his Bishop (Ap. Can. XX XIX); or to address the Emperor, without the consent of the Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops (Ant. XI); or to officiate in another City, without Letters Com- mendatory from his own Bishop (Chal. XIII); or to travel without his Bishop’s consent (aod. XLI); or without Let- ters Canonical (Laod. XLII). He is forbidden to carry off wax or oil from the Church (Ap. Can, LX XII); or to appropriate consecrated vessels to private purposes (Ap. Can. LX-XIIT). DIGEST. dll DEACON.—VI. Tunes ForRBIDDEN TO A DEAcon.— Continued. He is forbidden to seize his Bishop’s property, on his death (Chal. XX). : He is forbidden to receive the Eucharist before the Bishop or Priest, or to administer It to a Priest ; and he has no right to offer at all (Nic. XVIII). If deposed, he is forbidden to touch his former ministry (Ap. Can. XXVIII, Ant. IV). He is forbidden to commit simony (Ap. Can. XXIX, Chal. II); or to negotiate simoniacal contracts (Chal. II). He is forbidden to receive a second ordination, unless the first was void (Ap. Can. LXVIII). He is forbidden to gather a separate congregation, and raise another Altar (Ap. Can. XXXI). He is forbidden to abstain from flesh or wine, except for discipline (Ap. Can. LI); especially on festival days (Ap. Can. LIII); but after tasting flesh once, he may abstain if he wishes (Anc. XIV); he is forbidden to eat flesh with the blood, or of animals which have been slain by beasts, or have died a natural death (Ap. Can. LXIII); or to fast on Sunday, or on any Sabbath except Easter Even (Ap. Can. LXVI) ; or to join in forming drinking clubs (Laod. LY) ; or to eat in a tavern, except on a journey (Ap. Can. LIV); or to enter a tavern (Laod. XXIV). If invited to a Loveteast, he is forbidden to take away his portion (Laod. XXVIII); he is forbidden to attend plays at weddings and banquets (Laod. LIV). He is forbidden to castrate himself (Ap. Can. XXIII, Nie ob): He is forbidden to strike backsliders or unbelievers (Ap. Can. XXVII). He is forbidden to insult a Bishop (Ap. Can. LY); or a Priest, or Deacon (Ap. Can. LVI); or the Emperor, or a mag- istrate (Ap. Can. LX XXIV); or to mock the infirm (Ap. Can. LVI). He is forbidden to deny his office (Ap. Can. LXII). He is forbidden to sit amongst the Priests (Nic. XVIII) ; or to sit in the presence of a Priest, without his permission (Laod. XX). He is forbidden to practice magic, enchantment, mathe- matics, or astrology, or to make, or wear, phylacteries (Laod. XXXVI). If he have a complaint against another Clergyman, he is forbidden to forsake his own Bishop, and run to secular courts (Chal. IX). 312 DIGEST. DEACON.—VII. OF tat TRIAL OF A DEACON.— A Deacon cannot be convicted of any offence on the evi- dence of those who are themselves under accusation (Const. VI); his accusers are to be examined as to character (Chal. XXII). A Deacon appealing to the Emperor, instead of to a Synod, against a sentence of deposition, cannot be restored, nor can his cause be reheard, by a Synod (Ant. XII). —VIII. PENALTIES TO BE INFLICTED ON A DEACON.—Vid. Suspension of a Deacon, Deposition of a Deacon, Excommuni- cation, and Anathema. —IX. GENERAL REGULATIONS AS TO A DEACON.— A Deacon who is suspended or excommunicated, by his Bishop, cannot be restored by any other Bishop (Ap. Can. XXXII, Nic. V), unless the Bishop who suspended him should die (Ap. Can. XXXII); nor can he be received by others, unless restored by his Bishop, or unless the sentence is reversed by a Synod (Ant. VI); nor if suspended or ex- communicated in one City, can he be received in another, without Letters Commendatory (Ap. Can. XII); nor if sus- pended or deposed, for leaving his own Parish, can he be received as a Clergyman (Ap. Can. XVI, Ant. III). A Deacon is not to be received from abroad, without Com- mendatory Letters, nor without examination, even if he bring them (Ap. Can. XXXII). A heretic cannot be employed as a Deacon in the Catholic Church (Ap. Can. XLY). A Deacon who is guilty of maintaining conventicles, is to be admonished three times, by his Bishop, before punish- ment (Ap. Can. XXXI, Ant. V). The restoration, by Nestorius or his followers, of a deposed Deacon, is declared void (Eph. V). An excommunicated Deacon cannot bring accusations against a Bishop (Const. VI); a Deacon bringing charges against a Clergyman, is to be examined as to character (Chal. X XT). A lapsed Deacon, if restored, is entitled to his former honours, but he cannot officiate, except by indulgence of his Bishop (Ane. II). A Deacon going to Constantinople, and causing disturb- ances there, is to be expelled from the City (Chal. XXIII). A Deacon deposed for celebrating Easter before the Ver- nal Equinox, is to be deprived of the external honour due to the Priesthood (Ant. I). DIGEST. 313 DEACON.—IX. GENERAL REGULATIONS.— Continued. A Deacon who abstains from flesh, must taste it at least once (Anc. XIV). A Deacon who commits bodily sin, is to rank as a Sub- deacon (Neo-Cees. X). If the wife of a Deacon commit adultery, he must divorce her, or desist from his ministry (Neo-Cxs. VII). There should be seven Deacons in a City, of whatever size it may be (Neo-Ces. XV). A Deacon of the Cathari, reconciled to the Catholic Church, retains his orders, and his rank amongst other re- conciled Clergymen (Nic. VIII). A Deacon of the Paulianists, reconciled to the Catholic Church, is, if worthy, to be ordained, and if unworthy, to be deposed (Nic. XIX). A Deacon ordained by Maximus the Cynic, is declared not to be a Clergyman (Const. IV). A Deacon of the Phrygians, seeking reconciliation to the Catholic Church, is to be instructed and baptized, before admission (Laod. VIIT). DEACONESS.—A Deaconess is not to be ordained under forty years of age, nor without examination; and she is forbidden to marry (Chal. XY). A Deaconess of the Paulianists, reconciled to the Catholic Church, is, if worthy, to be ordained ; but Paulianist Deacon- esses, who appear in the habit of that order, are to be num- bered among the laity (Nic. XIX). DEAF.—Clergymen and laymen are forbidden to mock the deaf (Ap. Can. LVI). DEAFNESS.—Total deafness is a disqualification for the Episcopate (Ap. Can. LXXVII). DEBTORS. —Clergymen are forbidden to exact usury from debtors (Ap. Can. XLIV, Nic. XVI, Laod. IV). DECEASED Wire's Sister.—Vid. Sister-in-Lav. HusBANnD’s BroTHer.—Vid. Sister-in-Law. DECREES.—The Cathari must promise to obey the Decrees of the Catholic Church, before being received into it (Nic. VIII). DEDICATED VIRGIN.—Dedicated Virgins are forbidden to marry (Chal. XVI); if they commit fornication, they are to fulfil the penance of digamists (Anc. XIX). DEFENCE.—A deposed Clergyman, who meddles with his former ministry, is not allowed to make a new defence before the Synod (Ant. IV); nor can a Clergyman who appeals to the 314 DIGEST. DEFENCE— Continued. Emperor, instead of to a Synod, make any further defence before the Synod (Ant. XII); a Bishop, who is deposed by ‘the unanimous sentence of his Provincial Synod, cannot make any further defence (Ant. XV); nora Priest or Deacon, who is deposed for leaving his Parish (Ant. IIT); or for the con- tumacious maintaining of conventicles (Ant. V). DEGRADATION.—The degradation of a Bishop to the rank of a Priest, is declared to be sacrilege (Chal. X XIX). DEGREES OF PENANCE.—See Penance. DELAY.-—Delay by a Metropolitan, in the ordination of a Bishop, is condemned (Chal. XXYV). DEPOSED CLERGYMAN.—Clergymen are forbidden to join in prayer with a deposed Clergyman (Ap. Can. XI) ; Bishops are forbidden to receive Clergymen who are deposed for leaving their own Parishes (Ap. Can. XVI, Ant. II). A deposed Bishop, Priest, or Deacon, is forbidden to touch his former ministry (Ap. Can. XXVIII, Ant. IV). A deposed Clergyman cannot be restored by Nestorius or his partisans (Eph. V). A deposed Clergyman, who appeals to the Emperor, in- stead of to a Synod, cannot be restored, nor can his cause be reheard, by a Synod (Ant. XII). DEPOSITION.—Or a MErTRopoiitan.— The penalty of deposition is pronounced against a Metro- politan, who joins the schismatical assembly of Bishops at Ephesus, or who falls into the heresies of Nestorius and Ce- lestius (Eph. Encyc. and Can. I); or who unnecessarily de- lays the ordination of a Bishop (Chal. XXY). —Or a BisHor.— / The penalty of deposition is pronounced against a Bishop who offers anything at the Altar, except new ears of grain and clusters of grapes (Ap. Can. III). Or who engages in worldly business (Ap. Can. VI, LXXXI, Chal. III); or serves in the army (Ap. Can. LXXXIII); or becomes security (Ap. Can. XX); or exacts usury (Ap. Can. XLIV, Nic. XVID). Or who celebrates Easter before the Vernal Equinox, as the Jews do (Ap. Can. VII, Ant. I); or professes the heresies of Nestorius and Celestius (Eph. Encye., Can. II, Can. VII), or of Theodore of Mopsuestia (Eph. VII); or reads heretical and spurious books in Church, as Scripture (Ap. Can. LX); or composes, or uses, any other than the Nicene Creed (Eph. VII, Chal. Eneyc.); or enters a synagogue of Jews or here- DEGE ST. 315 DEPOSITION.—OF a Bisnop.— Continued. tics to pray (Ap. Can. LXIV); or observes or receives gifts from Jewish fasts or festivals (Ap. Can. LXX); or admits the Baptism or Sacrifice of heretics (Ap. Can. XLVI); or employs them as Clergymen (Ap. Can. XLY). Or who joins the schismatical assombly of Bishops at Ephesus (Eph. I). Or who joins in prayer with a deposed Clergyman (Ap. Can. XI); or receives him as a Clergyman (Ant. III); or communicates with a Clergyman who is deposed for cele- brating Easter before the Vernal Equinox (Ant. I). Or who commits simony (Ap. Can. XXIX, Chal. Il); or negotiates simoniacal contracts (Chal. II); or obtains his Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX). Or who holds ordinations beyond his own jurisdiction (Ap. Can. XXXY); or acts, without invitation, beyond his own Province (Ant. XIII). Or who rebaptizes one who has true Baptism (Ap. Can. XLVI); or refuses to baptize one who has been polluted by the impious (Ap. Can. XLVII); or does not baptize ac- cording to the Catholic formula (Ap. Can. XLIX); or does not baptize by trine-immersion (Ap. Can. L). Or who refuses to receive Penitents (Ap. Can. LID). Or who persists in neglect of his duties (Ap. Can. LVIII) ; or persists in refusing to relieve Clergymen in need (Ap. Can. LIX); or refuses to appoint a Steward (Chal. XXVI). Or who denies his clerical position (Ap. Can. LXI). Or who has been ordained after lapse (Nic. X). Or who receives, or grants, a second erdination, unless the first is void (Ap. Can. LX VIII). Or who disobeys the Canons of the lawful Synod of Ephesus (Eph. VI). Or who obtains an imperial rescript for dividing a Proy- ince (Chal. XII). ) Or who allows Monasteries to be used for secular purposes, or appropriates their property (Chal. XXIV). Or who seizes on a yacant See, without a full Synod (Ant. eV): Or who persists in divorcing his wife, under pretext of re- ligion (Ap. Can, V); or abstains from marriage because he abhors it (Ap. Can. LI); or refuses to divorce an adulterous wife (Neo-Cexs. VIII). Or who castrates himself (Ap. Can. XXIII, Nic. I). Or who commits fornication, perjury, or theft (Ap. Can, XXV); or commits manslaughter (Ap. Can. LXV); or is 316 DIGEST. DEPOSITION.—Or A BrsuHor.— Continued. guilty of any sensual sin (Nic. I); or ravishes a woman, under pretence of marriage (Chal. XX VII). Or who is given to dice, or drunkenness (Ap. Can. XLII) ; or who strikes backsliders or unbelievers (Ap. Can, X XVI). Or who abstains from flesh and wine because he abhors them (Ap. Can. LI); especially if he so abstain on festival days (Ap. Can. LID); or who eats flesh with the blood, or of animals which have been slain by beasts, or have died a natural death (Ap. Can. LXIII); or who fasts on Sunday, or on any Sabbath except Easter Even (Ap. Can. LXVI); or neglects to fast during Lent, and on Wednesdays and Fridays, unless prevented by bodily weakness (Ap. Can. LXIX). Or who insults the Emperor or a magistrate (Ap. Can. LXXXIV). Or who resorts to secular courts, against another Clergy- man (Chal. IX). Or who, retaining the seat, as Priest, which he held before his ordination as Bishop, stirs up sedition against the con- stituted Bishop (Anc. XVIII). Or who petitions the Emperor, without the consent of his Metropolitan and Com-provincials (Ant. XI). Deposition from the Episcopate involves loss of all clerical rank (Chal. X XIX). A Bishop of the Paulianists, reconciled to the Catholic Church, is, if unworthy, to be deposed (Nic. XIX). —Or A CHOREPISCOPUS.— The penalty of deposition is pronounced against a Chore- piscopus who commits simony (Chal. IT). Or who ordains Priests, or Deacons, without his Bishop (Ant. X). —Or A PRIEST. — The penalty of deposition is pronounced against a Priest who offers anything at the Altar, except new ears of grain and clusters of grapes (Ap. Can, IIT). Or who engages in worldly business (Ap. Can. VI, LXXXI, Chal. III); or serves in the army (Ap. Can. LXX XIII); or becomes security (Ap. Can, XX); or exacts usury (Ap. Can. XLIV, Nic. XVI). Or who celebrates Easter before the Vernal Equinox, as the Jews do (Ap. Can. VII, Ant. I); or professes the here- sies of Nestorius and Celestius (Eph. Encyc., Can. IV, Can. VII); or of Theodore of Mopsuestia (Eph. VII); or reads heretical and spurious books, in Church, as Scripture (Ap. Can. LX); or composes, or uses, any other than the Nicene DIGEST. 317 DEPOSITION.—Or A Priest.— Continued. Creed (Eph. VII, Chal. Encyc.); or enters a synagogue of Jews or heretics, to pray (Ap. Can. LXIV); or observes, or receives gifts from, Jewish fasts or festivals (Ap. Can. LXX) ; or admits the Baptism or Sacrifice of heretics (Ap. Can. XLVI) ; or employs heretics as Clergymen (Ap. Can. XLV). Or who joins in prayer with a deposed Clergyman (Ap. Can. XI); or communicates with a Clergyman who is de- posed for celebrating Easter before the Vernal Equinox (Ant. I); or with a Bishop who has obtained his Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX). Or who separates himself from the Church (Ap. Can. XXXI, Ant. V); or adheres to those who do so (Ap. Can. XXX]I). Or who commits simony (Ap. Can. X XIX, Chal. II); or negotiates simoniacal contracts (Chal. IL). Or who receives irregular and uncanonical ordination (Ap. Can. XXXYV); or receives a second ordination, unless the first was void (Ap. Can. LXVIII) ; or who has been or- dained without examination, or after confession of crimes (Nic. IX); or after lapse (Nic. X). Or who denies his clerical position (Ap. Can. LXII). Or who rebaptizes one who has true Baptism, or refuses to baptize one who has been polluted by the impious (Ap. Can. XLVII); or does not baptize according to the Catholic formula (Ap. Can. XLIX); or does not baptize by trine-im- mersion (Ap. Can. L). Or who refuses to receive penitents (Ap. Can. LI). Or who persists in neglecting his duties (Ap. Can. LVIII) ; or persists in refusing to relieve Clergymen in need (Ap. Can. LIX). Or who disobeys the Canons of the lawful Synod of Ephe- sus (Eph. VI); or disobeys his Bishop (Chal. VIII); or leaves his Parish and refuses to return on his Bishop’s sum- mons (Ant. III). Or who seizes the property of a Bishop on his death (Chal. XXII); or who allows Monasteries to be used as sec- ular dweilings, or appropriates their property (Chal. XXTY). Or who, after being transferred to another Church, med- dles with the affairs of his former ministry (Chal. X). Or who persists in divorcing his wife under pretext of re- ligion (Ap. Can. VY); or refuses to divorce an adulteroas wife (Neo-Cxs. VIII); or who abstains from marvriuye be- cause he abhors it (Ap. Can. Li); cr who marries (Neo- Ces. I). 318 DIGEST. DEPOSITION.—Or a Priest.— Continued. Or who castrates himself (Ap. Can. XXIII, Nic. I). Or who commits fornication, perjury, or theft (Ap. Can. XXY); or commits manslaughter (Ap. Can. LXV); or is guilty cf any sensual sin (Nic. II); or ravishes a woman, under pretence of marriage (Chal. XX VII). Or who is given to dicing or drunkenness (Ap. Can. XLII). Or who strikes backsliders or unbelievers (Ap. Can. XXVII). Or who abstains trom flesh and wine because he abhors them (Ap. Can. LI); especially if he so abstain on Festival Days (Ap. Can. LIII); or refuses to taste flesh, or to eat herbs served therewith (Anc. XIV); or who eats flesh with the blood, or of animals which have been slain by beasts, or have died a natural death (Ap. Can. LXIIT); or who fasts on Sunday, or on any Sabbath except Easter Even (Ap. Can. LXV1I); or neglects to fast during Lent, and on Wednesdays and Fridays, unless prevented by bodily weakness (Ap. Can. LXIX). Or who insults his Bishop (Ap. Can. LV); or insults the Emperor, or a Magistrate (Ap. Can. LX XXTV). Or who resorts to secular courts, against another Clergy- man (Chal. TX). Or who petitions the Emperor, without the consent of the Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops (Ant. XI). Or who joins in a conspiracy against his Bishop and fellow Clergyman (Chal. XVIII); or who, having received a Bishop’s Orders, but retaining the seat, as Priest, which he had pre- viously held, stirs up sedition against the constituted Bishop (Anc. XVIII). A Priest of the Paulianists, reconciled to the Catholic Church, is, if unworthy, to be deposed (Nic. XIX), —Or Aa DEACoN.— The penalty of deposition is pronounced against a Deacon who engages in worldly business (Ap. Can. VI, Chal. IIT); or serves in the army (Ap. Can. LX XXIII); or becomes secu- rity (Ap. Can. XX); or exacts usury (Ap. Can. XLIV, Nic. XVII). Or who celebrates Easter before the Vernal Equinox, as the Jews do (Ap. Can. VII, Ant. I); or professes the heresies of Nestorius and Celestius (Eph. Encye., Can. IV, Can. VII); or of Theodore of Mopsuestia (Eph. VII); or reads heretical and spurious books, in Church, as Scripture (Ap. Can. LX) ; DIGEST. 319 DEPOSITION.—Ov a Deacon. — Continued. or composes, or uses, any other than the Nicene Creed (Eph. VII, Chal. Encye.); or enters a synagogue of Jews or heretics, to pray (Ap. Can. LXIV); or observes, or receives gifts from, Jewish fasts or festivals (Ap. Can. LXX); or em- ploys heretics as Clergymen (Ap. Can. XLY). Or who joins in prayer with a deposed Clergyman (Ap. Can. XI); or communicates with a Clergyman who is deposed for celebrating Easter before the Vernal Equinox (Ant. I); or with a Bishop who has obtained his Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX). Or who separates himself from the Church (Ap. Can, XXXI, Ant. V); or adheres to those who do so (Ap. Can. XXXiI). ’ Or who commits simony (Ap. Can. XXIX, Chal. II); or negociates simoniacal contracts (Chal. IT). Or who receives irregular and uncanonical ordination (Ap. Can. XXXV); or receives a second ordination, unless the first was void (Ap. Can. LXVIII); or who has been ordained after lapse (Nic. X). Or who denies his clerical position (Ap. Can. LXII). Or who persists in refusing to relieve Clergymen in need (Ap. Can. LIX). Or who disobeys the Canons of the lawful Synod of Ephe- sus (Eph. VI); or disobeys his Bishop (Chal. VIII); or leaves his Parish, and refuses to return on his Bishop’s summons (Ant. IIT). Or who seizes the property of a Bishop, on his death (Chal. XXII); or who allows Monasteries to be used as secu- lar dwellings, or appropriates their property (Chal. XXIV). Or who, after being transferred to another Church, med- dles with the affairs of his former ministry (Chal. X). Or who administers the Eucharist to a Priest, or receives it before the Bishop or Priest (Nic. XVIII). Or who persists in divorcing his wife, under pretext of re- ligion (Ap. Can. V); or refuses to divorce an adulterous wife (Neo-Ces. VIII); or abstains from marriage because he ab- hors it (Ap. Can. LI); or marries after being ordained, with- out having, at his ordination, declared a purpose to marry (Anc. X). Or who castrates himself (Ap. Can. XXIII, Nie. I). Or who commits fornication, perjury, or theft (Ap. Can. XXV); or commits manslaughter (Ap. Can. LXV); or ray- ishes a woman, under pretence of marriage (Chal. XX VID. Or who is given to dicing or drunkenness (Ap. Can. XLII). 320 DIGEST. DEPOSITION.—Or Aa Dracon.—— Continued. Or who strikes backsliders or unbelievers (Ap. Can. XXVII). Or who absiains from flesh and wine because he abhors them (Ap. Can. LI); especially if he so abstain on Festiva) Days (Ap. Can. LITT); or who refuses to taste flesh, or to eat herbs served therewith (Anc. XIV); or who eats flesh with the blood, or of animals which have been slain by beasts, or have died a natural death (Ap. Can. LXIII); or who fasts on Sunday, or on any Sabbath except Easter Even (Ap. Can. LXVI1); or neglects to fast during Lent, and on Wednesdays and Fridays, unless prevented by bodily weakness (Ap. Can. LXIX). Or who insults his Bishop (Ap. Can. LV); or insults the Emperor, or a Magistrate (Ap. Can. LXXXIY). Or who resorts to secular courts, against another Clergy- man (Chal. IX). Or who petitions the Emperor, without the consent of the Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops (Ant. XT). - Or who joins in a conspiracy against his Bishop and fellow Clergymen (Chal. XVIII). A Deacon of the Paulianists, reconciled to the Catholic Church, is, if unworthy, to be deposed (Nic. XIX). —OF THE Minor CLERGY.— The penalty of deposition is pronounced against those of the Minor Clergy who engage in worldly business (Chal. III); or become security (Ap. Can. XX); or exact usury (Nic. XVID). Or who profess the heresies of Nestorius and Celestius (Eph. Encyc., Can. IV); or of Theodore cf Mopsuestia (Eph. VII); or who read heretical and spurious books, in Church, as Scripture (Ap. Can. LX); or compose, or use, any other than the Nicene Creed (Eph. VII, Chal. Encyc.); or enter a synagogue of Jews or heretics, to pray (Ap. Can. LXIV); or observe, or receive gifts from, Jewish fasts or festivals (Ap. Can. LXX). Or who join in prayer with a deposed Clergyman (Ap. Can. XI); or communicate with a Clergyman who is deposed for celebrating Easter before the Vernal Equinox (Ant. I); or with a Bishop who has obtained his Church through sec- ular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX). Or who adhere to the maintainers of conventicles (Ap. Can. XXXII). Or who commit simony, or negotiate simoniacal contracts (Chal. IT). DIGEST. 321 DEPOSITION.—Or tur Mrnor CLeRGY.— Continued. Or who receive irregular and uncanonical ordination (Ap. Can, XXXY); or have been ordained after lapse (Nic. X). Or who deny their clerical position (Ap. Can. LXIT). Or who disobey the Canons of the lawful Synod of Ephe- sus (Eph. VI); or disobey their Bishops (Chal. VIII). Or who seize the property of a Bishop, on his death (Chal. XXII) ; or who use Monasteries as secular dwellings, or appropriate their property (Chal. XXIY). Or who, after being transferred to another Church, med- dle with the affairs of their former ministry (Chal. X). Or who abstain from marriage because they abhor it (Ap. Can. LI); or refuse to divorce wives who commit adultery (Neo-Ces. VIII). Or who castrate themselves (Ap. Can. XXIII, Nic. I). Or who commit fornication, perjury, or theft (Ap. Can. XXYV); or commit manslaughter (Ap. Can. LXV) ; or ravish, under pretence of marriage (Chal. XX VII). Or who abstain from flesh and wine from abhorrence of them (Ap. Can. LI); or who eat flesh with the blood, or of animals which have been slain by beasts, or have died a nat- ural death (Ap. Can. LXIII), or who fast on Sunday, or on any Sabbath except Easter Even (Ap. Can. LXVI); or neg- lect to fast during Lent, and on Wednesdays and Fridays, unless prevented by bodily weakness (Ap. Can. LXTX). Or who insult their Bishops (Ap. Can. LY); or insult the Emperor or a Magistrate (Ap. Can. LX XXIV). Or who resort to secular courts, against other Clergymen (Chal. LX). Or who petition the Emperor, without the consent of the Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops (Ant. X1). Or who join in conspiracies against their Bishops and fel- low Clergymen (Chal. XVIID). Minor Clergy of the Paulianists, reconciled to the Catholic Church, are, if unworthy, to be deposed (Nic. XIX). —Or A READER oR SINGER. — A Reader, or Singer, who intermarries with, or gives his children in marriage to, heretics, or who baptizes his chil- dren amongst heretics, is to be deposed (Chal. XIV). —OrF A STEWARD, ADVOCATE, OR BAILIFF.— A Steward, Advocate, or Bailiff, who commits simony, or negotiates simoniacal contracts, is to be deposed (Chal. IT). DEPRIVATION.—Deprivations by Nestorius or his followers are de- clared yoid (Eph. IIT). 322 DIGEST. DEVIL.—A man possessed by a devil, is excluded from the ministry, and from the congregation, until he is dispossessed (Ap. Can, LXXTX). DIACONICUM.—A Sub-deacon is forbidden to enter the Diaconicum (Laod XXI). DICE.—Dice are forbidden to Bishops, Priests, and Deacons (Ap. Can. XLII); also to Sub-deacons, Readers, Singers, and Lay- men (Ap. Can. XLII). DIGAMISTS.—A digamist may be admitted to communion (Nic. VIII) after a short period of prayer and fasting (Laod. I) ; he is declared to be worthy of penance (Neo-Cexs. VID). A digamist cannot be ordained (Ap. Can. XVII). A Priest is not allowed to attend, as guest, the marriage of a digamist (Neo-Cas. VII). Those who profess Virginity, if they disregard their pro- fessions, are to do the same penance as digamists (Anc. XIX). The Cathari, who are reconciled to the Catholic Church, must promise to communicate with digamists (Nic. VIID. DIGNITY, SECULAR.—Clergymen and Monks are forbidden to ac- cept secular dignity (Chal. VII). DIOCESE.—A Diocese of the Church might include more than one civil Diocese within its jurisdiction (Chal. XVIII); and the ancient customary rights of Dioceses are to be maintained (Eph. VIII); but Bishops are forbidden to bring confusion on the Churches, by officiating beyond their own Dioceses (Const. II). See also Hxarch, Diocesan Synod, Appeal, Prov- ince, Alexandria, Antioch, Constantinople, Cyprus, Rome. DISCIPLINE.— Abstinence from marriage, flesh, or wine, for Disci- pline, is permitted (Ap. Can. LI, LIII.). The Cathari, before reconciliation to the Catholic Church, must promise conformity to its Discipline (Nic. VIII). DISHONOURABLE LIFE.—A man who is just converted from a dishonourable life, must not be immediately made a Bishop (Ap. Can. LXXX). DISOBEDIENCE.— Disobedience to his Bishop, of a Clergyman, who refuses to return to his Parish when summoned to do so, ze punishable by suspension (Ap. Can. XV, Ant. III); and, persisted in, by deposition (Ant. III); disobedience of a gymen to their Bishops, is punishable by deposition, and of Monks or laymen, by excommunication (Chal. VIII); dis- obedience of a Priest to his Bishop is punishable by deposi- tion (Anc. XVII). Disobedience to the third Canon of Nicea, is at the peril DIGEST. 323 DISOBEDIENCE— Continued. of a man’s Orders (Nic. III); disobedience to the Canons of the lawful Synod of Ephesus, is punishable in Clergymen by deposition, and in laymen by excommunication (Eph. V1). DISPENSATION.—Vid. Indulgence. DISPUTES.—Disputes with a Metropolitan are to be decided by the Exarch of the Diocese, or by the Throne of Constantinople (Chal. XVII). Disputes as to a Bishop’s jurisdiction over outlying Par- ishes, are to be decided by the Provincial Synod (Chal. XVII). Disputes between Clergymen are to be decided by the Bishop, or by referees appointed with his consent (Chal. IX). Ecclesiastical disputes are to be settled by the Provincial Synod (Ap. Can. XX XVII, Ant. XX). DISQUALIFICATIONS.—For OrpDINATION.— One who, after Baptism, has been twice married, or has had a concubine, cannot be ordained (Ap. Can, XVII); nor one who has married a widow, a divorced woman, a harlot, a slave, or an actress (Ap. Can. XVIII); nor one who has married two sisters or a niece (Ap. Can. XIX). Nor one who has castrated himself (Ap. Can. XXII, Nic. I); but castration by force, or for surgical purposes, is not a disqualification (Nic. I). A husband, whose wife commits adultery, cannot be or- dained (Neo-Ces. VIII). One who has committed fornication, adultery, or any other forbidden act, cannot be ordained (Ap. Can. LXI). Nor one who is possessed of a devil, until he is dispos- sessed (Ap. Can. LX XIX), Nor a slave, unless the master manumit him (Ap. Can. LXXXII). Nor one who has lapsed (Nic. X); but those who have re- mained steadfast throughout the persecutions, though forced to seem otherwise, are not disqualified (Anc. IV). A recent convert from heathenism cannot be ordained (Laod. III); but former profession of heathenism is not, in itself, a disqualification (Ane. XII); nor is former profession of the Paulianist heresy (Nic. XIX). One who has left his own Church, cannot be ordained in another Church (Nic. XVI). A Clergyman cannot be ordained without a charge (Chal. VI). 324 DIGEST. DISQUALIFICATIONS.—For Orprnarion.— Continued. One who is already canonically ordained, cannot receive a second Ordination (Ap. Can. LX VIII). —For THE EpiscopaTe.— A eunuch, if made by force or persecution, or so born, is not disqualified for the Episcopate (Ap. Can, XXI), Total deafness or blindness is a disqualification for the Episcopate (Ap. Can. LXX VIII); but partial blindness or lameness is not (Ap. Can. LXXVII). One whose Ordination would injure the Church, cannot be made a Bishop (Ap. Can. LX XVIII). A Bishop cannot ordain a relative, to the Episcopate, from personal motives (Ap. Can. LXXVI). Recent conversion from heathenism or a dishonourable life, is a disqualification for the Episcopate (Ap. Can. LXXX, Nic. II); a Bishop cannot be ordained until after long pro- bation both of faith and life (Laod, XII). —For THE PRESBYTERATE.— A Priest cannot be ordained without examination, nor after confession of crimes (Nic. [X); bodily sin in a Priest disqualifies him for making the Oblation (Neo-Ces. IX); but the married state does not (Gang. IV). Lapse disqualifies a Priest for performing any of his duties, even after he is restored (Ane. I). Clinic Baptism is, generally, a disqualification for the Presbyterate (Neo-Ces. XIII). Recent conversion from heathenism, is a disqualification for the Presbyterate (Nic. II). One who is under thirty years of age, is disqualified for Ordination as a Priest (Neo-Czs. XI). —IN GENERAL.—- . Lapse disqualifies a Priest for performing any of his duties, even after he is restored, unless his Bishop grant him in- dulgence (Ane. II). A Deaconess cannot be ordained under forty years of age, or without examination (Chal. XY). A slave is disqualified for being received as a Monk (Chal. IV). One who is possessed of a devil, is disqualified for admis- sion to the congregation, until he is dispossessed (Ap. Can. LXXIX). Heretics, single communicants, maintainers of conventicles, and persons who are themselves under accusation, or are ex- communicated, are disqualified for bringing accusations of DIGEST. 325 DISQUALIFICATIONS.--IN GENERAL.— Continued. ecclesiastical offences against a Bishop (Ap. Can. LXXYV, Const. VI); also persons who are under accusation are dis- qualified for bringing such charges against any Clergyman (Const. V1). DISTRICTS.—The jurisdiction of a Bishop is limited to his own Parish and Districts (Ap. Can. XXXIV, Ant. IX); it is limited to his own City and Districts (Ap. Can. XXXY, Ant. XXII). Chorepiscopi are forbidden to act beyond their own Dis- tricts, within which they are to ordain Readers, Sub-deacons, and Exorcists (Ant. X). Country Districts are not to have independent Bishops, but those already appointed are to consult the City Bishop before acting (Laod. LVI). In a new or rebuilt City, the Ecclesiastical Districts are to follow the political and municipal arrangements (Chal. XVII). DISTURBANCES IN CONSTANTINOPLE.—The disturbances in Constantinople, occasioned by Maximus the Cynic, are men- tioned (Const. IV); Clergymen and Monks, going to Con- stantinople and causing disturbances there, are to be expelled from the City (Chal. XXIII). DIVINE SERVICE.—Vid. Service. DIVINERS.—Diviners are to fulfil five years of penance (Anc. XXIV). DIVISION OF PROVINCES.—Bishops are forbidden to obtain im- perial rescripts for dividing Provinces (Chal. XII). DIVORCE.—A Bishop, Priest, or Deacon, is forbidden to divorce his wife under pretext of religion (Ap. Can. VY); but if she com- mits adultery, he must divorce her, or desist from his minis- try (Neo-Ces. VIII). A layman is forbidden to divorce his wife and take another (Ap. Can. XLVIII). DIVORCED WOMAN.—Marriage with a divorced woman is a dis- qualification for ordination (Ap. Can. XVIID); and is for- bidden to laymen (Ap. Can, XLVIIJ). DOCTRINE.—The purity of Doctrine is to be guarded by Synods (Ap. Can. XXXVI). —OF THE TRINITY.—Vid. Trinity. DOMESTICS.—Bishops are forbidden to employ their own domestics in the management of Church Funds (Ant. XXV). DOORKEEPER.—A Doorkeeper is forbidden to enter a tavern (Laod. XXIV). 326 DIGEST. DOORS.—The Sub-deacon is forbidden to leave the doors (Laod. XXII, XLIID. DRESS.—Anathema on one who wears a rough cloak, and despises those who use the berus, and other customary dress (Gang. XII); also on a woman who assumes the dress of a man, under pretence of asceticism (Gang. XIII). Plainness in dress is commended, and dissolute excess, and over-fastidiousness, condemned (Gang. XXI). DRINKING CLUBS.—Communicants, of every class, are forbidden to join in forming clubs for drinking entertainments (Laod. LV). DRUGS.—Women who prepare drugs for causing abortion, are to fulfil ten years of penance (Anc. XXI). DRUNKENNESS.—Drunkenness in a Bishop, Priest, or Deacon, is punishable by deposition (Ap. Can. XLII); and in a Sub- deacon, Reader, Singer, or Layman, by suspension (Ap. Can. XLUI). DWELLINGS, SECULAR.—Monasteries, once consecrated with the Bishop’s consent, are forbidden to be used as secular dwell- ings (Chal. XXIV). DYING.—The dying are entitled, in all cases, to receive the Oblation, after being examined by the Bishop (Nic. XIII). The lapsed, who have been admitted to penance, if in danger of death, are to be received to full communion, so long as the danger continues (Anc. VI). A married man, of over fifty years of age, who is guilty of bestial lust, is to be admitted to communion only at the point of death (Anc. XVI); also a wilful murderer (Anc. XXIT); also a woman who marries two brothers (Neo- Cees. II). EAST, THE.—The jurisdiction of the Bishops of the East is confined to their own Diocese (Const. II). The identity of the doctrine of the Trryrry in East and West is declared (Const. V). EASTER.—Clergymen are forbidden to celebrate Easter before the Vernal Equinox, as the Jews do (Ap. Can. VII, Nic. Encye., Ant. I), Fasting is permitted on Easter Even (Ap. Can. LXYI). Provincial Synods are to be held in the third week of Easter (Ant. XX). Eulogiz are forbidden to be sent from one Parish to an- other at Easter (Laod. XIV). EATING.—Eating in Church is forbidden (Laod. XXVIII). DIGEST. 327 ECCLESIASTICAL BUSINESS.—Clergymen are forbidden to engage in ecclesiastical business except by direction of their Bishops (Chal. IJ); Monks are under the same restriction (Chal. BEEFY): —CENSURE.—Vid. Suspension, Deposition, Degradation, Kxpul- sion, Excommunication, and Anathema, —DISTRICTS.—Ecclesiastical Districts in a new or rebuilt City, are to follow the political and municipal arrangement (Chal. XVII). —OFFENCES. — Heretics, maintainers of conyenticles, and persons who are themselves under accusation, or are ex- communicated, are disqualified for bringing accusations of ecclesiastical offences against a Bishop (Const. VI); also persons who are under accusation, are disqualified for bringing such charges against any Clergyman (Const. WE): —PROPERTY.—Vid. Property, Ecclesiastical. EGYPT.—The Bishop of Alexandria is to have jurisdiction in Egypt (Nic. VI, Const. I). The Bishops of Egypt are bound, by ancient custom, not to sign even acts which they approve, without the consent of their Archbishop; and this custom was respected in prac- tice at Chalcedon (Chal. XXX). ELECTION.—The election of the Metropolitans of Pontus, Asia, and Thrace, is to be according to custom (Chal. XXVIII). —OF A BISHOP.—Vid. Bishop, —OF A PRIEST.—Vid. Priest. —OF A DEACON.—Vid. Deacon. Elections are forbidden to be held in the presence of the Hearers (Laod. Y). EMASCULATION.—Vid. Castration. EMPEROR, THE.—Communicants are forbidden to insult the Em- peror (Ap. Can. LX XXIV). Charges against a Bishop are not to be brought before the Emperor (Const. V1). Bishops and Priests are forbidden to address the Emperor, without the consent and letters of the Metropolitan and Pro- vincial Bishops (Ant. XI). A Clergyman appealing to the Emperor, instead of to a Synod, against a sentence of deposition, cannot be restored, nor can his cause be reheard, by a Synod (Ant. XII). ENCHANTERS.—Clergymen are forbidden to be enchanters (Laod XXXVI). 328 DIGEST. ENTREATY.— Offenders are not to be admitted to penance, without earnest entreaty (Ant. II). EPHESUS.—The Canons of Ephesus are confirmed by Chal. I. EPISCOPATE.—Bishops are forbidden to raise their relatives to the Episcopate from personal motives (Ap. Can. LXXVI); or to bequeath his Episcopal office to heirs (Ap. Can. LXXYI).- Deposition from the Episcopate involves loss of all cleri- cal rank (Chal. X XIX). For the disqualifications for the Episcopate, vid. Disquali- Jication, Bishop. EQUINOX, VERNAL.—Easter is not to be celebrated before the Vernal Equinox (Ap. Can, VII, Nic. Encyc., Ant. I). EUCHARIST.—The word Hucharist is used in the Canons only three times—Nic. XIII, XVIII, Ant. IZ; and, in these instances, it is used in reference to the Holy Gifts. In the Apostolical Canons, the celebration of the Eucharist is called the Sacri- fice (§vcia) (Ap. Can. III, XLVI). The word for Holy Com- munion or Hucharist commonly used in the Canons is Obla- tion (zgoc¢oed), which see. EUDOXIANS. — The heresy of the Eudoxians is anathematized (Const. I). EULOGLE.—Eulogie are forbidden to be sent from one Parish to another at Easter (Laod. XIV). Clergymen are forbidden to receive the Eulogis of heretics (Laod, XXXII). EUNOMIANS.—The heresy of the Eunomians is anathematized (Const. I); Eunomians who come over to orthodoxy are to be received as heathen (Const. V11). EUNUCH.—A Eunuch, if made by force or persecution, or so born, may be made a Bishop (Ap. Can. XXI); if so made by force or for surgical purposes, he may be ordained (Nie. I). EVIDENCE.—For regulations as to evidence, on the trial of a Cler- gyman, see Bishop, Priest, Deacon, Clergy, Minor. EXAMINATION.—Examination is to be made of candidates for Priests’ Orders (Nic. IX); and of Deaconesses before ordina- tion (Chal. XV); and of Clergy of the Paulianists, who are reconciled to the Catholic Church, before ordination (Nic. XIX). Examination is not to be made of those who bring per- sonal accusations against a Bishop (Const. VJ) ; but those who bring charges of ecclesiastical offences must be exam- ined (Const. VI, Chal. XXT). Examination is to be made of Clergymen received from abroad, before they are admitted to communion (Ap. Can. XXXII). DIGEST. 329 EXAMINATION — Continued. Examination is to be made into the lives of the lapsed, who desire restoration to the Catholic Church (Anc. II, II, V, VII, TX); and into the lives of those who are under pen- ance for bestial lusts (Anc. XVI). Examination is to be made of the dying, before adminis- tering the Eucharist (Nic. XIII). Examination is to be made of the poor, before giving them Letters Pacifical (Chal. XT). Mutual examination, concerning the doctrines of religion, is one of the objects of Synods (Ap. Can. XX XVII). EXARCH.—Complaints against a Metropolitan are to be laid before the Exarch of the Diocese, cr the Throne of Constantinople (Chal. [X, XVII). Exarchs may not acquire or usurp jurisdiction contrary to ancient custom (Eph. VIII). The Exarch, or Archbishop, of Alexandria was entitled, by ancient custom, to be consulted by the Bishops of Egypt before they signed even acts which they approved (Chal. XXX). Se also Alexandria, Antioch, Constantinople, Cyprus, Pontus, Rome, Thrace. EXCESS.—Dissolute and effeminate excess in dress is condemned (Gang. XX1). EXCOMMUNICATED PERSONS.—Communicants are forbidden to join with an excommunicated person in prayer (Ap. Can. X); or to communicate with him (Ant. II); those who are excommunicated in one City, are not to be received in an- other, without Letters Commendatory (Ap. Can. XII); they are not to be received at all, until restored to communion (Ant. VI). A person who is excommunicated by one Bishop, is not to be restored by another (Nic. V). Persons under sentence of excommunication, cannot bring accusations of ecclesiastical offences, against a Bishop (Const. VI). EXCOMMUNICATION.—OF A METROPOLITAN.— A Metropolitan, who professes the heresies of Nestorius and Celestius, is to be excommunicated (Eph. Encyc., Can. 1). —OF A BISHOP.— The penalty of excommunication is pronounced against a Bishop who, after deposition, meddles with his former min- istry (Ap. Can. XXVIII, Ant. IV); or who communicates with one who does so (Ant. IV); cr communicates with the 330 DIGEST. EXCOMMUNICATION.—OF A BISHOP.— Continued. excommunicated (Ant. II); or with a Bishop who has ob- tained his Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX). Or who commits simony (Ap. Can. XXIX); or obtains his Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX). Or who denies the name of Curist (Ap. Can. LXTI). Or who abstains from marriage, flesh, and wine, because he abhors them (Ap. Can. LI). Or who petitions the Emperor, without the consent of the Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops (Ant. X1). A Bishop deposed for fornication, perjury, or theft, is not to be excommunicated (Ap. Can, XXY). —OF A PRIEST.— The penalty of excommunication is pronounced against a Priest who, after deposition, meddles with his former ministry (Ap. Can. XXVIII, Ant. IV); or who communi- cates with one who does so (Ant. IV); or communicates with the excommunicated (Ant. II); or with a Bishop who has obtained bis Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX). Or who commits simony (Ap. Can. XXTX). Or who denies the name of Curist (Ap. Can. LXID. Or who petitions the Emperor, without the consent of the Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops (Ant. X1). Or who abstains from marriage, flesh, and wine, because he abhors them (Ap. Can. LI). Or who commits fornication or adultery (Neo-Ces. I). A Priest deposed for fornication, perjury, or theft, is not to be excommunicated (Ap. Can. XXYV). —OF A DEACON.— The penalty of excommunication is pronounced against a Deacon who, after deposition, meddles with his former min- istry (Ap. Can. XXVII, Ant. IV); or who communicates with one who does so (Ant. IV); or communicates with the excommunicated (Ant. II); or with a Bishop who has ob- tained his Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX). Or who commits simony (Ap. Can, X XIX). Or who denies the name of Curist (Ap. Can. LXII). Or who petitions the Emperor, without the consent of the Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops (Ant. XI). Or who abstains from marriage, flesh, and wine, because he abhors them (Ap. Can. LI). A Deacon deposed for fornication, perjury, or theft, is not to be excommunicated (Ap. Can. XXY). DIGEST. 331 EXCOMMUNICATION.—OF THE MINOR CLERGY.— The penalty of excommunication is pronounced against those of the Minor Clergy who communicate with a Bishop who has obtained his Church through secular rulers (Ap. Can. XXX); or with a Bishop, Priest, or Deacon, who, after deposition, meddles with his former ministry (Ant. IV); or with the excommunicated (Ant. II). Or who denies the Name of Curist (Ap. Can, LXII). Or who petitions the Emperor, without the consent of the Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops (Ant. XI). Or who abstains from marriage, flesh, and wine, because he abhors them (Ap. Can. LI). —OF A MONK.— The penalty of excommunication is pronounced against a Monk who engages in worldly business (Chal. HI, IV); or who permits Monasteries to be used as secular dwellings, or appropriates their property (Chal. X XIV). Or who will not remain permanently at his Monastery, and subject to his Bishop (Chal. IV, VUI). Or who marries (Chal. XVI). —OF A DEDICATED VIRGIN.— A dedicated Virgin, who marries, is to be excommunicated (Chal. XVI). —OF THE LAITY.— The penalty of excommunication is pronounced against those of the laity who disobey the decrees of the lawful Sy- nod of Ephesus (Eph. VI); or who disobey their Bishops (Chal. VIII). Or who celebrate Easter before the Vernal Equinox, as the Jews do (Ant. I). Or who permit Monasteries to be used as secular dwellings, or appropriate their property (Chal. X XTY). Or who communicate with a Bishop, Priest, or Deacon, who, after deposition, meddles with his former ministry (Ant. IV). Or who are guilty of bestial lusts (Anc. XVI). Or who wear phylacteries (Laod. XX XVI). A woman who marries two brothers is to be excommuni- cated (Neo-Ces. IT). ~-OF A CATECHUMEN.— A Catechumen who falls into sin whilst he is a Hearer, is to be excommunicated (Neo-Cwxs, V). 332 DIGEST. EXCOMMUNICATION—GENERAL REGULATIONS.— Excommunication is to be for sufficient reason (Nic. V). A Bishop’s sentence of excommunication may be reversed by a Provincial Synod (Nic. V, Ant. VI). Vid. also Anathema. EXORCISM.—For the ceremony of exorcism, in the case of certain classes of reconciled heretics, and for an enumeration of those classes, see Const. VII. EXORCIST.—An Exorcist may be ordained by a Chorepiscopus (Ant. X); he must be promoted by the Bishop, or he cannot act officially (Laod. X XVI). An Exorcist is forbidden to enter a tavern (Laod. XXIV). EXPULSION.—A Monk, who joins in a conspiracy against his Bishop or the Clergy, is to be expelled from his order (Chal. XVIII). Clergymen and Monks going to Constantinople, and caus- ing disturbances there, are to be expelled from the City (Chal. XXIII). A Bishop who, retaining the seat, as Priest, which he held before his ordination as Bishop, stirs up sedition against the constituted Bishop, is to be expelled (Anc. X VIII). A Bishop who seizes on a vacant See, without a full Sy- nod, is to be expelled (Ant. XVI). FAITH, SYMBOLS OF THE.—Vid. Creed. FAITHFUL, THE.—Vid. Laymen. FALSE ASCETICISM.—Vid. Asceticism., FASTIDIOUSNESS.—Fastidiousness in dress is condemned (Gang. XXII), FASTING.-—Communicants are forbidden to fast on Sunday (Ap. Can. LX VI, Gang. XVIII); or on any Sabbath except Easter Even (Ap. Can. LXVI); or to fast with the Jews (Ap. Can. LXX). Communicants are required to fast during Lent (Ap. Can. LXIX, Laod. L); and on Wednesdays and Fridays (Ap. Can. LXIX); and persons who disregard the fasts appointed by the Church, are anathematized (Gang, XIX). Fasting is enjoined on Monks (Chal. IV), A digamist may be admitted to communion, after a short period of prayer and fasting (Laod. I); those who have been guilty of many sins, may be admitted to penance, if they apply themselves to prayer, with fasting and penitence (Laod. II). DIGEST. 333 FATHER.—A father who forsakes or neglects his children, is anathe- matized (Gang. XV). FEASTS.—Vid. Festivals. FEMALE PRESIDENTS (i. ¢., Presbyters)—Female Presidents are forbidden to be appointed (Laod. Xi). FESTIVALS.—Communicants are forbidden to observe, or receive gifts from, festivals of Jews (Ap. Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVI, XXXVIII); or of heretics (Laod. XXXVII); or heathen (Laod. XXXIX); or to take oil into, or light lamps in a temple of the heathen, or a synagogue of the Jews at their festivals (Ap. Can. LXXT), A Bishop, Priest, or Deacon, who abstains from flesh and wine on festival days, because he abhors them, is to be de- posed (Ap. Can. LITT). Clergymen are forbidden to attend plays at festivals (Laod. LIV). FIRST-FRUITS.—The first-fruits are not to be offered at the Altar, FLESH. except new ears of grain, and clusters of grapes (Ap. Can. III); all other first-fruits are to be taken to the house of the Bishop and Priest, and to be shared by them with the other Clergy (Ap. Can. IV); persons who misappropriate the first-fruits of the Church, are to be anathematized (Gang. VII, VII). —Abhorrence of flesh is a blasphemous slander of Gop’s work, and is punishable by excommunication (Ap. Can. LI) ; and a Bishop, Priest, or Deacon, who abstains from flesh on festival days because he abhors it, is to he deposed (Ap. Can. LIMIT); Priests and Deacons who abstain from flesh, are to taste it at least once, and if they refuse to do so, or to eat herbs served with flesh, they are to be deposed (Anc. XIV) ; those who condemn the use of fiesh, are anathematized (Gang. II). Flesh containing blood, is forbidden to be eaten (Ap. Can. LXIII, Gang. II); also the flesh of animals that have been slain by beasts, or have died a natural death (Ap. Can. LXII); or have been strangled (Gang. II); also flesh offered to idols (Gang. II). FOREIGNER.—Foreign Clergymen are forbidden to be received without Letters Commendatory (Ap. Can. XXXIII). For- eigners are not to be received without Letters Pacifical (Ant. VII). FORMULA.—Baptism is to be performed according to the Catholic formula ; for which see Ap. Can. XLIX. 334 DIGEST. FORNICATION.—Fornication, in a Clergyman, is punishable by de- position (Ap. Can. XXYV); in a Priest, by complete excom- munication (Neo-Ces. I). Professed Virgins, guilty of fornication, are to fulfil the penance of digamists (Anc. XIX). A layman, convicted of fornication,-cannot be ordained (Ap. Can. LXT). FRIDAY.— Fasting is ordained on Fridays (Ap. Can. LXTIX). FRUGALITY.—Frugality is commended (Gang. XXI). FRUITS.— Vid. Firstfruits. FUNDS OF THE CHURCH.—Vid. Moneys. GALATIANS.—The numerous heresies arising amongst the Galatians are mentioned (Const. VII). GAMBLING.—Gambling is forbidden to the Clergy and laity (Ap. Can. XLH, XLII). GANGRA.—The Canons of Gangra are confirmed by Chal. I. GIFTS.—Clergymen and laymen are forbidden to receive gifts from feasts of Jews (Ap. Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVII, XXXVIII); or of heretics (Laod. XX XVII). The Holy Gifts are forbidden to be sent at Easter as Eu- logize (Laod. XIV). GODLINESS.—Godliness is commended (Gang. XX1). GOSPEL.—The Gospel is to be read on the Sabbath (Laod. XVI). GRAIN.—New ears of grain may be offered at the Altar (Ap. Can. III). GRAPES.—Clusters of grapes may be offered at the Altar (Ap. Can. III). GRAVITY.—Gravity is commended (Gang. XX1). GUARDIANSHIP.—Clergymen and Monks may undertake the guar- dianship of widows, orphans, and minors (Chal. I). GUEST.—The expenses of a Bishop’s guests are to be borne by the Church (Ap. Can. XLI, Ant. XXY). A Priest is forbidden to be a guest at the marriage of a digamist (Neo-Cexs. VII). HABIT.—-The habit customarily worn by Deaconesses cf the Pauli- anists is mentioned (Nic. XTX). HAIR.—A woman’s hair is the token of her subjection; and if she cut it off, she is to be Anathema (Gang. XVII). HALT.—The Clergy and laity are forbidden to mock the halt (Ap. Can. LVII). HANDS, IMPOSITION OF.—Paulianist Deaconesses, enrolled as far as the dress, had no Imposition of Hands (Nic. XIX). DIGEST. 335 HANDS, IMPOSITION OF.— Continued. Persons under penance, are to receive Imposition of Hands from the Bishop, before leaving the Church (Laod. XTX). HARLOT.—Marriage with a harlot is a disqualification for ordina- tion (Ap. Can. XVIII). HEARERS.—A Catechumen, falling into sin whilst he is a Hearer, is to be cast out (Neo-Ces. V). Hearers are not to be present at elections (Laod. V). Vid. also Penance. HEATHEN.—A convert from heathenism, must not be immediately made a Bishop (Ap. Can. LXXX, Nic. II), or Priest (Nic. II); but former profession of heathenism does not, of itself, disqualify a man for being ordained (Anc. XII). Communicants are forbidden to feast with the heathen (Laod. XXXIX); Readers and Singers are forbidden to give their children in marriage amongst the heathen (Chal. XIV). Lapse, from fear of heathens, is punishable, in Clergymen, by complete excommunication (Ap. Can. LXTI). Christians are forbidden to take oil into, or light lamps in a temple of the heathen, at their festivals (Ap. Can. LX XI). Churches, in heathen nations, are to be governed accord- ing to custom ‘Const. II). Persons who follow the customs of the heathen, are to ful- fil five years of penance (Anc. XXIV). HEIRS.—A Bishop cannot bequeath his See to heirs (Ap. Can. LXXYVI). HEMIOLIL4A.—Clergymen are forbidden to receive hemiolie (Nic. XVII, Laod. IV). HERBS.—A Priest or Deacon, who refuses to eat herbs served with flesh, is to be deposed (Anc. XIV). HERESIES.—Heresies in general are anathematized (Const. I). Vid. also Heretics. HERETICAL BOOKS.—Heretical and spurious books are forbidden to be read publicly, in Church, as Scripture (Ap. Can. LX). HERETICS.—Bishops, Priests, and Deacons, are forbidden to join in prayer with heretics, or to employ them as Clergymen (Ap. Can. XLY); or to admit the Baptism or Sacrifice of heretics (Ap. Can. XLVI); Communicants are forbidden to join in prayer with heretics (Laod. XXXIII); or to enter a syna- gogue of heretics to pray (Ap. Can. LXIV); or to assemble in the Cemeteries, or attend the Martyries, of heretics (Laod. IX); or to honour the martyrs of heretics (Laod. XXXIV) ; 336 DIGEST. HERETICS— Oontinued. or to observe, or receive gifts from, the festivals of heretics (Laod. XXXVII); or to give their children in marriage to heretics (Laod. X); unless they promise to become Chris- tians (aod. XXXI); Readers and Singers are forbidden to intermarry with, or give their children in marriage to, or baptize them amongst heretics (Chal. XIV); Clergymen are forbidden to receive the Eulogie of heretics (Laod. XXXII). Lapse, from fear of heretics, is punishable, in Clergymen, by complete excommunication (Ap, Can. LXII). Heretics.are not allowed to enter the Church, whilst they remain in heresy (Laod. VI). Heretics cannot be received as accusers of a Bishop (Ap. Can. LXXV); they may bring accusations of personal wrong, but not of ecclesiastical offence against a Bishop (Const. VI); and for this purpose, maintainers of conven- ticles are classed with heretics (Const. VI). Ordinations by heretics are void (Ap. Can. LX VII) ; de- privations by Nestorius, or by the partisans of his heresy, are declared to be void (Eph. ITI). Heretics must renounce and anathematize all heresies, and especially their own, before reconciliation to the Catholic Church (Const. VII, Laod. VII). Cathari, seeking reconcili- ation to the Catholic Chureh, must promise, in writing, to obey its decrees (Nic. VII). Phrygians must be instructed and baptized before admission (Laod. VIII). Certain here- tics must learn by heart the Symbols of the Faith, before being received (Laod. VII). Certain classes of heretics are admitted to the Catholic Church by Chrism, others are re- ceived as heathen; for an enumeration of these classes, and an account of the forms and ceremonies used in each case, see Const. VII. HETERODOX.—Vid. Heretic. HIRING,—The hiring of property for profit is forbidden to Clergy- men and Monks (Chal. IT). HOLY.—GIFTS.—Vid. Gifts. MYSTERIES.—Vid. Mysteries. OBLATION.—Vid. Obdlation. HOMICIDE.—Involuntary homicides are to fulfil five years of pen- ance (Anc. XXIII); wilful homicides are to remain prostra- tors for life, receiving communion only at their death (Anc. XXII). HONEY.—Honey is forbidden to be offered at the Altar (Ap. Can. III). DIGEST. 837 . HOSPITALITY.—Hospitality to foreign Clergymen is commended (Ap. Can. XXXII}). Hospitality is to be maintained at the expense of the Church (Ap. Can. XLI, Ant. XXV). HOUSE, PRIVATE.—Communicants are forbidden to join in prayer with an excommunicated person, even in a private house (Ap. Can. X). None but duly-appointed Exorcists, may exorcise, either in a Church, or a private house (Laod. XXVI). The Oblation is not to be made in a private house (Laod. LVII)). HOUSES OF REFUGE.—Clergymen, who have been lawfully trans- ferred to another Parish, are forbidden to meddle with the Houses of Refuge of their former ministry (Chal. X). HUMILITY.—Humility is commended (Gang. XXI). HUSBAND.—The husband of a Deaconess who marries, is to be anathematized (Chal. XV). A woman who marries the brother of a deceased husband, is to be cast out till her death; and if she or her husband should die in the unlawful marriage, penance cannot readily be allowed to the survivor (Neo-Ces. II). The husband of an adulteress cannot be ordained (Neo- Ces. VIII). A woman who forsakes her husband, from abhorrence of marriage, is to be anathematized (Gang. XIV). HYEMANTES.—Persons who are guilty of bestial lusts and who have corrupted others, are to pray among the Hiemantes (Anc. XVII). HYPERBORETAUS,.—Vid. Oeteber. IDES OF OCTOBER.—Provincial Synods are to be held on the Ides of October (Ant. XX). IDOLATRY.—The Invocation of Angels is covert idolatry (Laod. XXXYV). IDOLS.—Flesh that has been offered to idols, is forbidden to be eaten (Gang. II). ILLNESS.—Illness is a sufficient excuse, to a Bishop, for not attend- ing a Provincial Synod (Chal. XIX). IMMERSION.—Baptism must be by trine-immersion (Ap. Can. L) ; the baptism of the Eunomians, by one immersion, is void (Const. VII). IMPERIAL RESCRIPT.—Vid. Reseript. IMPOSITION OF HANDS.—Vid. Hands. 338 DIGEST. INCARNATION, THE.—The heresies of Theodore of Mopsuestia, respecting the Incarnation of CHrisT, are anathematized (Eph. VII). INCENSE.—Incense may be offered at the Holy Oblation (Ap. Can. TUL). INCOME OF THE CHURCH.—Vid. Revenue. INDULGENCE.—Provincial Synods may grant indulgence to per- sons under sentence of excommunication (Nic. V). Bishops may grant indulgence to Monks, and dedicated Virgins, who are excommunicated for marrying (Chal. XVI) ; and to the lapsed (Nic. XII, Anc. I, V, VII); and to per- sons who are under penance for bestial lusts (Anc. XVI); and to those who contract many marriages (Neo-Ces. III) ; but a Bishop may, if necessary, take away indulgence, already eranted to a lapsed Deacon, who has been restored (Ane. IT). INFIRM.—Clergy and laity are forbidden to mock the infirm (Ap. Can. LVII). INHERITANCE.—The right to a See cannot be acquired by inherit- ance (Ap. Can. LXXYVI). INITIATION.—Vid. Baptism. INN.—Clergymen are forbidden to eat in an inn, except on a journey (Ap. Can. LIV); Clergymen and Monks are forbidden to enter an inn (Laod. XXIY). INSOLENCE.—Insolence, of a Clergyman to his Bishop, is punish- able by deposition (Ap. Can. LV); insolence of a Clergyman » to a Priest or Deacon, is punishable by suspension (Ap. Can. LVI); insolence to the Emperor or a Magistrate, is punishable, in Clergymen, by deposition, and in laymen by suspension (Ap. Can. LX XXIV); insolence of Virgins to the married, is punishable by anathema (Gang. X). INSTRUCTION.— Instruction of converted heathen is required he- fore Baptism (Const. VII) ; also of certain classes of recon- ciled heretics (Const. VII, Laod. VII, VIII). INVESTIGATION.—An investigation is to be made, by the Provin- cial Synod, into the accounts of a Bishop, who is charged with dishonesty (Ant. X XY). INVITATION.—Bishops are forbidden to act officially beyond their Provinces, witaout invitation (Const. II, Ant. XH); an in- vitation by the Metropolitan, and Provincial Bishops of a Province, to a Bishop of another Province, to act within their jurisdiction, must be in writing (Ant. XTI]); as also should be the invitation of a Metropolitan to his Provincial Bishops to attend a Provincial Synod (Ant. XTX). DIGEST. 339 INVOCATION OF ANGELS.—The Invocation of Angels is declared to be covert idolatry (Laod. XXXV). INVOLUNTARY HOMICIDE.—Vid. Homicide. ITINERANT VISITORS.—Vid. Visitors. JERUSALEM.—The Bishop of Jerusalem is entitled to rank next to the Metropolitan of Caesarea (Nic. VII). JEWS.—Communicants are forbidden to observe, or receive gifts from, fasts or festivals of Jews (Ap. Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVII); or to receive unleavened bread from them (Ap. Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVIII); Clergymen are forbidden to celebrate Easter with the Jews (Ap. Can. VII, Ant. 1); Readers and Singers are forbidden to give their children in marriage to Jews (Chal. XIV); Clergymen and laymen are forbidden to enter a synagogue of Jews to pray (Ap. Can. LXIV); Christians are forbidden to take oil into, or light lamps in a synagogue of Jews, at their festivals (Ap. Can. LXXI). Lapse, from fear of Jews, is punishable in Clergymen by complete excommunication (Ap. Can, LXIT). JOURNEY.—Vid. Travelling. JUDAISERS.—Judaisers, who rest on the Sabbath, are anathema- tized (Laod. XXTX). JUDGMENT.—If a Bishop, who is charged with offences, should re- fuse to obey the summons of the Bishops, they may give judgment in his absence (Ap. Can. LX XIV). —PRIVATE.—Private judgment is forbidden to be main- tained, against the decision of the Church as to the time of celebrating Easter (Ant. I). JURISDICTION.—The Bishop of Egypt has jurisdiction over Egypt, Libya, and Pentapolis (Nic. VI). Tle jurisdiction of the Bishop of Rome is founded on cus- tom (Nic. VI). The jurisdiction of the Bishops of Egypt, the East, Asia, Pontus, and Thrace, is confined to their own ‘Dioceses (Const. IT). —OF PROVINCIAL SYNODS.—Vid. Synods. —OF A BISHOP.—Vid. Bishop. KINSMEN OF A BISHOP.—The kinsmen of a Bishop are to be provided for out of his private property (Ap. Can. XL, Ant. XXIV); if in need, they are to be relieved like the rest of the poor (Ap. Can. XXXVIII). A Bishop is forbidden to ordain his own kinsmen to the Episcopate, from personal motives (Ap. Can. LXXY1); or to 340 DIGEST. KINSMEN OF A BISHOP— Continued. employ them in the management of the Church Funds (Ant. XXV). KISS OF PEACE.—The Kiss of Peace is to follow prayers for full Communicants, in Divine Service (Laod. XTX). KNEELER.—A Catechumen, who falls into sin whilst he is a Kneeler, may be admitted to penance (Neo-Ces. V). KNEELING.—Kneeling for prayers, on Sunday, and during Whit- suntide, is forbidden (Nic. XX). LAME.—Clergymen and laymen are forbidden to mock the lame (Ap. Can. LVI). A man who is partially lame, may, if worthy, be made a Bishop (Ap. Can. LX XVII). LAMPS.—Christians are forbidden to light lamps in a synagogue of the Jews, at their festivals (Ap. Can. L.XX]). LAODICEA.—The Canons of Laodicea are confirmed by Chal. I. LAPSED, THE.—Lapsed Clergymen are punishable by complete ex- communication (Ap. Can. LXII); a lapsed Priest, if restored, may retain his title, but is not allowed to officiate (Anc. I); the same rule applies to lapsed Deacons; but the Bishop may, if he thinks fit, grant them further indulgence (Ane, II). The lapsed, who have fallen in persecution, may be ad- mitted to penance and communion (Nic. VIII); the lapsed who have fallen without compulsion, are to fulfil twelve years of penance (Nic. XI); those who yielded merely upon threats, are to fulfil six years of penance (Anc. VI); those who submitted to force with indifference, are to fulfil a term of five years (Anc. IV); and those who submitted to force with mourning, are to be prostrators three years, if they par- took of the feast provided ; and if not, they are to be pros- trators two years, and the third year co-standers (Anc. Y); those who brought and ate their own meats at heathen feasts, are to be prostrators two years (Anc. VII); those who have fallen a second time, are to be hearers three years, and pros- trators ten years (Nic. XII); those who sacrificed two or three times, under compulsion, are to fulfil six years of pen- ance (Anc. VII); those who forced their brethren to aposta- tize, are to fulfil ten years of penance (Anc. IX); lapsed Cat- echumens are to fulfil three years of penance (Nic. XIV) ; those who are under penance for lapse, may be allowed the Sacrament, if in danger of death (Anc. VI). The lapsed, if afterwards ordained, are to be deposed (Nic. X). DIGEST. d41 LAWSUITS.—Lawsuits, as to the ownership of property in the pos- session of a Bishop at the time of his death, are to be pre- vented, by his keeping his private property distinct from that of the Church (Ap. Can. XL, Ant. XXIV). LAYMEN.—I. Or tHE Duties oF LAYMEN.— Laymen are to remain in Church for prayers and the Hoiy Communion, as well as for the reading of Scripture (Ap. Can. IX, Ant. ID); they are to fast during Lent, and on Wednesdays and Fridays, unless prevented by bodily weak- ness (Ap. Can. LXIX); they are to remain subject to their Bishops (Chal. VII1); they are to give the Kiss of Peace to the Bishop, after the Priests have done so (Laod. XIX). —II. OF THE PRIVILEGES or LAYMEN.— Bishops, Priests, an 1 Deacons, are forbidden to strike lay- men who sin (Ap. Can. XXVII); Bishops and Priests are forbidden to neglect the laity (Ap. Can. LVIII). Laymen who have been steadfast through the persecu- tions, though forced to seem otherwise, are entitled to all their former rights, and may, if worthy, be ordained (Anc, II). A layman has a right of Appeal to a Provincial Synod, against a sentence of his Bishop (Ant. VI, XX). —III. Turnes Forsippen To LayMEN.— They are forbidden to compuse, or use, any other than the Nicene Creed (Eph. VII); or to join in prayer with here- tics (Laod. XX XIII); or to assemble in the Cemeteries, or attend the Martyries, of heretics (Laod. IX); or to observe, or receive gifts from, festivals of heretics (Laod. XX XVII); or to marry their children to heretics (Laod. X, XXXT); or to enter a synagogue of Jews or heretics to pray (Ap. Can. LXIYV) ; or to observe, or receive gifts from, Jewish fasts or festivals (Ap.Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVI); or to receive un- leavened bread from the Jews (Ap. Can. LXX, Laod. XXXVIII); or to feast with the heathen (Laod. XXXIX); or to join in prayer with schismatics (Laod. XX XIII); or to adhere to the maintainers of conventicles (Ap. Can. XXXI). They are forbidden to communicate with the excommuni- cated (Ap. Can. X, Ant. ID; or with a Clergyman who, after deposition, meddles with his former ministry (Ant. IV). They are forbidden to fast on Sunday, or on any Sabbath except Easter Even (Ap. Can. LXVI); or to judaize, by resting on the Sabbath (Laod. XXTIX). They are forbidden to marry after obtaining a divorce, or to marry a diyorced woman (Ap. Can. XLYIII); or to 342 DIGEST. LAYMEN.—Turnes ForBIDDEN TO LAYMEN.— Continued. abstain from marriage, except for discipline (Ap. Can. LI. They are forbidden to wash in a bath with women (Laod. XXX). They are forbidden to castrate themselves (Ap. Can. XXIV). They are forbidden to abstain from flesh and wine, except for discipline (Ap. Can. LI); or to eat flesh with the blood thereof, or the flesh of animals which have been slain by beasts, or have died a natural death (Ap. Can. LXIII); or to join in forming drinking clubs (Laod. LV). If invited to a lovefeast, they are forbidden to take away their portions (Laod. XX VII); they are forbidden to join in wanton dances at weddings (Laod. LIII). They are forbidden to mock the infirm (Ap. Can. LVID); or to insult the Emperor or a Magistrate (Ap. Can. LXXXIV). They are forbidden to carry off wax or oil from the Church (Ap. Can. LX XII) ; or to appropriate consecrated vessels to private purposes (Ap. Can. LXXIIT). They are forbidden to negotiate simoniacal contracts (Chal. IT). They are forbidden to communicate at the Altar (Laod. XIX). —IV. For the penalties to be inflicted on a layman, see Sus- pension, Excommunication, and Anathema. —V. GENERAL REGULATIONS.— Laymen who are suspended or excommunicated, in one City, are forbidden to be received in another, without Letters Commendatory (Ap. Can. XII); if excommunicated by their Bishops, they cannot be received by others, unless restored by the Bishop, or unless the sentence is reversed by a Synod (Ant. VI); nor can they be restored by any other than the Bishop who excommunicates them (Nic. V). A single Communicant cannot be received as the accuser of a Bishop (Ap. Can. LXXV); nor can one who is excom- municated, or who is under accusation for alleged faults, bring charges of ecclesiastical offences against a Bishop ; nor can those who are themselves under accusation, bring such charges against any Clergyman (Const. VI); but any one may bring a charge of personal injury done to him bya Bishop ; accusers of a Bishop are to be examined as to char- acter (Chal. X XI). DIGEST. 343 LAYMEN.—Y. GENERAL REGULATIONS.— Continued. Laymen who adhere to the maintainers of conventicles, are to be admonished three times before excommunication (Ap. Can. XXXI). A Deaconess of the Paulianists, who has assumed the habit of that order, if reconciled to the Catholic Church, is to be received amongst the laity (Nic. XIX), A layman is not to befreceived from abroad without Let- ters Pacifical (Ant. VII). A layman who is possessed of a devil, is to be suspended (Ap. Can. LXXIX). Prayers for full Communicants (lay) are to follow prayers for those under penance, in Divine Service (Laod. XIX). For the disqualifications which prevent the ordination of a layman, see Disqualifications. Vid. also Lay Communion. By Laod. XXX, laymen are distinguished from Christians. For regulations as to the latter, see Christians. LAY COMMUNION.—A Priest who is deposed, for leaving his Par- ish without his Bishop’s consent, may be admitted to Lay Communion (Ap. Can. XV); also one who is deposed for denying his clerical position (Ap. Can. LXII). LEGATES OF ROME.—Vid. Rome. LENT.—Both Clergy and laity are to fast during Lent, unless pre- vented by bodily weakness (Ap. Can. LXIX); the whole of Lent is to be fasted, by eating only dry meats (Laoa. L). There is to be no Oblation of Bread in Lent, except on Sabbaths and Sundays (Laod. XLIX); the Nativities of Martyrs are not to be celebrated in Lent, but commemora- tions of the Martyrs are to be made on Sabbaths and Sun- days (Laod. LI). Marriages and birthdays are not to be celebrated in Lent (Laod. LIT). The second week in Lent is the last for receiving candi- dates for Baptism (Laod. XLY). Provincial Synods are to be held before Lent (Nic. V). LEO, SAINT.—The letter of Leo, Archbishop of Rome, is approved by Chal. Encye. and Can. XXX. LESSON.—A Lesson is to come after every Psalm in Divine Service (Laod. XVII). LETTER.—A Letter of Summons to attend the ordination of a Bishop, is to be sent by the Metropolitan to his Provincial Bishops (Ant. XIX). Vid. also Tome, 344 DIGEST. LETTERS CANONICAL.— Ccuntry Priests are forbidden to send Letters Canonical, except to the neighbouring Bishops (Ant. VIII). Clergymen are forbidden to travel without Letters Canon- ical (Laod., XLII). —COMMENDATORY.-—Strangers are not to be received with- out Letters Commendatory (Ap. Can. XII, XX XIII); Cler- gymen and Readers are forbidden to officiate in another City without Letters Commendatory (Chal. XIII). Letters Commendatory are not to be given to the poor, but only to persons who are liable to question (Chal. XI). A Clergyman must obtain the letters of the Metropolitan and Provincial Bishops, before he can petition the Emperor (Ant. XT). —PACIFICAL.—Strangers are not to be received without Let- ters Pacifical (Ant. VII). Letters Pacifical are to be given to the poor after examina- tion (Chal. XI). A Chorepiscopus may give Letters Pacifical (Ant. VIII). LIBERTIES.—The liberties of Churches are not to be invaded, even by Exarchs (Eph. VIII). LICINIUS.—The persecutions under Licinius are mentioned (Nic. XI). LIMITATION.— The time within which a Bishop’s jurisdiction over outlying Provinces can be questioned, is limited to thirty years from the date when such jurisdiction was first acquired (Chal. XVII). The lapsed, who are admitted to penance, if in danger of death, may be received to communion under limitation (Anc. VI). LIST.—The Canon, Sacerdotal List, or Roll of the Church, is men- tioned in Ap. Can. VIII, XVII, XVIII, LI, LXII, LXxX, Nic.. XVIU,-Chal. 11, Ant. I, If, VI, XT. For lists of Canonical books, see Ap. Can. LXXXYV, Laod. LX. LORD’S DAY.—Vid. Sunday. LORD’S SUPPER.—Vid. Oblation. LOVEFEASTS. --Those who despise Lovefeasts, are to be anathema- tized (Gang. XI). Persons who attend Lovefeasts, are forbidden to take away their portions (Laod. XXVII). Lovefeasts are not to be held in Church (Laod, XXVIII). LOWLINESS OF MIND-—Lowliness of mind is commended (Gang. XXy). DIGEST. 345 LUCENSIUS.—A Bishop named Lucensius was present at Chalcedon, as one of the Legates of Rome (Chal., Introduction to Can. XXIX). LUSTRATIONS.—Persons who practice lustrations are to fulfil five years of penance (Anc. XXIV). LUST.—The penance of those who are guilty of bestial lusts, varies, from aterm of fifteen years to complete excommunication, according to circumstances (Ane. XVI); those who have been guilty themselves and have corrupted others, are to pray amongst the Hyemantes (Anc. XVII). Vid. also Coneupiscence. LIBYA.—The Bishop of Alexandria is to have jurisdiction in Libya (Nic. VI). MACEDONIANS.—Macedonians are admitted to the Catholic Church by Chrism, after renunciation of their heresies (Const. VII). MAGICIANS.—Magicians are to fulfil five years of penance (Anc. XXIV); Clergymen are forbidden to be magicians (Laod. XXXVI). MAGISTRATE.—Communicants are forbidden to insult a Magistrate (Ap. Can. LXXXIV). MAJORITY.—The election of a Bishop is to be by a majority of the Bishops of the Province, in case of factious opposition (Nic. VI, Ant. XTX). MALICE.—Bishops must not excommunicate persons through malice (Nic. V). MALVERSATION.—The Provincial Synod is to investigate the ac- counts of a Bishop who is charged with malversation (Ant. XXV). MANSLAUGHTER.—A Clergyman, who commits manslaughter, is to be deposed, and a layman to be suspended (Ap. Can. LXV). MANUMISSION.—Manumission is necessary before a slave can be ordained (Ap. Can. LX XXII). MARCELLIANS.—The heresy of the Marcellians is anathematized (Const. I). MARRIAGE.—Marriage is forbidden to the Clergy after ordination, except to Readers and Singers (Ap. Can. XXVI); it is for- hidden to Priests (Neo-Czes, I); but the married state Goes not disqualify 1 Priest for offering the Oblation (Gang. IV) ; marriave is forbidden to Deacons, unless they have been or- dained after declaring that they cannot contain (Anc. X); marriage is forbidden to Deaconesses (Chal. XV); and to Monks and dedicated Virgins (Chal. XVI). 346 DIGHST. MARRIAGE— Continued. Abhorrence of marriage is a blasphemous slander of Gop’s work, and is punishable by complete excommunication (Ap. Can. LI) ; those who abhor and condemn marriage, are anathematized (Gang. I); also those who abstain from mar- riage because they abhor it (Gang. IX); also women who forsake their husbands from abhorrence of marriage (Gang. XIV). Marriage is commended (Gang. XXI). Readers and Singers are forbidden to intermarry nite or to give their children in marriage to, heretics (Chal. XIV); communicants are forbidden to give their children in mar- riage to heretics (Laod. X, XXXI), unless they promise to become Christians (Laod. XXX). A second marriage, by a man who has divorced his first wife, is forbidden; also marriage with a divorced woman (Ap. Can. XLVIII) ; also the marriage of a woman with her deceased husband’s brother (Neo-Cees. IT). A second marriage after Baptism disqualifies a man for being ordained (Ap. Can. XVII); also marriage with a widow, a divorced woman, a harlot, a slave, or an actress (Ap. Can. XVIII); also marriage with a deceased wife’s sister, or a niece (Ap. Can. XIX). Persons who have been twice married, are permitted to communicate (Nic. VIII, Laod. I), after a short term of pen- ance (Laod. I); a Priest is forbidden to be a guest at the nuptials of a man contracting a second marriage (Neo-Ces. VII); those who contract many marriages, may be admitted to communion after penance (Neo-Cees, IIT). One who ravishes a virgin not betrothed, must marry her (Ap. Can. LXVII). Ravishing, under pretence of marriage, is punishable in Clergymen by deposition, and in laymen by excommunication (Chal. XX VII). Marriages are forbidden to be celebrated in Lent (Laod. LI). Vid. also Weddings. MARRIED, THE.—Persons who maintain Virginity are forbidden to insult the married (Gang. X). MARTYRIES.—The Clergy of Martyries are to be subject to the Bishop of the Parish (Chal. VIII). A Clérgyman, who is lawfully transferred to another Par- ish, is forbidden to meddle with the Martyries of his former ministry (Chal. X). Communicants are forbidden to attend the Martyries of heretics (Laod. IX). DIGEST. 347 MARTY RIES— Continued. Appointment to a Martyry is a sufficient title for a Cler- gyman (Chal. VI). MARTYRS.—Persons who abhor services in honour of the Martyrs, are anathematized (Gang. XX, and Synodical Epistle); the Martyrs of CHRIsT are to be honoured \Laod. XXXIV); the Nativities of Martyrs are not to be celebrated during Lent, but commemorations of the Martyrs are to be made on Sab- baths and Sundays (Laod. LI). Christians are forbidden to honour the Martyrs of heretics (Laod, XXXIV). MASS OF THE CATECHUMENS.—The Mass of the Catechumens is to follow the Bishop’s Sermon in Divine Service (Laod. XIX). MASTER.—A slave cannot be ordained, against the will of his master (Ap. Can. LXXXII); nor can he be received as a Monk (Chal. IV); those who attempt to withdraw slaves from their masters’ service, are anathematized (Gang. III). MATHEMATICS. —Clergymen are forbidden to be mathematics (Laod. XXXVI). MAUNDY THURSDAY.—Candidates for Baptism must recite the Creed to the Bishop, on Maundy Thursday (Laod. XLVI); the fast is not to be broken on Maundy Thursday so as to dishonour the whole of Lent (Laod. L). MAXIMUS THE CYNIC.—The disturbances in Constantinople, oc- casioned by Maximus the Cynic, are mentioned, and it is declared that he is not a Bishop, and that those who are or- dained by him are not Clergymen (Const. IV). MEAT.—Vid. Flesh. MEATS.—Only dry meats are allowed during Lent (Laod. L). Those who have eaten their own meats at heathen feasts, are to be Prostrators two years (Anc. VII). METROPOLIS.—The Metropolis is to have its due dignity assured (Nic. VII). The erection of a new Metropolis in a Province, is forbid- den; and Cities already uncanonically raised by the civil power to the Metropolitan rank, are to have the title only of Metropolis, and not the jurisdiction (Chal. XII). METROPOLITAN.—One Bishop in each country is to be recognized as chief (Ap. Can. XXXIV); the Bishops of each Province are to recognize the Bishop of the Metropolis as their head (Ant. IX); there is to be only one Metropolitan in a Province (Chal. XIf), 348 DIGEST. METROPOLITA N— Oontinued. A Metropolitan is not to act without the consent of his Provincial Bishops (Ap. Can. XXXIV, Ant. IX); be is to be consulted by his Bishops, before they do anything of great moment (Ap. Can. XXXIV, Ant. IX); he is to have charge of the whole Province (Ant. IX); his consent is necessary to the election of a Bishop (Nic. IV, VI); he must be person- ally present at the ordination of a Bishop (Ant. XTX); he and his Provincial Bishops must concur in the appointment of a Bishop (Laod. XII); a Synod at which the Metropolitan is not present, is not to be considered a full Synod (Ant. XVI, XX); be must consent before a petition can be presented to the Emperor (Ant. XI); he may, on the trial of a Bishop, call in some of the Bishops of the neighbouring Provinces, if his own Bishops cannot agree (Ant. XIV); he and his Pro- vincial Bishops may jointly give, to a Bishop of another Province, a written invitaticn to ordain for them (Ant. XTID). The Metropolitan is to appoint the place of meeting of Provincial Synods (Chal. XIX); he is to ordain a Bishop to a See within three months of its becoming vacant (Chal. XXV); he is to invite his Provincial Bishops, by letter, to assist at the ordination of a Bishop (Ant. XIX). The Metropolitan is to have precedence in rank, within his own Province (Ant. IX); Metropolitan rights unlawfully divided, are reserved to the true Metropolis (Chal. XID) ; each Metropolitan is entitled to a copy of the Canons of Ephesus (Eph. VIII. Complaints against a Metropolitan, are to be brought be- fore the Exarch of the Diocese, or the Throne of Constanti- nople (Chal. IX, XVII). A Metropolitan who professes the heresies of Nestorius and Celestius, is to be deposed and excommunicated, and to be subject to the control of his own Bishops and the neighbouring orthodox Metropolitans (Eph. Encye., and Can. I). MILITARY SERVICE.—Military service is forbidden to Bishops, Priests, and Deacons (Ap, Can. LXX XIII); it is forbidden to Clergymen of all ranks, and to Monks (Chal. VII). MILK.—Milk is forbidden to be offered at the Altar (Ap. Can. III). MINISTRY.—A Bishop, Priest, or Deacon, is forbidden, after deposi- tion, to touch his former ministry (Ap. Can. XX VII, Ant. IV). A Bishop who will not enter upon his ministry, is to be suspended (Ap. Can. XXXVI, Ant. XVID), and judged by the Synod (Ant. XVII); a Priest or Deacon, who will not DIGEST. 349 MINISTRY— Oontinued. enter upon his ministry, is to be suspended (Ap. Can. XXXVI); a Bishop who is prevented from entering upon his ministry, is to retain his rank (Ap. Can. XXXVI, Ant. XVIID). Lapsed Priests, who have been restored, are forbidden to perform the duties of their ministry (Anc. I); lapsed Dea- cons, who have been restored, cannot perform the duties of their ministry, except by indulgence of the Bishop (Anc. II). MINOR ORDERS.—Vid. Clergy, Minor. MINORS.—Clergymen are allowed to undertake the guardianship of minors, if called thereto by the law (Chal. ITI). MINORITY.—Factious opposition of a minority of the Bishops of a Province, is to be disregarded (Nic. VI, Ant. XIX). MISA PPROPRIATION.—Misappropriation, by a Bishop, of ecclesi- astical property, is forbidden (Ap. Can. XX XVIII); misap- propriation of wax or oil of the Church is punishable by sus- pension (Ap. Can. LX XII); as is also misappropriation of consecrated vessels (Ap. Can. LX XIII); misappropriation of Monasteries, or their pioperty, is punishable by ecclesiastical penalties (Chal. XXIV); misappropriation of the Offerings of the Church, is punishable by anathema (Gang. VII, VID); misappropriation, by a Bishop, of Church property, is pun- ishable by the Synod (Ant. XXY). MISSIONARY BISHOPS.—The Missionary Bishops of Pontus, Asia, and Thrace, are to be ordained by the Bishop of Constanti- nople (Chal. XXVIII). MOCKING.—Mocking of the infirm is forbidden (Ap. Can. LVI). MONASTERTES.—Monasteries are forbidden to be established in a Parish without the Bishop’s consent; and when established, they are to be dependent upon him (Chal. IV); the Clergy of Monasteries are to be subject to the Bishop of the Parish (Chal. VIII). Monasteries once consecrated, are to remain Monasteries, and their property is to be secured to them (Chal. XXTY). Appointment to a Monastery is a sufficient title for a Cler- gyman (Chal. VI). MONASTICISM.—Monasticism is permitted and regulated (Chal. IV) ; it is commended (Gang. XXT). MONEY.—Bishops, Priests, and Deacons, are forbidden to obtain their offices for money (Ap. Can. X XTX); they are forbidden to lend money and receive usury (Ap. Can. XLIV, Nic. XVII, Laod. IV). 350 DIGEST. MONEYS.—The moneys of the Church are to be under the control of the Bishops (Ap. Can. XLI, Ant. XXYV), acting with the con- sent of the Priests and Deacons (Ant. XXV); and are to be used for the support of the Bishop and his guests, and of the poor (Ap. Can. XLI, Ant. XXYV). MONKS.—A slave cannot be made a Monk, without the consent of his master; and no Monastery, or Oratory, can be established anywhere without the consent of the Bishop of the Parish - (Chal. IV). Monks are to remain permanently at their Monasteries, and to give themselves to fasting and prayer (Chal. IV); they are to be subject to the Bishop of the Parish (Chal. IV, VII). Monks are forbidden to engage in secular business (Chal. Ill, IV); unless called by the law to the guardianship of minors (Chal, IIL); they are forbidden to accept military or civil office (Chal. VII); they are forbidden to meddle with ecclesiastical business, except by direction of their Bishop (Chal. III, IV); they are forbidden to negotiate simoniacal contracts (Chal. II); they are forbidden to marry (Chal. XVI); or to wash in a bath with women (Laod. XXX); they are forbidden to enter a tavern (Laod. XXIV). A Monk going to Constantinople, and causing disturb- ances there, is to be expelled from the City (Chal. XXIII). ~ Vid. also Ascetic. MONTANISTS.—Montanists desiring reconciliation to the Catholic Church, are to be received as heathen (Const. VII). MOPSUESTIA, THEODORE OF.—The heresies of Theodore of Mopsuestia are anathematized (Eph. VII). MOTHER.—The mother of a Clergyman may reside with him (Nic. ED} MUNICIPAL DISTRICTS.—Ecclesiastical districts in a new or re- built City, are to coincide with the municipal divisions (Chal. XVII). MURDERERS.—Wilful murderers can only be admitted to com- munion at the point of death (Anc, XXID). MUTILATION.—Vid. Castration. MYSTERIES, HOLY.—Heretics, who are reconciled to the Catholic Church, are, after Chrism, to communicate in the Holy Mys- teries (Laod. VII). NATIVITIES OF MARTYRS.—Nativities of Martyrs are forbidden to be celebrated during Lent (Laod. LI). NEEDY .—Vid., Poor. DIGEST. 351 NEGLIGENCE.—Negligence of his duties, by a Bishop or Priest, is punishable by suspension, and if continued, by deposition (Ap. Can. LVIII). NEO-CESAREA.—The Canons of Neo-Cesarea are confirmed by Chal. I. NEOPHYTE.—A Neophyte is not to be made a Bishop (Ap. Can. LXXX); he is not to be made a Bishop or Priest without a time of probation (Nic. If); he is not to be ordained (Laod. Ill). Neophytes are to learn the Creed by heart, and recite it to the Bishop on Maundy Thursday, before being baptized (Laod. XLVI). NESTORIUS.—A Metropolitan, who professes the heresies of Nes- torius, is to be deposed and excommunicated, and to be sub- ject to his own Bishops and the neighbouring Orthodox Metropolitans (Eph. Encye., Can. I); a Provincial Bishop, for the same cause, is to be deposed (Eph. Encyc., Can. II, Can. VII) ; also a Priest, Deacon, or Minor Clergyman (Eph. Encyc., Can. [V, Can. VII); and a layman is to be excom- municated (Eph. VII). Prohibitions by Nestorius are declared to be void (Eph. III); and also restorations by him of deposed Clergymen (Eph. V). NEW ROME.—The Bishop of Constantinople is to have precedence next to the Bishop of Rome, because Constantinople is New Rome (Const. III, Chal. XX VIID. NEW TESTAMENT.—Vid. Testament. NICZA. —The Creed of Niczea is confirmed at Constantinople (Const. T), and at Ephesus (Eph. Vil), and Chalcedon (Chal. Encyc.) ; the Creed cf Nicza is to be the only Declaration of Faith de- manded of converts from heathenism, Judaism, or heresy, and the composition of any other Creed is stringently for- bidden (Eph. VII, Chal. Encyc.); the decision of Nicea, re- garding the time for celebrating Easter, is reaffirmed (Ant. I); the Canons of Niczea are confirmed (Chal. I). NIECE.—Marriage with a niece disqualifies a man for being ordained (Ap. Can. XTX). NON-ATTENDANCE.—A Bishop who does not attend a Provincial Synod, is to be admonished, unless his attendance was im- possible (Chal. XIX); non-attendance of a Bishop at a Pro- vincial Synod, is condemned, unless it is unavoidable (Laod. XL). NONES.—The same Office of Prayers is to be used both at Nones and at Vespers (Laod. XVIII). 352 DIGEST. NON-RESIDENCE.—For the Canons directed against non-residence of the Clergy, see Parish. NOVATIANS.—Vid. Cathari. NOVELTIES.—The introduction of novelties is condemned (Gang. XXI). NOVICE.—A novic2 is forbidden to be made a Bishop (Ap. Can. LXXX, Nic. Il), or Priest (Nic. Il); or to be ordained at all (Laod. ITT). NUN.—Vid. Virgin. NUPTIALS.—A Priest is forbidden to attend as guest the nuptials of a digamist (Neo-Ces. VII). OATH.—The Egyptian Bishops who refused to sign the letter of Leo, Archbishop of Rome, before the appointment of a Bishop of Alexandria, were required to take an oath that they would not leave Chalcedon until the appointment had been made (Chal. XXX). OBEDIENCE.— Obedience to Bishops is enjoined on Clergymen (Ap. Can. XV, XXXII, XXXIX, Chal. VII, Ant. III, Ane. XVIID; and on Monks and laymen (Chal. VII). A Bishop who is convicted of anything contrary to re- ligion or morals, forfeits his claim to the obedience of his Clergy (Ap. Can. XXXII). A Metropolitan who falls into the heresy of Nestorius or Celestius, forfeits his claim to the ohe- dience of his Provincial Bishops (Epi. J), OBLATION.—The word Oblation (xpocgogé) is in the Canons com- monly used for the Holy Communion, and is indifferently ‘applied to the celebration and to the reception of the Sacra- ment. Hucharist is used with reference to the Holy Gifts, and Communion to the status of the Communicant which entitled him to be present at the celebration, and to receive the Sacrament. The Oblation is forbidden to be made in a private house (Laod. LVIID); or in Lent, except on Sabbaths and Sundays (Laod XLIX). It is to come last in Divine Service (Laod, XIX); and Communicants are required to remain in Church for the Ob- lation, as well as for the reading of Scripture (Ap. Can. IX, Ant. II). At the time of the Holy Oblation, incense may be offered at the Altar (Ap. Can. III). The Oblation is not to be offered by a lapsed Priest, even if restored (Anc. I); nor by one who has been promoted after confession of bodily sin (Nec-Ces. IX); nor by a Dea- con (Nic, XVIII); nor by a country Priest in a City Church, DIGEST. 353 OBLATION— Continued. in the presence of the Bishop and City Presbyters (Neo-Ces. XIIJ) ; but this may be done by a Chorepiscopus (Neo-Ces. EV): A married Priest may make the Oblation (Gang. IV). All Clergymen are required to partake when the Oblation is made, or to give sufficient reasons for abstaining (Ap. Can. VIII); and its reception is always to follow Baptism and Confirmation (Laod. VII, XLVIII). The Deacon is forbidden to receive before the Bishop or Priest; and it is to be administered to the Deacon by the Bishop or Priest (Nic. XVIII). It is not to be granted to persons under penance (Nic. XI, XI, Anc. IV, V, VI, VIL, VIL, 1X, XXII, XXIV); but it is not to be refused to the dying in any case (Nic. XIII), even though they may be under penance (Anc. VI, XVI, XXII, Neo-Ces. ID); but the dying are to be examined by the Bishop before receiving the Oblation (Nic. XIII). Bishops and Priests are forbidden to admit the Oblation of heretics (Ap. Can. XLYI). See also Hucharist and Communion ; and for particulars of persons excluded from the Oblation, see Penance. OCTOBER.—Proyincial Synods are to be held on the twelfth of Oc- tober (Ap. Can. XX XVII); they are to be held on the Ides of October (Ant. XX). (ECUMENICAL SYNOD.—Vid. Synod. OFFENCES, ECCLESIASTICAL.—For regulations as to persons who may bring accusations of ecclesiastical offences against a Bishop, see Acewsers. OFFERING.—Vid. Oblation. OFFERINGS.—Vid. First-fruits. OFFICE.—Clergymen and Monks are forbidden to accept any civil or military office (Chal. VII). —OF PRAYERS.—The same Office of Prayers is to be used both at Nones and at Vespers (Laod. XVIII). OIL.—Oil for the Altar lamps may be offered at the Altar (Ap. Can. IIT); the misappropriation of oil of the Church is forbid- den (Ap. Can. LXXII). Christians are forbidden to take oil into a temple of the heathen, or a synagogue of the Jews, at their festivals (Ap. Can. LXXI). OLD TESTAMENT.—Vid. Testament. 354 DIGEST. ONESIMUS.—Onesimus is mentioned as having been ordained, after manumission by his master (Ap. Can, LX XXII). OPPOSITION.—Factious opposition, of a minority of the Bishops of a Province, to the election of a Bishop, is to be disregarded (Ant. XIX). ORARIUM.—A Sub-deacon has no right to wear an Orarium (Laod. XXII); nor a Reader or Singer (Laod. XXIII). ORATORY.—An Oratory cannot be established without the consent of the Bishop of the Parish (Chal. IY), ORDAINER.—Simony in an Ordainer is punishable by deposition (Ap. Can. XXIX, Chal. IT), and excommunication (Ap. Can. XXIX).